Romans
1:1-7
In this paragraph we have,
I. The person who writes the epistle
described (Rom_1:1): Paul, a servant
of Jesus Christ; this is his title of honour, which he glories in, not as
the Jewish teachers, Rabbi, Rabbi; but a servant, a more immediate
attendant, a steward in the house. Called to be an apostle. Some think
he alludes to his old name Saul, which signifies one called for, or enquired
after: Christ sought him to make an apostle of him, Act_9:15. He here builds his authority upon his
call; he did not run without sending, as the false apostles did; klētos apostolos - called an apostle, as
if this were the name he would be called by, though he acknowledged himself not
meet to be called so, 1Co_15:9. Separated
to the gospel of God. The Pharisees had their name from separation, because
they separated themselves to the study of the law, and might be called aphōrismenoi
eis ton nomon; such a one Paul had formerly been; but now he had changed
his studies, was aphōrismenos eis to Euangelion, a gospel Pharisee,
separated by the counsel of God (Gal_1:15),
separated from his mother's womb, by an immediate direction of the
Spirit, and a regular ordination according to that direction (Act_13:2, Act_13:3),
by a dedication of himself to this work. He was an entire devotee to the gospel
of God, the gospel which has God for its author, the origin and extraction of
it divine and heavenly.
II. Having mentioned the gospel of God, he digresses,
to give us an encomium of it.
1. The antiquity of it. It was promised before (Rom_1:2); it was no novel upstart doctrine, but
of ancient standing in the promises and prophecies of the old Testament, which
did all unanimously point at the gospel, the morning-beams that ushered in the
sun of righteousness; this not by word of mouth only, but in the scriptures.
2. The subject-matter of it: it is concerning Christ, Rom_1:3, Rom_1:4.
The prophets and apostles all bear witness to him; he is the true treasure hid
in the field of the scriptures. Observe, When Paul mentions Christ, how he
heaps up his names and titles, his Son Jesus Christ our Lord, as one
that took a pleasure in speaking of him; and, having mentioned him, he cannot
go on in his discourse without some expression of love and honour, as here,
where in one person he shows us his two distinct natures. (1.) His human
nature: Made of the seed of David (Rom_1:3),
that is, born of the virgin Mary, who was of the house of David (Luk_1:27), as was Joseph his supposed father, Luk_2:4. David is here mentioned, because of the
special promises made to him concerning the Messiah, especially his kingly
office; 2Sa_7:12; Psa_132:11, compared with Luk_1:32, Luk_1:33.
(2.) His divine nature: Declared to be the Son of God (Rom_1:4), the Son of God by eternal generation,
or, as it is here explained, according to the Spirit of holiness. According
to the flesh, that is, his human nature, he was of the seed of David;
but, according to the Spirit of holiness, that is, the divine nature (as
he is said to be quickened by the Spirit, 1Pe_3:18,
compared with 2Co_13:4), he is the Son
of God. The great proof or demonstration of this is his resurrection from
the dead, which proved it effectually and undeniably. The sign of the
prophet Jonas, Christ's resurrection, was intended for the last conviction, Mat_12:39, Mat_12:40.
Those that would not be convinced by that would be convinced by nothing. So
that we have here a summary of the gospel doctrine concerning Christ's two
natures in one person.
3. The fruit of it (Rom_1:5);
By whom, that is, by Christ manifested and made known in the gospel, we
(Paul and the rest of the ministers) have received grace and
apostleship, that is, the favour to be made apostles, Eph_3:8. The apostles were made a spectacle to
the world, led a life of toil, and trouble, and hazard, were killed all the
day long, and yet Paul reckons the apostleship a favour: we may justly
reckon it a great favour to be employed in any work or service for God,
whatever difficulties or dangers we may meet with in it. This apostleship was
received for obedience to the faith, that is, to bring people to that
obedience; as Christ, so his ministers, received that they might give. Paul's
was for this obedience among all nations, for he was the apostle of
the Gentiles, Rom_11:13. Observe
the description here given of the Christian profession: it is obedience to
the faith. It does not consist in a notional knowledge or a naked assent,
much less does it consist in perverse disputings, but in obedience. This
obedience to the faith answers the law of faith, mentioned Rom_3:27. The act of faith is the obedience of
the understanding to God revealing, and the product of that is the obedience of
the will to God commanding. To anticipate the ill use which might be made of
the doctrine of justification by faith without the works of the law, which he
was to explain in the following epistle, he here speaks of Christianity as an
obedience. Christ has a yoke. “Among whom are you, Rom_1:6. You Romans in this stand upon the same
level with other Gentile nations of less fame and wealth; you are all one in
Christ.” The gospel salvation is a common salvation, Jud_1:3. No respect of persons with God. The called of
Jesus Christ; all those, and those only, are brought to an obedience of the
faith that are effectually called of Jesus Christ.
III. The persons to whom it is written (Rom_1:7): To all that are in Rome, beloved of
God, called to be saints; that is, to all the professing Christians that were
in Rome, whether Jews or Gentiles originally, whether high or low, bond or
free, learned or unlearned. Rich and poor meet together in Christ Jesus. Here
is, 1. The privilege of Christians: They are beloved of God, they are
members of that body which is beloved, which is God's Hephzibah, in
which his delight is. We speak of God's love by his bounty and beneficence, and
so he hath a common love to all mankind and a peculiar love for true believers;
and between these there is a love he hath for all the body of visible
Christians. 2. The duty of Christians; and that is to be holy, for hereunto are
they called, called to be saints, called to salvation through
sanctification. Saints, and only saints, are beloved of God with a special and
peculiar love. Klētois hagiois - called saints, saints in
profession; it were well if all that are called saints were saints indeed.
Those that are called saints should labour to answer to the name; otherwise,
though it is an honour and a privilege, yet it will be of little avail at the
great day to have been called saints, if we be not really so.
IV. The apostolical benediction (Rom_1:7): Grace to you and peace. This is
one of the tokens in every epistle; and it hath not only the affection of a
good wish, but the authority of a blessing. The priests under the law were to
bless the people, and so are gospel ministers, in the name of the Lord. In this
usual benediction observe, 1. The favours desired: Grace and peace. The
Old Testament salutation was, Peace be to you; but now grace is prefixed
- grace, that is, the favour of God towards us or the work of God in us;
both are previously requisite to true peace. All gospel blessings are included
in these two: grace and peace. Peace, that is all good; peace with God,
peace in your own consciences, peace with all that are about you; all these
founded in grace. 2. The fountain of those favours, from God our Father, and
the Lord Jesus Christ. All good comes, (1.) From God as a Father; he hath
put himself into that relation to engage and encourage our desires and
expectations; we are taught, when we come for grace and peace, to call him our
Father. (2.) From the Lord Jesus Christ, as Mediator, and the great
feoffee in trust for the conveying and securing of these benefits. We have them
from his fulness, peace from the fulness of his merit, grace from the fulness
of his Spirit.
Romans
1:8-15
We may here
observe,
I. His
thanksgivings for them (Rom_1:8): First,
I thank my God. It is good to begin every thing with blessing God, to make
that the alpha and omega of every song, in every thing to give
thanks. - My God. He speaks this with delight and triumph. In all
our thanksgivings, it is good for us to eye God as our God; this makes every
mercy sweet, when we can say of God, “He is mine in covenant.” - Through
Jesus Christ. All our duties and performances are pleasing to God only
through Jesus Christ, praises as well as prayers. - For you all. We must
express our love to our friends, not only by praying for them, but by praising
God for them. God must have the glory of all the comfort we have in our
friends; for every creature is that to us, and no more, which God makes it to
be. Many of these Romans Paul had no personal acquaintance with, and yet he
could heartily rejoice in their gifts and graces. When some of the Roman
Christians met him (Act_28:15), he
thanked God for them, and took courage; but here his true catholic love extends
itself further, and he thanks God for them all; not only for those among
them that were his helpers in Christ, and that bestowed much labour upon him
(of whom he speaks Rom_16:3, Rom_16:6), but for them all. - That your
faith is spoken of. Paul travelled up and down from place to place, and,
wherever he came, he heard great commendations of the Christians at Rome, which
he mentions, not to make them proud, but to quicken them to answer the general
character people gave of them, and the general expectation people had from
them. The greater reputation a man hath for religion, the more careful he
should be to preserve it, because a little folly spoils him that is in
reputation, Ecc_10:1. - Throughout
the whole world, that is, the Roman empire, into which the Roman
Christians, upon Claudius's edict to banish all the Jews from Rome, were
scattered abroad, but had now returned, and, it seems, left a very good report
behind them, wherever they had been, in all the churches. There was this good
effect of their sufferings: if they had not been persecuted, they had not been
famous. This was indeed a good name, a name for good things with God and good
people. As the elders of old, so these Romans, obtained a good report
through faith, Heb_11:2. It is a
desirable thing to be famous for faith. The faith of the Roman Christians came
to be thus talked of, not only because it was excelling in itself, but because
it was eminent and observable in its circumstances. Rome was a city upon a
hill, every one took notice of what was done there. Thus those who have many
eyes upon them have need to walk circumspectly, for what they do, good or bad,
will be spoken of. The church of Rome was then a flourishing church; but since
that time how is the gold become dim! How is the most fine gold changed! Rome
is not what it was. She was then espoused a chaste virgin to Christ, and
excelled in beauty; but she has since degenerated, dealt treacherously, and
embraced the bosom of a stranger; so that (as that good old book, the
Practice of Piety, makes appear in no less than twenty-six instances) even the
epistle to the Romans is now an epistle against the Romans; little
reason has she therefore to boast of her former credit.
II. His prayer
for them, Rom_1:9. Though a famous
flourishing church, yet they had need to be prayed for; they had not yet
attained. Paul mentions this as an instance of his love to them. One of the
greatest kindnesses we can do our friends, and sometimes the only kindness that
is in the power of our hands, is, by prayer to recommend them to the
loving-kindness of God. From Paul's example here we may learn, 1. Constancy in
prayer: Always without ceasing. He did himself observe the same rules he
gave to others, Eph_6:18; 1Th_5:17. Not that Paul did nothing else but
pray, but he kept up stated times for the solemn performance of that duty, and
those very frequent, and observed without fail. 2. Charity in prayer: I make
mention of you. Though he had not particular acquaintance with them, nor
interest in them, yet he prayed for them; not only for all saints in general,
but he made express mention of them. It is not unfit sometimes to be express in
our prayers for particular churches and places; not to inform God, but to
affect ourselves. We are likely to have the most comfort in those friends that
we pray most for. Concerning this he makes a solemn appeal to the searcher of
hearts: For God is my witness. It was in a weighty matter, and in a
thing known only to God and his own heart, that he used this asseveration. It
is very comfortable to be able to call God to witness to our sincerity and
constancy in the discharge of a duty. God is particularly a witness to our
secret prayers, the matter of them, the manner of the performance; then our
Father sees in secret, Mat_6:6. God,
whom I serve with my spirit. Those that serve God with their spirits may,
with a humble confidence, appeal to him; hypocrites who rest in bodily exercise
cannot. His particular prayer, among many other petitions he put up for them,
was that he might have an opportunity of paying them a visit (Rom_1:10): Making request, if by any means,
etc. Whatever comfort we desire to find in any creature, we must have recourse
to God for it by prayer; for our times are in his hand, and all our ways
at his disposal. The expressions here used intimate that he was very desirous
of such an opportunity: if by any means; that he had long and often been
disappointed: now at length; and yet that he submitted it to the divine
Providence: a prosperous journey by the will of God. As in our purposes,
so in our desires, we must still remember to insert this, if the Lord will,
Jam_4:15. Our journeys are prosperous
or otherwise according to the will of God, comfortable or not as he pleases.
III. His great
desire to see them, with the reasons of it, Rom_1:11-15.
He had heard so much of them that he had a great desire to be better acquainted
with them. Fruitful Christians are as much the joy as barren professors are the
grief of faithful ministers. Accordingly, he often purposed to come, but was
let hitherto (Rom_1:13), for man
purposeth, but God disposeth. He was hindered by other business that took him
off, by his care of other churches, whose affairs were pressing; and Paul was
for doing that first, not which was most pleasant (then he would have gone to
Rome), but which was most needful - a good example to ministers, who must not consult
their own inclinations so much as the necessity of their people's souls. Paul
desired to visit these Romans,
1. That they
might be edified (Rom_1:11): That I
may impart unto you. He received, that he might communicate. Never were
full breasts so desirous to be drawn out to the sucking infant as Paul's head
and heart were to be imparting spiritual gifts, that is, preaching to them. A
good sermon is a good gift, so much the better for being a spiritual gift. - To
the end you may be established. Having commended their flourishing he here
expresses his desire of their establishment, that as they grew upward in the
branches they might grow downward in the root. The best saints, while they are
in such a shaking world as this, have need to be more and more established; and
spiritual gifts are of special use for our establishment.
2. That he might
be comforted, Rom_1:12. What he heard
of their flourishing in grace was so much a joy to him that it must needs be
much more so to behold it. Paul could take comfort in the fruit of the labours
of other ministers. - By the mutual faith both of you and me, that is,
our mutual faithfulness and fidelity. It is very comfortable when there is a
mutual confidence between minister and people, they confiding in him as a faithful
minister, and he in them as a faithful people. Or, the mutual work of faith,
which is love; they rejoiced in the expressions of one another's love, or
communicating their faith one to another. It is very refreshing to Christians
to compare notes about their spiritual concerns; thus are they sharpened, as
iron sharpens iron. - That I might have some fruit, Rom_1:13. Their edification would be his
advantage, it would be fruit abounding to a good account. Paul minded his work,
as one that believed the more good he did the greater would his reward be.
3. That he might
discharge his trust as the apostle of the Gentiles (Rom_1:14):
I am a debtor. (1.) His receivings made him a debtor; for they were
talents he was entrusted with to trade for his Master's honour. We should think
of this when we covet great things, that all our receivings put us in debt; we
are but stewards of our Lord's goods. (2.) His office made him a debtor. He was
a debtor as he was an apostle; he was called and sent to work, and had engaged to
mind it. Paul had improved his talent, and laboured in his work, and done as
much good as ever any man did, and yet, in reflection upon it, he still writes
himself debtor; for, when we have done all, we are but unprofitable
servants. - Debtor to the Greeks, and to the barbarians, that is, as the
following words explain it, to the wise and to the unwise. The Greeks
fancied themselves to have the monopoly of wisdom, and looked upon all the rest
of the world as barbarians, comparatively so; not cultivated with learning and
arts as they were. Now Paul was a debtor to both, looked upon himself as
obliged to do all the good he could both to the one and to the other.
Accordingly, we find him paying his debt, both in his preaching and in his
writing, doing good both to Greeks and barbarians, and suiting his
discourse to the capacity of each. You may observe a difference between his
sermon at Lystra among the plain Lycaonians (Act_14:15,
etc.) and his sermon at Athens among the polite philosophers, Act_17:22, etc. He delivered both as debtor to
each, giving to each their portion. Though a plain preacher, yet, as debtor to
the wise, he speaks wisdom among those that are perfect, 1Co_2:6. For these reasons he was ready, if he
had an opportunity, to preach the gospel at Rome, Rom_1:15. Though a public place, though a
perilous place, where Christianity met with a great deal of opposition, yet
Paul was ready to run the risk at Rome, if called to it: I am ready - prothumon. It denotes a great readiness
of mind, and that he was very forward to it. What he did was not for filthy
lucre, but of a ready mind. It is an excellent thing to be ready to meet every
opportunity of doing or getting good.
Romans
1:16-18
Paul here enters
upon a large discourse of justification, in the latter part of this chapter
laying down his thesis, and, in order to the proof of it, describing the
deplorable condition of the Gentile world. His transition is very handsome, and
like an orator: he was ready to preach the gospel at Rome, though a place where
the gospel was run down by those that called themselves the wits; for,
saith he, I am not ashamed of it, Rom_1:16.
There is a great deal in the gospel which such a man as Paul might be tempted
to be ashamed of, especially that he whose gospel it is was a man hanged upon a
tree, that the doctrine of it was plain, had little in it to set it off among
scholars, the professors of it were mean and despised, and every where spoken
against; yet Paul was not ashamed to own it. I reckon him a Christian indeed
that is neither ashamed of the gospel nor a shame to it. The reason of this
bold profession, taken from the nature and excellency of the gospel, introduces
his dissertation.
I. The
proposition, Rom_1:16, Rom_1:17. The excellency of the gospel lies in
this, that it reveals to us,
1. The salvation
of believers as the end: It is the power of God unto salvation. Paul is
not ashamed of the gospel, how mean and contemptible soever it may appear to a carnal
eye; for the power of God works by it the salvation of all that believe;
it shows us the way of salvation (Act_16:17),
and is the great charter by which salvation is conveyed and made over to us.
But, (1.) It is through the power of God; without that power the gospel
is but a dead letter; the revelation of the gospel is the revelation of the
arm of the Lord (Isa_53:1), as
power went along with the word of Christ to heal diseases. (2.) It is to those,
and those only, that believe. Believing interests us in the gospel salvation;
to others it is hidden. The medicine prepared will not cure the patient if it
be not taken. - To the Jew first. The lost sheep of the house of Israel
had the first offer made them, both by Christ and his apostles. You first
(Act_3:26), but upon their refusal the
apostles turned to the Gentiles, Act_13:46.
Jews and Gentiles now stand upon the same level, both equally miserable without
a Saviour, and both equally welcome to the Saviour, Col_3:11.
Such doctrine as this was surprising to the Jews, who had hitherto been the
peculiar people, and had looked with scorn upon the Gentile world; but the
long-expected Messiah proves a light to enlighten the Gentiles, as well
as the glory of his people Israel.
2. The
justification of believers as the way (Rom_1:17):
For therein, that is, in this gospel, which Paul so much triumphs in, is
the righteousness of God revealed. Our misery and ruin being the product
and consequent of our iniquity, that which will show us the way of salvation
must needs show us the way of justification, and this the gospel does. The
gospel makes known a righteousness. While God is a just and holy God, and we
are guilty sinners, it is necessary we should have a righteousness wherein to
appear before him; and, blessed be God, there is such a righteousness brought
in by Messiah the prince (Dan_9:24) and
revealed in the gospel; a righteousness, that is, a gracious
method of reconciliation and acceptance, notwithstanding the guilt of our sins.
This evangelical righteousness, (1.) Is called the righteousness of God;
it is of God's appointing, of God's approving and accepting. It is so called to
cut off all pretensions to a righteousness resulting from the merit of our own
works. It is the righteousness of Christ, who is God, resulting from a
satisfaction of infinite value. (2.) It is said to be from faith to faith,
from the faithfulness of God revealing to the faith of man receiving (so some);
from the faith of dependence upon God, and dealing with him immediately, as
Adam before the fall, to the faith of dependence upon a Mediator, and so
dealing with God (so others); from the first faith, by which we are put into a
justified state, to after faith, by which we live, and are continued in that
state: and the faith that justifies us is no less than our taking Christ for
our Saviour, and becoming true Christians, according to the tenour of the
baptismal covenant; from faith engrafting us into Christ, to faith deriving
virtue from him as our root: both implied in the next words, The just shall
live by faith. Just by faith, there is faith justifying us; live by
faith, there is faith maintaining us; and so there is a righteousness
from faith to faith. Faith is all in all, both in the beginning and
progress of a Christian life. It is not from faith to works, as if faith put us
into a justified state, and then works preserved and maintained us in it, but
it is all along from faith to faith, as 2Co_3:18,
from glory to glory; it is increasing, continuing, persevering faith,
faith pressing forward, and getting ground of unbelief. To show that this is no
novel upstart doctrine, he quotes for it that famous scripture in the Old
Testament, so often mentioned in the New (Hab_2:4):
The just shall live by faith. Being justified by faith he shall live by
it both the life of grace and of glory. The prophet there had placed himself
upon the watch-tower, expecting some extraordinary discoveries (Rom_1:1), and the discovery was of the certainty
of the appearance of the promised Messiah in the fulness of time, not
withstanding seeming delays. This is there called the vision, by way of
eminence, as elsewhere the promise; and while that time is coming, as well
as when it has come, the just shall live by faith. Thus is the
evangelical righteousness from faith to faith - from Old Testament faith in a
Christ to come to New Testament faith in a Christ already come.
II. The proof of
this proposition, that both Jews and Gentiles stand in need of a righteousness
wherein to appear before God, and that neither the one nor the other have nay
of their own to plead. Justification must be either by faith or works. It
cannot be by works, which he proves at large by describing the works both of
Jews and Gentiles; and therefore he concludes it must be by faith, Rom_3:20, Rom_3:28.
The apostle, like a skilful surgeon, before he applies the plaster, searches
the wound - endeavours first to convince of guilt and wrath, and then to show
the way of salvation. This makes the gospel the more welcome. We must first see
the righteousness of God condemning, and then the righteousness of God
justifying will appear worthy of all acceptation. In general (Rom_1:18), the wrath of God is revealed.
The light of nature and the light of the law reveal the wrath of God from sin
to sin. It is well for us that the gospel reveals the justifying righteousness
of God from faith to faith. The antithesis is observable. Here is,
1. The
sinfulness of man described; he reduceth it to two heads, ungodliness and
unrighteousness; ungodliness against the laws of the first table,
unrighteousness against those of the second.
2. The cause of
that sinfulness, and that is, holding the truth in unrighteousness. Some
communes notitae, some ideas they had of the being of God, and of the
difference of good and evil; but they held them in unrighteousness, that is,
they knew and professed them in a consistency with their wicked courses. They
held the truth as a captive or prisoner, that it should not influence them, as
otherwise it would. An unrighteous wicked heart is the dungeon in which many a
good truth is detained and buried. Holding fast the form of sound words in
faith and love is the root of all religion (2Ti_1:13),
but holding it fast in unrighteousness is the root of all sin.
3. The
displeasure of God against it: The wrath of God is revealed from heaven;
not only in the written word, which is given by inspiration of God (the
Gentiles had not that), but in the providences of God, his judgments executed
upon sinners, which do not spring out of the dust, or fall out by chance, nor
are they to be ascribed to second causes, but they are a revelation from
heaven. Or wrath from heaven is revealed; it is not the wrath of a man
like ourselves, but wrath from heaven, therefore the more terrible and
the more unavoidable.
Romans
1:19-32
In this last
part of the chapter the apostle applies what he had said particularly to the
Gentile world, in which we may observe,
I. The means and
helps they had to come to the knowledge of God. Though they had not such a
knowledge of his law as Jacob and Israel had (Psa_147:20),
yet among them he left not himself without witness (Act_14:17): For that which may be known,
etc., Rom_1:19, Rom_1:20. Observe,
1. What
discoveries they had: That which may be known of God is manifest, en autois - among them; that is,
there were some even among them that had the knowledge of God, were convinced
of the existence of one supreme Numen. The philosophy of Pythagoras,
Plato, and the Stoics, discovered a great deal of the knowledge of God, as
appears by abundance of testimonies. That which may be known, which
implies that there is a great deal which may not be known. The being of God may
be apprehended, but cannot be comprehended. We cannot by searching find him
out, Job_11:7-9. Finite understandings
cannot perfectly know an infinite being; but, blessed be God, there is that
which may be known, enough to lead us to our chief end, the glorifying and
enjoying of him; and these things revealed belong to us and to our children,
while secret things are not to be pried into, Deu_29:29.
2. Whence they had these discoveries: God hath shown
it to them. Those common natural notions which they had of God were
imprinted upon their hearts by the God of nature himself, who is the Father
of lights. This sense of a Deity, and a regard to that Deity, are so
connate with the human nature that some think we are to distinguish men from
brutes by these rather than by reason.
3. By what way and means these discoveries and notices
which they had were confirmed and improved, namely, by the work of creation (Rom_1:20); For the invisible things of God,
etc.
(1.) Observe what they knew: The invisible things of
him, even his eternal power and Godhead. Though God be not the object of
sense, yet he hath discovered and made known himself by those things that are
sensible. The power and Godhead of God are invisible things, and yet are
clearly seen in their products. He works in secret (Job_23:8,
Job_23:9; Psa_139:15;
Ecc_11:5), but manifests what he has
wrought, and therein makes known his power and Godhead, and others of his
attributes which natural light apprehends in the idea of a God. They could not
come by natural light to the knowledge of the three persons in the Godhead
(though some fancy they have found footsteps of this in Plato's writings), but
they did come to the knowledge of the Godhead, at least so much knowledge as
was sufficient to have kept them from idolatry. This was that truth which they
held in unrighteousness.
(2.) How they knew it: By the things that are made,
which could not make themselves, nor fall into such an exact order and harmony
by any casual hits; and therefore must have been produced by some first cause
or intelligent agent, which first cause could be no other than an eternal
powerful God. See Psa_19:1; Isa_40:26; Act_17:24.
The workman is known by his work. The variety, multitude, order, beauty,
harmony, different nature, and excellent contrivance, of the things that are
made, the direction of them to certain ends, and the concurrence of all the
parts to the good and beauty of the whole, do abundantly prove a Creator and
his eternal power and Godhead. Thus did the light shine in the darkness. And this
from the creation of the world. Understand it either, [1.] As the topic
from which the knowledge of them is drawn. To evince this truth, we have
recourse to the great work of creation. And some think this ktisis kosmou,
this creature of the world (as it may be read), is to be understood of
man, the ktisis kat' exochēn - the most remarkable creature of
the lower world, called ktisis, Mar_16:15.
The frame and structure of human bodies, and especially the most excellent
powers, faculties, and capacities of human souls, do abundantly prove that
there is a Creator, and that he is God. Or, [2.] As the date of the discovery.
It as old as the creation of the world. In this sense apo ktiseōs is
most frequently used in scripture. These notices concerning God are not any
modern discoveries, hit upon of late, but ancient truths, which were from the
beginning. The way of the acknowledgement of God is a good old way; it was from
the beginning. Truth got the start of error.
II. Their gross idolatry, notwithstanding these
discoveries that God made to them of himself; described here, Rom_1:21-23, Rom_1:25.
We shall the less wonder at the inefficacy of these natural discoveries to
prevent the idolatry of the Gentiles if we remember how prone even the Jews,
who had scripture light to guide them, were to idolatry; so miserably are the
degenerate sons of men plunged in the mire of sense. Observe,
1. The inward cause of their idolatry, Rom_1:21, Rom_1:22.
They are therefore without excuse, in that they did know God, and from what
they knew might easily infer that it was their duty to worship him, and him
only. Though some have greater light and means of knowledge than others, yet
all have enough to leave them inexcusable. But the mischief of it was that,
(1.) They glorified him not as God. Their affections towards him, and
their awe and adoration of him, did not keep pace with their knowledge. To
glorify him as God is to glorify him only; for there can be but one infinite:
but they did not so glorify him, for they set up a multitude of other deities.
To glorify him as God is to worship him with spiritual worship; but they made
images of him. Not to glorify God as God is in effect not to glorify him at
all; to respect him as a creature is not to glorify him, but to dishonour him.
(2.) Neither were they thankful; not thankful for the favours in general
they received from God (insensibleness of God's mercies is at the bottom of our
sinful departures from him); not thankful in particular for the discoveries God
was pleased to make of himself to them. Those that do not improve the means of
knowledge and grace are justly reckoned unthankful for them. (3.) But they
became vain in their imaginations, en tois dialogismois - in
their reasonings, in their practical inferences. They had a great deal of
knowledge of general truths (Rom_1:19),
but no prudence to apply them to particular cases. Or, in their notions of God,
and the creation of the world, and the origination of mankind, and the chief
good; in these things, when they quitted the plain truth, they soon disputed
themselves into a thousand vain and foolish fancies. The several opinions and
hypotheses of the various sects of philosophers concerning these things were so
many vain imaginations. When truth is forsaken, errors multiply in infinitum
- infinitely. (4.) And their foolish heart was darkened. The
foolishness and practical wickedness of the heart cloud and darken the
intellectual powers and faculties. Nothing tends more to the blinding and
perverting of the understanding than the corruption and depravedness of the
will and affections. (5.) Professing themselves to be wise, they became
fools, Rom_1:22. This looks black
upon the philosophers, the pretenders to wisdom and professors of it. Those
that had the most luxuriant fancy, in framing to themselves the idea of a God,
fell into the most gross and absurd conceits: and it was the just punishment of
their pride and self-conceitedness. It has been observed that the most refined
nations, that made the greatest show of wisdom, were the arrantest fools in
religion. The barbarians adored the sun and moon, which of all others was the
most specious idolatry; while the learned Egyptians worshipped an ox and an
onion. The Grecians, who excelled them in wisdom, adored diseases and human
passions. The Romans, the wisest of all, worshipped the furies. And at this day
the poor Americans worship the thunder; while the ingenious Chinese adore the
devil. Thus the world by wisdom knew not God, 1Co_1:21. As a profession of wisdom is an aggravation of
folly, so a proud conceit of wisdom is the cause of a great deal of folly.
Hence we read of few philosophers who were converted to Christianity; and
Paul's preaching was no where so laughed at and ridiculed as among the learned
Athenians, Act_17:18-32. Phaskontes
einai - conceiting themselves to be wise. The plain truth of the
being of God would not content them; they thought themselves above that, and so
fell into the greatest errors.
2. The outward acts of their idolatry, Rom_1:23-25. (1.) Making images of God (Rom_1:23), by which, as much as in them lay,
they changed the glory of the incorruptible God. Compare Psa_106:20; Jer_2:11.
They ascribed a deity to the most contemptible creatures, and by them
represented God. It was the greatest honour God did to man that he made man in
the image of God; but it is the greatest dishonour man has done to God that he
has made God in the image of man. This was what God so strictly warned the Jews
against, Deu_4:15, etc. This the
apostle shows the folly of in his sermon at Athens, Act_17:29.
See Isa_40:18, etc.; Isa_44:10, etc. This is called (Rom_1:25) changing the truth of God into a
lie. As it did dishonour his glory, so it did misrepresent his being. Idols
are called lies, for they belie God, as if he had a body, whereas he is a
Spirit, Jer_23:14; Hos_7:1. Teachers of lies, Hab_2:18. (2.) Giving divine honour to the
creature: Worshipped and served the creature, para ton ktisanta -
besides the Creator. They did own a supreme Numen in their
profession, but they did in effect disown him by the worship they paid to the
creature; for God will be all or none. Or, above the Creator, paying
more devout respect to their inferior deities, stars, heroes, demons, thinking
the supreme God inaccessible, or above their worship. The sin itself was their
worshipping the creature at all; but this is mentioned as an aggravation of the
sin, that they worshipped the creature more than the Creator. This was the
general wickedness of the Gentile world, and became twisted in with their laws
and government; in compliance with which even the wise men among them, who knew
and owned a supreme God and were convinced of the nonsense and absurdity of
their polytheism and idolatry, yet did as the rest of their neighbours did. Seneca,
in his book De Superstitione, as it is quoted by Aug. de Civit. Dei,
lib. 6, cap. 10 (for the book itself is lost), after he had largely shown the
great folly and impiety of the vulgar religion, in divers instances of it, yet
concludes, Quae omnia sapiens servabit tanquam legibus jussa, non tanquam
diis grata - All which a wise man will observe as established by law, not
imagining them grateful to the gods. And afterwards, Omnem istam
ignobilem deorum turbam, quam longo aevo longa superstitio congessit, sic
adorabimus, ut meminerimus cultum ejus magis ad morem quam ad rem pertinere -
All this ignoble rout of gods, which ancient superstition has amassed together
by long prescription, we will so adore as to remember that the worship of them
is rather a compliance with custom than material in itself. Upon which
Augustine observes, Colebat quod reprehendebat, agebat quod arguebat, quod
culpabat adorabat - He worshipped that which he censured, he did that which he
had proved wrong, and he adored what he found fault with. I mention this
thus largely because methinks it doth fully explain that of the apostle here (Rom_1:18): Who hold the truth in
unrighteousness. It is observable that upon the mention of the dishonour
done to God by the idolatry of the Gentiles the apostle, in the midst of his
discourse, expresses himself in an awful adoration of God: Who is blessed
for ever. Amen. When we see or hear of any contempt cast upon God or his
name, we should thence take occasion to think and speak highly and honourably
of him. In this, as in other things, the worse others are, the better we should
be. Blessed for ever, notwithstanding these dishonours done to his name:
though there are those that do not glorify him, yet he is glorified, and will
be glorified to eternity.
III. The judgments of God upon them for this idolatry;
not many temporal judgments (the idolatrous nations were the conquering ruling
nations of the world), but spiritual judgments, giving them up to the most
brutish and unnatural lusts. Paredōken autous - He gave them up;
it is thrice repeated here, Rom_1:24, Rom_1:26, Rom_1:28.
Spiritual judgments are of all judgments the sorest, and to be most dreaded.
Observe,
1. By whom they were given up. God gave them up, in a
way of righteous judgment, as the just punishment of their idolatry - taking
off the bridle of restraining grace - leaving them to themselves - letting them
alone; for his grace is his own, he is debtor to no man, he may give or
withhold his grace at pleasure. Whether this giving up be a positive act of God
or only privative we leave to the schools to dispute: but this we are sure of
that it is no new thing for God to give men up to their own hearts' lusts, to
send them strong delusions, to let Satan loose upon them, nay, to lay
stumbling-blocks before them. And yet God is not the author of sin, but herein
infinitely just and holy; for, though the greatest wickedness follow upon this
giving up, the fault of that is to be laid upon the sinner's wicked heart. If
the patient be obstinate, and will not submit to the methods prescribed, but
wilfully takes and does that which is prejudicial to him, the physician is not
to be blamed if he give him up as in a desperate condition; and all the fatal
symptoms that follow are not to be imputed to the physician, but to the disease
itself and to the folly and wilfulness of the patient.
2. To what they were given up.
(1.) To uncleanness and vile affections, Rom_1:24, Rom_1:26,
Rom_1:27. Those that would not
entertain the more pure and refined notices of natural light, which tend to
preserve the honour of God, justly forfeited those more gross and palpable
sentiments which preserve the honour of human nature. Man being in honour,
and refusing to understand the God that made him, thus becomes worse than the beasts
that perish, Psa_49:20. Thus one,
by the divine permission, becomes the punishment of another; but it is (as it
said here) through the lusts of their own hearts - there all the fault
is to be laid. Those who dishonoured God were given up to dishonour themselves.
A man cannot be delivered up to a greater slavery than to be given up to his
own lusts. Such are given over, like the Egyptians (Isa_19:4),
into the hand of a cruel lord. The particular instances of their uncleanness
and vile affections are their unnatural lusts, for which many of the heathen,
even of those among them who passed for wise men, as Solon and Zeno, were
infamous, against the plainest and most obvious dictates of natural light. The
crying iniquity of Sodom and Gomorrah, for which God rained hell from heaven
upon them, became not only commonly practised, but avowed, in the pagan
nations. Perhaps the apostle especially refers to the abominations that were
committed in the worship of their idol-gods, in which the worst of
uncleannesses were prescribed for the honour of their gods; dunghill service
for dunghill gods: the unclean spirits delight in such ministrations. In the
church of Rome, where the pagan idolatries are revived, images worshipped, and
saints only substituted in the room of demons, we hear of these same
abominations going barefaced, licensed by the pope (Fox's Acts and
Monuments, vol. 1, p. 808), and not only commonly perpetrated, but
justified and pleaded for by some of their cardinals: the same spiritual
plagues for the same spiritual wickednesses. See what wickedness there is in
the nature of man. How abominable and filthy is man! Lord, what is man?
says David; what a vile creature is he when left to himself! How much are we
beholden to the restraining grace of God for the preserving any thing of the
honour and decency of the human nature! For, were it not for this, man, who was
made but little lower than the angels, would make himself a great deal lower
than the devils. This is said to be that recompence of their error which was
meet. The Judge of all the earth does right, and observes a meetness
between the sin and the punishment of it.
(2.) To a reprobate mind in these abominations, Rom_1:28.
[1.] They did not like to retain God in their
knowledge. The blindness of their understandings was caused by the wilful
aversion of their wills and affections. They did not retain God in their
knowledge, because they did not like it. They would neither know nor do any
thing but just what pleased themselves. It is just the temper of carnal hearts;
the pleasing of themselves is their highest end. There are many that have God
in their knowledge, they cannot help it, the light shines so fully in their
faces; but they do not retain him there. They say to the Almighty, Depart
(Job_21:14), and they therefore do not
retain God in their knowledge because it thwarts and contradicts their lusts;
they do not like it. In their knowledge - en epignōsei. There is a
difference between gnōsis and epignōsis, the knowledge
and the acknowledgement of God; the pagans knew God, but did not, would
not, acknowledge him.
[2.] Answerable to this wilfulness of theirs, in
gainsaying the truth, God gave them over to a wilfulness in the grossest sins,
here called a reprobate mind - eis adokimon noun, a mind void of
all sense and judgment to discern things that differ, so that they could not
distinguish their right hand from their left in spiritual things. See whither a
course of sin leads, and into what a gulf it plunges the sinner at last; hither
fleshly lusts have a direct tendency. Eyes full of adultery cannot cease
from sin, 2Pe_2:14. This reprobate
mind was a blind scared conscience, past feeling, Eph_4:19.
When the judgment is once reconciled to sin, the man is in the suburbs of hell.
At first Pharaoh hardened his heart, but afterwards God hardened Pharaoh's
heart. Thus wilful hardness is justly punished with judicial hardness. - To
do those things which are not convenient. This phrase may seem to bespeak a
diminutive evil, but here it is expressive of the grossest enormities; things
that are not agreeable to men, but contradict the very light and law of nature.
And here he subjoins a black list of those unbecoming things which the Gentiles
were guilty of, being delivered up to a reprobate mind. No wickedness so heinous,
so contrary to the light of nature, to the law of nations, and to all the
interests of mankind, but a reprobate mind will comply with it. By the
histories of those times, especially the accounts we have of the then
prevailing dispositions and practices of the Romans when the ancient virtue of
that commonwealth was so degenerated, it appears that these sins here mentioned
were then and there reigning national sins. No fewer than twenty-three several
sorts of sins and sinners are here specified, Rom_1:29-31.
Here the devil's seat is; his name is legion, for they are many. It was time to
have the gospel preached among them, for the world had need of reformation.
First, Sins against the first table: Haters of God.
Here is the devil in his own colours, sin appearing sin. Could it be imagined
that rational creatures should hate the chief good, and depending creatures
abhor the fountain of their being? And yet so it is. Every sin has in it a
hatred of God; but some sinners are more open and avowed enemies to him than
others, Zec_11:8. Proud men and
boasters cope with God himself, and put those crowns upon their own heads
which must be cast before his throne.
Secondly, Sins against the second table. These are especially
mentioned, because in these things they had a clearer light. In general here is
a charge of unrighteousness. This is put first, for every sin is
unrighteousness; it is withholding that which is due, perverting that which is
right; it is especially put for second-table sins, doing as we would not be
done by. Against the fifth commandment: Disobedient to parents, and without
natural affection - astorgous, that is parents unkind and cruel to
their children. Thus, when duty fails on one side, it commonly fails on the
other. Disobedient children are justly punished with unnatural parents; and, on
the contrary, unnatural parents with disobedient children. Against the sixth
commandment: Wickedness (doing mischief for mischief's sake), maliciousness,
envy, murder, debate (eridos - contention), malignity,
despiteful, implacable, unmerciful; all expressions of that hatred of our
brother which is heart-murder. Against the seventh commandment: Fornication;
he mentions no more, having spoken before of other uncleannesses. Against the
eighth commandment: Unrighteousness, covetousness. Against the ninth
commandment: Deceit, whisperers, back-biters, covenant-breakers, lying
and slandering. Here are two generals not before mentioned - inventors of
evil things, and without understanding; wise to do evil, and yet having no
knowledge to do good. The more deliberate and politic sinners are in inventing
evil things, the greater is their sin: so quick of invention in sin, and yet without
understanding (stark fools) in the thoughts of God. Here is enough to humble us
all, in the sense of our original corruption; for every heart by nature has in
it the seed and spawn of all these sins. In the close he mentions the
aggravations of the sins, Rom_1:32. 1.
They knew the judgment of God; that is, (1.) They knew the law. The
judgment of God is that which his justice requires, which, because he is just,
he judgeth meet to be done. (2.) They knew the penalty; so it is explained
here: They knew that those who commit such things were worthy of death,
eternal death; their own consciences could not but suggest this to them, and
yet they ventured upon it. It is a great aggravation of sin when it is
committed against knowledge (Jam_4:17),
especially against the knowledge of the judgment of God. It is daring
presumption to run upon the sword's point. It argues the heart much hardened,
and very resolutely set upon sin. 2. They not only do the same, but have
pleasure in those that do them. The violence of some present temptation may
hurry a man into the commission of such sins himself in which the vitiated
appetite may take a pleasure; but to be pleased with other people's sins is to
love sin for sin's sake: it is joining in a confederacy for the devil's kingdom
and interest. Suneudokousi: they do not only commit sin, but they defend
and justify it, and encourage others to do the like. Our own sins are much
aggravated by our concurrence with, and complacency in, the sins of others.
Now lay all this together, and
then say whether the Gentile world, lying under so much guilt and corruption,
could be justified before God by any works of their own.
Romans
2:1-16
In the former
chapter the apostle had represented the state of the Gentile world to be as bad
and black as the Jews were ready enough to pronounce it. And now, designing to
show that the state of the Jews was very bad too, and their sin in many
respects more aggravated, to prepare his way he sets himself in this part of
the chapter to show that God would proceed upon equal terms of justice with
Jews and Gentiles; and now with such a partial hand as the Jews were apt to
think he would use in their favour.
I. He arraigns
them for their censoriousness and self-conceit (Rom_2:1):
Thou art inexcusable, O man, whosoever thou art that judgest. As he
expresses himself in general terms, the admonition may reach those many
masters (Jam_3:1), of whatever
nation or profession they are, that assume to themselves a power to censure,
control, and condemn others. But he intends especially the Jews, and to them
particularly he applies this general charge (Rom_2:21),
Thou who teachest another teachest thou not thyself? The Jews were
generally a proud sort of people, that looked with a great deal of scorn and
contempt upon the poor Gentiles, as not worthy to be set with the dogs of their
flock; while in the mean time they were themselves as bad and immoral - though
not idolaters, as the Gentiles, yet sacrilegious, Rom_2:22.
Therefore thou art inexcusable. If the Gentiles, who had but the light
of nature, were inexcusable (Rom_1:20),
much more the Jews, who had the light of the law, the revealed will of God, and
so had greater helps than the Gentiles.
II. He asserts
the invariable justice of the divine government, Rom_2:2,
Rom_2:3. To drive home the conviction,
he here shows what a righteous God that is with whom we have to do, and how
just in his proceedings. It is usual with the apostle Paul, in his writings,
upon mention of some material point, to make large digressions upon it; as here
concerning the justice of God (Rom_2:2),
That the judgment of God is according to truth, - according to the
eternal rules of justice and equity, - according to the heart, and not
according to the outward appearance (1Sa_16:7),
- according to the works, and not with respect to persons, is a doctrine which
we are all sure of, for he would not be God if he were not just; but it behoves
those especially to consider it who condemn others for those things which they
themselves are guilty of, and so, while they practise sin and persist in that
practice, think to bribe the divine justice by protesting against sin and
exclaiming loudly upon others that are guilty, as if preaching against sin
would atone for the guilt of it. But observe how he puts it to the sinner's
conscience (Rom_2:3): Thinkest thou
this, O man? O man, a rational creature, a dependent creature, made by God,
subject under him, and accountable to him. The case is so plain that we may
venture to appeal to the sinner's own thoughts: “Canst thou think that thou
shalt escape the judgment of God? Can the heart-searching God be imposed
upon by formal pretences, the righteous Judge of all so bribed and put off?”
The most plausible politic sinners, who acquit themselves before men with the
greatest confidence, cannot escape the judgment of God, cannot avoid
being judged and condemned.
III. He draws up
a charge against them (Rom_2:4, Rom_2:5) consisting of two branches: -
1. Slighting the
goodness of God (Rom_2:4), the
riches of his goodness. This is especially applicable to the Jews, who had
singular tokens of the divine favour. Means are mercies, and the more light we
sin against the more love we sin against. Low and mean thoughts of the divine
goodness are at the bottom of a great deal of sin. There is in every wilful sin
an interpretative contempt of the goodness of God; it is spurning at his
bowels, particularly the goodness of his patience, his forbearance and
long-suffering, taking occasion thence to be so much the more bold in sin, Ecc_8:11. Not knowing, that is, not
considering, not knowing practically and with application, that the goodness
of God leadeth thee, the design of it is to lead thee, to repentance.
It is not enough for us to know that God's goodness leads to repentance, but we
must know that it leads us - thee in particular. See here what method
God takes to bring sinners to repentance. He leads them, not drives them like
beasts, but leads them like rational creatures, allures them (Hos_2:14); and it is goodness that leads, bands
of love, Hos_11:4. Compare Jer_31:3. The consideration of the goodness of
God, his common goodness to all (the goodness of his providence, of his
patience, and of his offers), should be effectual to bring us all to
repentance; and the reason why so many continue in impenitency is because they
do not know and consider this.
2. Provoking the
wrath of God, Rom_2:5. The rise of this
provocation is a hard and impenitent heart; and the ruin of sinners is
their walking after such a heart, being led by it. To sin is to walk in the way
of the heart; and when that is a hard and impenitent heart (contracted hardness
by long custom, besides that which is natural), how desperate must the course
needs be! The provocation is expressed by treasuring up wrath. Those
that go on in a course of sin are treasuring up unto themselves wrath. A
treasure denotes abundance. It is a treasure that will be spending to eternity,
and yet never exhausted; and yet sinners are still adding to it as to a
treasure. Every wilful sin adds to the score, and will inflame the reckoning;
it brings a branch to their wrath, as some read that (Eze_8:17), they put the branch to their nose.
A treasure denotes secrecy. The treasury or magazine of wrath is the heart of
God himself, in which it lies hid, as treasures in some secret place sealed up;
see Deu_32:34; Job_14:17. But withal it denotes reservation to
some further occasion; as the treasures of the hail are reserved against the
day of battle and war, Job_38:22, Job_38:23. These treasures will be broken open
like the fountains of the great deep, Gen_7:11.
They are treasured up against the day of wrath, when they will be
dispensed by the wholesale, poured out by full vials. Though the present day be
a day of patience and forbearance towards sinners, yet there is a day of wrath
coming-wrath, and nothing but wrath. Indeed, every day is to sinners a day of
wrath, for God is angry with the wicked every day (Psa_7:11), but there is the great day of
wrath coming, Rev_6:17. And that
day of wrath will be the day of the revelation of the righteous judgment of
God. The wrath of God is not like our wrath, a heat and passion; no, fury
is not in him (Isa_27:4): but it is a
righteous judgment, his will to punish sin, because he hates it as contrary to
his nature. This righteous judgment of God is now many times concealed in the
prosperity and success of sinners, but shortly it will be manifested before all
the world, these seeming disorders set to rights, and the heavens shall declare
his righteousness, Psa_50:6. Therefore
judge nothing before the time.
IV. He describes
the measures by which God proceeds in his judgment. Having mentioned the
righteous judgment of God in Rom_2:5,
he here illustrates that judgment, and the righteousness of it, and shows what
we may expect from God, and by what rule he will judge the world. The equity of
distributive justice is the dispensing of frowns and favours with respect to
deserts and without respect to persons: such is the righteous judgment of God.
1. He will render
to every man according to his deeds (Rom_2:6),
a truth often mentioned in scripture, to prove that the Judge of all the earth
does right.
(1.) In
dispensing his favours; and this is mentioned twice here, both in Rom_2:7 and Rom_2:10.
For he delights to show mercy. Observe,
[1.] The objects
of his favour: Those who by patient continuance, etc. By this we may try
our interest in the divine favour, and may hence be directed what course to
take, that we may obtain it. Those whom the righteous God will reward are, First,
Such as fix to themselves the right end, that seek for glory, and honour,
and immortality; that is, the glory and honour which are immortal -
acceptance with God here and for ever. There is a holy ambition which is at the
bottom of all practical religion. This is seeking the kingdom of God, looking
in our desires and aims as high as heaven, and resolved to take up with nothing
short of it. This seeking implies a loss, sense of that loss, desire to retrieve
it, and pursuits and endeavours consonant to those desires. Secondly,
Such as, having fixed the right end, adhere to the right way: A patient
continuance in well-doing. 1. There must be well-doing, working good, Rom_2:10. It is not enough to know well, and
speak well, and profess well, and promise well, but we must do well: do that
which is good, not only for the matter of it, but for the manner of it. We must
do it well. 2. A continuance in well-doing. Not for a fit and a start, like the
morning cloud and the early dew; but we must endure to the end: it is
perseverance that wins the crown. 3. A patient continuance. This patience
respects not only the length of the work, but the difficulties of it and the
oppositions and hardships we may meet with in it. Those that will do well and
continue in it must put on a great deal of patience.
[2.] The product
of his favour. He will render to such eternal life. Heaven is life, eternal
life, and it is the reward of those that patiently continue in well-doing; and
it is called (Rom_2:10) glory,
honour, and peace. Those that seek for glory and honour (Rom_2:7) shall have them. Those that seek for
the vain glory and honour of this world often miss of them, and are
disappointed; but those that seek for immortal glory and honour shall have
them, and not only glory and honour, but peace. Worldly glory and
honour are commonly attended with trouble; but heavenly glory and honour have
peace with them, undisturbed everlasting peace.
(2.) In
dispensing his frowns (Rom_2:8, Rom_2:9). Observe, [1.] The objects of his
frowns. In general those that do evil, more particularly described to be such
as are contentious and do not obey the truth. Contentious against God.
every wilful sin is a quarrel with God, it is striving with our Maker (Isa_45:9), the most desperate contention. The
Spirit of God strives with sinners (Gen_6:3),
and impenitent sinners strive against the Spirit, rebel against the light (Job_24:13), hold fast deceit, strive to retain
that sin which the Spirit strives to part them from. Contentious, and do not
obey the truth. The truths of religion are not only to be known, but to be
obeyed; they are directing, ruling, commanding; truths relating to practice.
Disobedience to the truth is interpreted a striving against it. But obey
unrighteousness - do what unrighteousness bids them do. Those that refuse
to be the servants of truth will soon be the slaves of unrighteousness. [2.]
The products or instances of these frowns: Indignation and wrath,
tribulation and anguish. These are the wages of sin. Indignation and
wrath the causes - tribulation and anguish the necessary and
unavoidable effects. And this upon the soul; souls are the vessels of
that wrath, the subjects of that tribulation and anguish. Sin qualifies the
soul for this wrath. The soul is that in or of man which is alone immediately
capable of this indignation, and the impressions or effects of anguish
therefrom. Hell is eternal tribulation and anguish, the product of wrath and
indignation. This comes of contending with God, of setting briers and thorns
before a consuming fire, Isa_27:4.
Those that will not bow to his golden sceptre will certainly be broken by his
iron rod. Thus will God render to every man according to his deeds.
2. There is
no respect of persons with God, Rom_2:11.
As to the spiritual state, there is a respect of persons; but not as to outward
relation or condition. Jews and Gentiles stand upon the same level before God.
This was Peter's remark upon the first taking down of the partition-wall (Act_10:34), that God is no respecter of persons;
and it is explained in the next words, that in every nation he that fears
God, and works righteousness, is accepted of him. God does not save men
with respect to their external privileges or their barren knowledge and profession
of the truth, but according as their state and disposition really are. In
dispensing both his frowns and favours it is both to Jew and Gentile. If to the
Jews first, who had greater privileges, and made a greater profession, yet also
to the Gentiles, whose want of such privileges will neither excuse them
from the punishment of their ill-doing nor bar them out from the reward of
their well-doing (see Col_3:11); for
shall not the Judge of all the earth do right?
V. He proves the
equity of his proceedings with all, when he shall actually come to Judge them (Rom_2:12-16), upon this principle, that that
which is the rule of man's obedience is the rule of God's judgment. Three
degrees of light are revealed to the children of men: -
1. The light of
nature. This the Gentiles have, and by this they shall be judged: As many as
have sinned without law shall perish without law; that is, the unbelieving
Gentiles, who had no other guide but natural conscience, no other motive but
common mercies, and had not the law of Moses nor any supernatural revelation,
shall not be reckoned with for the transgression of the law they never had, nor
come under the aggravation of the Jews' sin against and judgment by the written
law; but they shall be judged by, as they sin against, the law of nature, not
only as it is in their hearts, corrupted, defaced, and imprisoned in
unrighteousness, but as in the uncorrupt original the Judge keeps by him.
Further to clear this (Rom_2:14, Rom_2:15), in a parenthesis, he evinces that the
light of nature was to the Gentiles instead of a written law. He had said (Rom_2:12) they had sinned without law,
which looks like a contradiction; for where there is no law there is no
transgression. But, says he, though they had not the written law (Psa_147:20), they had that which was equivalent,
not to the ceremonial, but to the moral law. They had the work of the law.
He does not mean that work which the law commands, as if they could produce a
perfect obedience; but that work which the law does. The work of the law is to
direct us what to do, and to examine us what we have done. Now, (1.) They had
that which directed them what to do by the light of nature: by the force and
tendency of their natural notions and dictates they apprehended a clear and
vast difference between good and evil. They did by nature the things
contained in the law. They had a sense of justice and equity, honour and
purity, love and charity; the light of nature taught obedience to parents, pity
to the miserable, conservation of public peace and order, forbade murder,
stealing, lying, perjury, etc. Thus they were a law unto themselves.
(2.) They had that which examined them as to what they had done: Their
conscience also bearing witness. They had that within them which approved
and commended what was well done and which reproached them for what was done
amiss. Conscience is a witness, and first or last will bear witness, though for
a time it may be bribed or brow-beaten. It is instead of a thousand witnesses,
testifying of that which is most secret; and their thoughts accusing or
excusing, passing a judgment upon the testimony of conscience by applying
the law to the fact. Conscience is that candle of the Lord which was not quite
put out, no, not in the Gentile world. The heathen have witnessed to the
comfort of a good conscience.
- Hic murus aheneus esto,
Nil conscire sibi
-
Be this thy brazen
bulwark of defence,
Still to preserve thy
conscious innocence.
- Hor.
and to the terror of a bad one:
- Quos diri conseia facti
Mens habet attonitos, et surdo verbere
caedit -
No lash is heard, and
yet the guilty heart
Is tortur'd with a
self-inflicted smart
- Juv. Sat.
13.
Their thoughts
the meanwhile, metaxu
allēlōn - among
themselves, or one with another. The same light and law of nature that
witnesses against sin in them, and witnessed against it in others, accused or
excused one another. Vicissim, so some read it, by turns;
according as they observed or broke these natural laws and dictates, their
consciences did either acquit or condemn them. All this did evince that they
had that which was to them instead of a law, which they might have been
governed by, and which will condemn them, because they were not so guided and
governed by it. So that the guilty Gentiles are left without excuse. God is
justified in condemning them. They cannot plead ignorance, and therefore are
likely to perish if they have not something else to plead.
2. The light of the law. This the Jews had, and by this
they shall be judged (Rom_2:12): As
many as have sinned in the law shall be judged by the law. They sinned, not
only having the law, but en nomō - in the law, in the midst of
so much law, in the face and light of so pure and clear a law, the directions
of which were so very full and particular, and the sanctions of it so very
cogent and enforcing. These shall be judged by the law; their punishment
shall be, as their sin is, so much the greater for their having the law. The
Jew first, Rom_2:9. It shall be
more tolerable for Tyre and Sidon. Thus Moses did accuse them (Joh_5:45), and they fell under the many stripes
of him that knew his master's will, and did it not, Luk_12:47.
The Jews prided themselves very much in the law; but, to confirm what he had
said, the apostle shows (Rom_2:13) that
their having, and hearing, and knowing the law, would not justify them, but
their doing it. The Jewish doctors bolstered up their followers with an opinion
that all that were Jews, how bad soever they lived, should have a place in the
world to come. This the apostle here opposes: it was a great privilege that
they had the law, but not a saving privilege, unless they lived up to the law
they had, which it is certain the Jews did not, and therefore they had need of
a righteousness wherein to appear before God. We may apply it to the gospel: it
is not hearing, but doing that will save us, Joh_13:17;
Jam_1:22.
3. The light of the gospel: and according to this those
that enjoyed the gospel shall be judge (Rom_2:16):
According to my gospel; not meant of any fifth gospel written by Paul,
as some conceit; or of the gospel written by Luke, as Paul's amanuensis
(Euseb. Hist. lib 3, cap. 8), but the gospel in general, called Paul's
because he was a preacher of it. As many as are under that dispensation shall be
judged according to that dispensation, Mar_16:16.
Some refer those words, according to my gospel, to what he says of the
day of judgment: “There will come a day of judgment, according as I have in my
preaching often told you; and that will be the day of the final judgment both
of Jews and Gentiles.” It is good for us to get acquainted with what is
revealed concerning that day. (1.) There is a day set for a general judgment.
The day, the great day, his day that is coming, Psa_37:13.
(2.) The judgment of that day will be put into the hands of Jesus Christ. God
shall judge by Jesus Christ, Act_17:31.
It will be part of the reward of his humiliation. Nothing speaks more terror to
sinners, or more comfort to saints, than this, that Christ shall be the Judge.
(3.) The secrets of men shall then be judged. Secret services shall be then
rewarded, secret sins shall be then punished, hidden things shall be brought to
light. That will be the great discovering day, when that which is now done in
corners shall be proclaimed to all the world.
Romans
2:17-29
In the latter
part of the chapter the apostle directs his discourse more closely to the Jews,
and shows what sins they were guilty of, notwithstanding their profession and
vain pretensions. He had said (Rom_2:13)
that not the hearers but the doers of the law are justified; and he here
applies that great truth to the Jews. Observe,
I. He allows
their profession (Rom_2:17-20) and
specifies their particular pretensions and privileges in which they prided
themselves, that they might see he did not condemn them out of ignorance of
what they had to say for themselves; no, he knew the best of their cause.
1. They were a
peculiar people, separated and distinguished from all others by their having
the written law and the special presence of God among them. (1.) Thou art
called a Jew; not so much in parentage as profession. It was a very
honourable title. Salvation was of the Jews; and this they were very proud of,
to be a people by themselves; and yet many that were so called were the vilest
of men. It is no new thing for the worst practices to be shrouded under the
best names, for many of the synagogue of Satan to say they are Jews (Rev_2:9), for a generation of vipers to boast
they have Abraham to their father, Mat_3:7-9.
(2.) And restest in the law; that is, they took a pride in this, that
they had the law among them, had it in their books, read it in their
synagogues. They were mightily puffed up with this privilege, and thought this
enough to bring them to heaven, though they did not live, up to the law. To
rest in the law, with a rest of complacency and acquiescence, is good; but to
rest in it with a rest of pride, and slothfulness, and carnal security, is the
ruin of souls. The temple of the Lord, Jer_7:4.
Bethel their confidence, Jer_48:13.
Haughty because of the holy mountain, Zep_3:11.
It is a dangerous thing to rest in external privileges, and not to improve
them. (3.) And makest thy boast of God. See how the best things may be
perverted and abused. A believing, humble, thankful glorying in God, is the
root and summary of all religion, Psa_34:2;
Isa_45:15; 1Co_1:31.
But a proud vainglorious boasting in God, and in the outward profession of his
name, is the root and summary of all hypocrisy. Spiritual pride is of all kinds
of pride the most dangerous.
2. They were a
knowing to people (Rom_2:18): and
knowest his will, thelēma - the will. God's will
is the will, the sovereign, absolute, irresistible will. The world will then,
and not till then, be set to rights, when God's will is the only will, and all
other wills are melted into it. They did not only know the truth of God, but
the will of God, that which he would have them to do. It is possible for a
hypocrite to have a great deal of knowledge in the will of God. - And approvest
the things that are more excellent - dokimazeis ta diapheronta. Paul
prays for it for his friends as a very great attainment, Phi_1:10. Eis to dokemazein humas ta
diapheronta. Understand it, (1.) Of a good apprehension in the things of
God, reading it thus, Thou discernest things that differ, knowest
how to distinguish between good and evil, to separate between the precious and
the vile (Jer_15:19), to make a
difference between the unclean and the clean, Lev_11:47.
Good and bad lie sometimes so near together that it is not easy to distinguish
them; but the Jews, having the touchstone of the law ready at hand, were, or at
least thought they were, able to distinguish, to cleave the hair in doubtful
cases. A man may be a good casuist and yet a bad Christian - accurate in the
notion, but loose and careless in the application. Or, we may, with De Dieu,
understand controversies by the ta diapheronta. A man may be well
skilled in the controversies of religion, and yet a stranger to the power of
godliness. (2.) Of a warm affection to the things of God, as we read it, Approvest
the things that are excellent. There are excellences in religion which a
hypocrite may approve of: there may be a consent of the practical judgment to
the law, that it is good, and yet that consent overpowerd by the lusts of
the flesh, and of the mind: -
- Video
meliora proboque
Deteriora
sequor.
I see
the better, but pursue the worse.
and
it is common for sinners to make that approbation an excuse which is really a
very great aggravation of a sinful course. They got this acquaintance with, and
affection to, that which is good, but being instructed out of the law, katēchoumenos
- being catechised. The word signifies an early instruction in
childhood. It is a great privilege and advantage to be well catechised betimes.
It was the custom of the Jews to take a great deal of pains in teaching their
children when they were young, and all their lessons were out of the law;
it were well if Christians were but as industrious to teach their children out
of the gospel. Now this is called (Rom_2:20),
The form of knowledge, and of the truth in the law, that is, the show
and appearance of it. Those whose knowledge rests in an empty notion, and does
not make an impression on their hearts, have only the form of it, like a
picture well drawn and in good colours, but which wants life. A form of
knowledge produces but a form of godliness, 2Ti_3:5.
A form of knowledge may deceive men, but cannot impose upon the piercing eye of
the heart-searching God. A form may be the vehicle of the power; but he that
takes up with that only is like sounding brass and a tinkling cymbal.
3. They were a teaching people, or at least thought
themselves so (Rom_2:19, Rom_2:20): And art confident that thou
thyself art a guide of the blind. Apply it, (1.) To the Jews in general.
They thought themselves guides to the poor blind Gentiles that sat in darkness,
were very proud of this, that whoever would have the knowledge of God must be
beholden to them for it. All other nations must come to school to them, to
learn what is good, and what the Lord requires; for they had the lively
oracles. (2.) To their rabbis, and doctors, and leading men among them, who
were especially those that judged others, Rom_2:1.
These prided themselves much in the possession they had got of Moses's chair,
and the deference which the vulgar paid to their dictates; and the apostle
expresses this in several terms, a guide of the blind, a light of those who
are in darkness, an instructor of the foolish, a teacher of babes, the
better to set forth their proud conceit of themselves, and contempt of others.
This was a string they loved to be harping upon, heaping up titles of honour
upon themselves. The best work, when it is prided in, is unacceptable to God.
It is good to instruct the foolish, and to teach the babes: but considering our
own ignorance, and folly, and inability to make these teachings successful
without God, there is nothing in it to be proud of.
II. He aggravates their provocations (Rom_2:21-24) from two things: -
1. That they sinned against their knowledge and
profession, did that themselves which they taught others to avoid: Thou that
teachest another, teachest thou not thyself? Teaching is a piece of that
charity which begins at home, though it must not end there. It was the
hypocrisy of the Pharisees that they did not do as they taught (Mat_23:3), but pulled down with their lives what
they built up with their preaching; for who will believe those who do not
believe themselves? Examples will govern more than rules. The greatest
obstructors of the success of the word are those whose bad lives contradict
their good doctrine, who in the pulpit preach so well that it is a pity they
should ever come out, and out of the pulpit live so ill that it is a pity they
should ever come in. He specifies three particular sins that abound among the
Jews: - (1.) Stealing. This is charged upon some that declared God's statutes (Psa_50:16, Psa_50:18),
When thou sawest a thief, then thou consentedst with him. The Pharisees
are charged with devouring widows' houses (Mat_23:14),
and that is the worst of robberies. (2.) Adultery, Rom_2:22.
This is likewise charged upon that sinner (Psa_50:18),
Thou hast been partaker with adulterers. Many of the Jewish rabbin are
said to have been notorious for this sin. (3.) Sacrilege - robbing in holy
things, which were then by special laws dedicated and devoted to God; and this
is charged upon those that professed to abhor idols. So the Jews did
remarkably, after their captivity in Babylon; that furnace separated them for
ever from the dross of their idolatry, but they dealt very treacherously in the
worship of God. It was in the latter days of the Old Testament church that they
were charged with robbing God in tithes and offerings (Mal_3:8, Mal_3:9),
converting that to their own use, and to the service of their lusts, which was,
in a special manner, set apart for God. And this is almost equivalent to
idolatry, though this sacrilege was cloaked with the abhorrence of idols. Those
will be severely reckoned with another day who, while they condemn sin in
others, do the same, or as bad, or worse, themselves.
2. That they dishonoured God by their sin, Rom_2:23, Rom_2:24.
While God and his law were an honour to them, which they boasted of and prided
themselves in, they were a dishonour to God and his law, by giving occasion to
those that were without to reflect upon their religion, as if that did countenance
and allow of such things, which, as it is their sin who draw such inferences
(for the faults of professors are not to be laid upon professions), so it is
their sin who give occasion for those inferences, and will greatly aggravate
their miscarriages. This was the condemnation in David's case, that he had
given great occasion to the enemies of the Lord to blaspheme, 2Sa_12:14. And the apostle here refers to the
same charge against their forefathers: As it is written, Rom_2:24. He does not mention the place, because
he wrote this to those that were instructed in the law (in labouring to
convince, it is some advantage to deal with those that have knowledge and are
acquainted with the scripture), but he seems to point at Isa_52:5; Eze_36:22,
Eze_36:23; and 2Sa_12:14. It is a lamentation that those who
were made to be to God for a name and for a praise should be to him a
shame and dishonour. The great evil of the sins of professors is the dishonour
done to God and religion by their profession. “Blasphemed through you;
that is, you give the occasion for it, it is through your folly and
carelessness. The reproaches you bring upon yourselves reflect upon your God,
and religion is wounded through your sides.” A good caution to professors to
walk circumspectly. See 1Ti_6:1.
III. He asserts the utter insufficiency of their
profession to clear them from the guilt of these provocations (Rom_2:25-29): Circumcision verily profiteth,
if thou keep the law; that is, obedient Jews shall not lose the reward of
their obedience, but will gain this by their being Jews, that they have a
clearer rule of obedience than the Gentiles have. God did not give the law nor
appoint circumcision in vain. This must be referred to the state of the Jews
before the ceremonial polity was abolished, otherwise circumcision to one that
professed faith in Christ was forbidden, Gal_5:1.
But he is here speaking to the Jews, whose Judaism would benefit them, if they
would but live up to the rules and laws of it; but if not “thy circumcision
is made uncircumcision; that is, thy profession will do thee no good; thou
wilt be no more justified than the uncircumcised Gentiles, but more condemned
for sinning against greater light.” The uncircumcised are in scripture branded
as unclean (Isa_52:1), as out
of the covenant, (Eph_2:11, Eph_2:12) and wicked Jews will be dealt with as
such. See Jer_9:25, Jer_9:26. Further to illustrate this,
1. He shows that the uncircumcised Gentiles, if they
live up to the light they have, stand upon the same level with the Jews; if they
keep the righteousness of the law (Rom_2:26),
fulfil the law (Rom_2:27); that
is, by submitting sincerely to the conduct of natural light, perform the matter
of the law. Some understand it as putting the case of a perfect obedience to
the law: “If the Gentiles could perfectly keep the law, they would be justified
by it as well as the Jews.” But it seems rather to be meant of such an
obedience as some of the Gentiles did attain to. The case of Cornelius will
clear it. Though he was a Gentile, and uncircumcised, yet, being a devout
man, and one that feared God with all his house (Act_10:2), he was accepted, Rom_2:4.
Doubtless, there were many such instances: and they were the uncircumcision,
that kept the righteousness of the law; and of such he says, (1.) That they
were accepted with God, as if they had been circumcised. Their
uncircumcision was counted for circumcision. Circumcision was indeed to
the Jews a commanded duty, but it was not to all the world a necessary
condition of justification and salvation. (2.) That their obedience was a great
aggravation of the disobedience of the Jews, who had the letter of the law, Rom_2:27. Judge thee, that is, help to
add to thy condemnation, who by the letter and circumcision dost transgress.
Observe, To carnal professors the law is but the letter; they read it as a bare
writing, but are not ruled by it as a law. They did transgress, not only
notwithstanding the letter and circumcision, but by it, that is, they thereby
hardened themselves in sin. External privileges, if they do not do us good, do
us hurt. The obedience of those that enjoy less means, and make a less
profession, will help to condemn those that enjoy greater means, and make a
greater profession, but do not live up to it.
2. He describes the true
circumcision, Rom_2:28, Rom_2:29. (1.) It is not that which is
outward in the flesh and in the letter. This is not to drive us off from
the observance of external institutions (they are good in their place), but
from trusting to them and resting in them as sufficient to bring us to heaven,
taking up with a name to live, without being alive indeed. He is not a Jew,
that is, shall not be accepted of God as the seed of believing Abraham, nor
owned as having answered the intention of the law. To be Abraham's children is
to do the works of Abraham, Joh_8:39, Joh_8:40. (2.) It is that which is inward, of
the heart, and in the spirit. It is the heart that God looks at, the
circumcising of the heart that renders us acceptable to him. See Deu_30:6. This is the circumcision that is
not made with hands, Col_2:11, Col_2:12. Casting away the body of sin.
So it is in the spirit, in our spirit as the subject, and wrought by God's
Spirit as the author of it. (3.) The praise thereof, though it be not of men,
who judge according to outward appearance, yet it is of God, that is,
God himself will own and accept and crown this sincerity; for he seeth not
as man seeth. Fair pretences and a plausible profession may deceive men:
but God cannot be so deceived; he sees through shows to realities. This is
alike true of Christianity. He is not a Christian that is one outwardly, nor is
that baptism which is outward in the flesh; but he is a Christian that is one
inwardly, and baptism is that of the heart, in the spirit, and not in the
letter, whose praise is not of men but of God.
Romans
3:1-18
I. Here the
apostle answers several objections, which might be made, to clear his way. No
truth so plain and evident but wicked wits and corrupt carnal hearts will have
something to say against it; but divine truths must be cleared from cavil.
Object.
1. If Jew and Gentile stand so much upon the same level before God, what
advantage then hath the Jew? Hath not God often spoken with a great deal of
respect for the Jews, as a non-such people (Deu_33:29),
a holy nation, a peculiar treasure, the seed of Abraham his friend: Did not he
institute circumcision as a badge of their church-membership, and a seal of
their covenant-relation to God? Now does not this levelling doctrine deny them
all such prerogatives, and reflect dishonour upon the ordinance of
circumcision, as a fruitless insignificant thing.
Answer.
The Jews are, notwithstanding this, a people greatly privileged and honoured,
have great means and helps, though these be not infallibly saving (Rom_3:2): Much every way. The door is
open to the Gentiles as well as the Jews, but the Jews have a fairer way up to
this door, by reason of their church-privileges, which are not to be
undervalued, though many that have them perish eternally for not improving
them. He reckons up many of the Jews' privileges Rom_9:4,
Rom_9:5; here he mentions but one
(which is indeed instar omnium - equivalent to all), that unto
them were committed the oracles of God, that is, the scriptures of the Old
Testament, especially the law of Moses, which is called the lively oracles
(Act_7:38), and those types, promises,
and prophecies, which relate to Christ and the gospel. The scriptures are the
oracles of God: they are a divine revelation, they come from heaven, are of
infallible truth, and of eternal consequence as oracles. The Septuagint call
the Urim and Thummim the logia - the oracles. The
scripture is our breast-plate of judgment. We must have recourse to the law and
to the testimony, as to an oracle. The gospel is called the oracles of God, Heb_5:12; 1Pe_4:11.
Now these oracles were committed to the Jews; the Old Testament was written in
their language; Moses and the prophets were of their nation, lived among them,
preached and wrote primarily to and for the Jews. They were committed to them
as trustees for succeeding ages and churches. The Old Testament was deposited
in their hands, to be carefully preserved pure and uncorrupt, and so
transmitted down to posterity. The Jews were the Christians' library-keepers,
were entrusted with that sacred treasure for their own use and benefit in the
first place, and then for the advantage of the world; and, in preserving the
letter of the scripture, they were very faithful to their trust, did not lose
one iota or tittle, in which we are to acknowledge God's gracious care and
providence. The Jews had the means of salvation, but they had not the monopoly
of salvation. Now this he mentions with a chiefly, prōton men gar
- this was their prime and principal privilege. The enjoyment of God's word and
ordinances is the chief happiness of a people, is to be put in the imprimis
of their advantages, Deu_4:8; Deu_33:3; Psa_147:20.
Object. 2. Against what he had said of the advantages the Jews
had in the lively oracles, some might object the unbelief of many of them. To
what purpose were the oracles of God committed to them, when so many of them,
notwithstanding these oracles, continued strangers to Christ, and enemies to
his gospel? Some did not believe, Rom_3:3.
Answer. It is very true that some, nay most of the present
Jews, do not believe in Christ; but shall their unbelief make the faith of
God without effect? The apostle startles at such a thought: God forbid!
The infidelity and obstinacy of the Jews could not invalidate and overthrow
those prophecies of the Messiah which were contained in the oracles committed
to them. Christ will be glorious, though Israel be not gathered, Isa_49:5. God's words shall be accomplished, his
purposes performed, and all his ends answered, though there be a generation
that by their unbelief go about to make God a liar. Let God be true but
every man a liar; let us abide by this principle, that God is true to every
word which he has spoken, and will let none of his oracles fall to the ground,
though thereby we give the lie to man; better question and overthrow the credit
of all the men in the world than doubt of the faithfulness of God. What David
said in his haste (Psa_116:11), that
all men are liars, Paul here asserts deliberately. Lying is a limb of that old
man which we every one of us come into the world clothed with. All men are
fickle, and mutable, and given to change, vanity and a lie (Psa_62:9), altogether vanity, Psa_39:5. All men are liars, compared with God.
It is very comfortable, when we find every man a liar (no faith in man), that
God is faithful. When they speak vanity every one with his neighbour, it
is very comfortable to think that the words of the Lord are pure words, Psa_12:2, Psa_12:6.
For the further proof of this he quotes Psa_51:4,
That thou mightest be justified, the design of which is to show, 1. That
God does and will preserve his own honour in the world, notwithstanding the
sins of men. 2. That it is our duty, in all our conclusions concerning
ourselves and others, to justify God and to assert and maintain his justice,
truth, and goodness, however it goes. David lays a load upon himself in his
confession, that he might justify God, and acquit him from any injustice. So
here, Let the credit or reputation of man shift for itself, the matter is not
great whether it sink or swim; let us hold fast this conclusion, how specious
soever the premises may be to the contrary, that the Lord is righteous in
all his ways, and holy in all his works. Thus is God justified in his
sayings, and cleared when he judges (as it is Psa_51:4),
or when he is judged, as it is here rendered. When men presume to
quarrel with God and his proceedings, we may be sure the sentence will go on
God's side.
Object. 3. Carnal hearts might hence take occasion to
encourage themselves in sin. He had said that the universal guilt and
corruption of mankind gave occasion to the manifestation of God's righteousness
in Jesus Christ. Now it may be suggested, If all our sin be so far from
overthrowing God's honour that it commends it, and his ends are secured, so
that there is no harm done, is it not unjust for God to punish our sin and
unbelief so severely? If the unrighteousness of the Jews gave occasion to the
calling in of the Gentiles, and so to God's greater glory, why are the Jews so
much censured? If our unrighteousness commend the righteousness of God, what
shall we say? Rom_3:5. What
inference may be drawn from this? Is God unrighteous, mē adikos ho
Theos - Is not God unrighteous (so it may be read, more in the form
of an objection), who taketh vengeance? Unbelieving hearts will gladly
take any occasion to quarrel with equity of God's proceedings, and to condemn
him that is most just, Job_34:17. I
speak as a man, that is, I object this as the of carnal hearts; it is
suggested like a man, a vain, foolish, proud creature.
Answer. God forbid; far be it from us to imagine such a thing. Suggestions
that reflect dishonour upon God and his justice and holiness are rather to be
startled at than parleyed with. Get thee behind me, Satan; never entertain such
a thought. For then how shall God judge the world? Rom_3:6. The argument is much the same with that
of Abraham (Gen_18:25): Shall not
the Judge of all the earth do right? No doubt, he shall. If he were not
infinitely just and righteous, he would be unfit to be the judge of all the
earth. Shall even he that hateth right govern? Job_34:17. Compare Job_34:18,
Job_34:19. The sin has never the less
of malignity and demerit in it though God bring glory to himself out of it. It
is only accidentally that sin commends God's righteousness. No thanks to the sinner
for that, who intends no such thing. The consideration of God's judging the
world should for ever silence all our doubtings of, and reflections upon, his
justice and equity. It is not for us to arraign the proceedings of such an
absolute Sovereign. The sentence of the supreme court, whence lies no appeal,
is not to be called in question.
Object. 4. The former objection is repeated and prosecuted (Rom_3:7, Rom_3:8),
for proud hearts will hardly be beaten out of their refuge of lies, but will
hold fast the deceit. But his setting off the objection in its own colours is
sufficient to answer it: If the truth of God has more abounded through my
lie. He supposes the sophisters to follow their objection thus: “If my lie,
that is, my sin” (for there is something of a lie in every sin, especially in
the sins of professors) “have occasioned the glorifying of God's truth and
faithfulness, why should I be judged and condemned as a sinner, and
not rather thence take encouragement to go on in my sin, that grace may abound?”
an inference which at first sight appears too black to be argued, and fit to be
cast out with abhorrence. Daring sinners take occasion to boast in mischief,
because the goodness of God endures continually, Psa_52:1. Let us do evil that good may come
is oftener in the heart than in the mouth of sinners, so justifying themselves
in their wicked ways. Mentioning this wicked thought, he observes, in a
parenthesis, that there were those who charged such doctrines as this upon Paul
and his fellow-ministers: Some affirm that we say so. It is no new thing for
the best of God's people and ministers to be charged with holding and teaching
such things as they do most detest and abhor; and it is not to be thought
strange, when our Master himself was said to be in league with Beelzebub. Many
have been reproached as if they had said that the contrary of which they
maintain: it is an old artifice of Satan thus to cast dirt upon Christ's
ministers, Fortiter calumniari, aliquid adhaerebit - Lay slander thickly on,
for some will be sure to stick. The best men and the best truths are
subject to slander. Bishop Sanderson makes a further remark upon this, as we
are slanderously reported - blasphēmoumetha. Blasphemy in scripture
usually signifies the highest degree of slander, speaking ill of God. The
slander of a minister and his regular doctrine is a more than ordinary slander,
it is a kind of blasphemy, not for his person's sake, but for his calling's
sake and his work's sake, 1Th_5:13.
Answer. He says no more by way of confutation but that,
whatever they themselves may argue, the damnation of those is just. Some
understand it of the slanderers; God will justly condemn those who unjustly
condemn his truth. Or, rather, it is to be applied to those who embolden
themselves in sin under a pretence of God's getting glory to himself out of it.
Those who deliberately do evil that good may come of it will be so far from
escaping, under the shelter of that excuse, that it will rather justify their
damnation, and render them the more inexcusable; for sinning upon such a
surmise, and in such a confidence, argues a great deal both of the wit and of
the will in the sin - a wicked will deliberately to choose the evil, and a
wicked wit to palliate it with the pretence of good arising from it. Therefore
their damnation is just; and, whatever excuses of this kind they may now please
themselves with, they will none of them stand good in the great day, but God
will be justified in his proceedings, and all flesh, even the proud flesh that
now lifts up itself against him, shall be silent before him. Some think Paul
herein refers to the approaching ruin of the Jewish church and nation, which
their obstinacy and self-justification in their unbelief hastened upon them
apace.
II. Paul, having removed these objections, next revives
his assertion of the general guilt and corruption of mankind in common, both of
Jews and Gentiles, Rom_3:9-18. “Are
we better than they, we Jews, to whom were committed the oracles of God?
Does this recommend us to God, or will this justify us? No, by no means.” Or,
“Are we Christians (Jews and Gentiles) so much better antecedently than the
unbelieving part as to have merited God's grace? Alas! no: before free grace
made the difference, those of us that had been Jews and those that had been
Gentiles were all alike corrupted.” They are all under sin. Under the
guilt of sin: under it as under a sentence; - under it as under a bond, by
which they are bound over to eternal ruin and damnation; - under it as under a
burden (Psa_38:4) that will sink them
to the lowest hell: we are guilty before God, Rom_3:19.
Under the government and dominion of sin: under it as under a tyrant and cruel
task-master, enslaved to it; - under it as under a yoke; - under the power of
it, sold to work wickedness. And this he had proved, proētiasametha. It
is a law term: We have charged them with it, and have made good our
charge; we have proved the indictment, we have convicted them by the notorious
evidence of the fact. This charge and conviction he here further illustrates by
several scriptures out of the Old Testament, which describe the corrupt
depraved state of all men, till grave restrain or change them; so that herein
as in a glass we may all of us behold our natural face. The Rom_3:10, Rom_3:11,
and Rom_3:12 verses are taken from Psa_14:1-3, which are repeated as containing a
very weighty truth, Psa_53:1-3. The
rest that follows here is found in the Septuagint translation of the 14th
Psalm, which some think the apostle chooses to follow as better known; but I
rather think that Paul took these passages from other places of scripture here
referred to, but in later copies of the Septuagint they were all added in Psa_14:1-7 from this discourse of Paul. It is
observable that, to prove the general corruption of nature, he quotes some
scriptures which speak of the particular corruptions of particular persons, as
of Doeg (Psa_140:3), of the Jews (Isa_59:7, Isa_59:8),
which shows that the same sins that are committed by one are in the nature of
all. The times of David and Isaiah were some of the better times, and yet to
their days he refers. What is said Psa_14:1-7
is expressly spoken of all the children of men, and that upon a
particular view and inspection made by God himself. The Lord looked down,
as upon the old world, Gen_6:5. And
this judgment of God was according to truth. He who, when he himself had made
all, looked upon every thing that he had made, and behold all was very good,
now that man had marred all, looked, and behold all was very bad. Let us take a
view of the particulars. Observe,
1. That which is habitual, which is two-fold: -
(1.) An habitual defect of every thing that is good.
[1.] There is none righteous, none that has an honest good principle of
virtue, or is governed by such a principle, none that retains any thing of that
image of God, consisting in righteousness, wherein man was created; no, not
one; implying that, if there had been but one, God would have found him
out. When all the world was corrupt, God had his eye upon one righteous Noah.
Even those who through grace are justified and sanctified were none of them
righteous by nature. No righteousness is born with us. The man after God's own
heart owns himself conceived in sin. [2.] There is none that understandeth,
Rom_3:11. The fault lies in the
corruption of the understanding; that is blinded, depraved, perverted. Religion
and righteousness have so much reason on their side that if people had but any
understanding they would be better and do better. But they do not understand.
Sinners are fools. [3.] None that seeketh after God, that is, none that
has any regard to God, any desire after him. Those may justly be reckoned to
have no understanding that do not seek after God. The carnal mind is so far
from seeking after God that really it is enmity against him. [4.] They are
together become unprofitable, Rom_3:12.
Those that have forsaken God soon grow good for nothing, useless burdens of the
earth. Those that are in a state of sin are the most unprofitable creatures
under the sun; for it follows, [5.] There is none that doeth good; no,
not a just man upon the earth, that doeth good, and sinneth not, Ecc_7:23. Even in those actions of sinners that
have some goodness in them there is a fundamental error in the principle and
end; so that it may be said, There is none that doeth good. Malum oritur ex
quolibet defectu - Every defect is the source of evil.
(2.) An habitual defection to every thing that is evil:
They are all gone out of the way. No wonder that those miss the right
way who do not seek after God, the highest end. God made man in the way, set
him in right, but he hath forsaken it. The corruption of mankind is an
apostasy.
2. That which is actual. And what good can be expected
from such a degenerate race? He instances,
(1.) In their words (Rom_3:13,
Rom_3:14), in three things
particularly: - [1.] Cruelty: Their throat is an open sepulchre, ready
to swallow up the poor and innocent, waiting an opportunity to do mischief,
like the old serpent seeking to devour, whose name is Abaddon and Apollyon, the
destroyer. And when they do not openly avow this cruelty, and vent it publicly,
yet they are underhand intending mischief: the poison of asps is under their
lips (Jam_3:8), the most venomous
and incurable poison, with which they blast the good name of their neighbour by
reproaches, and aim at his life by false witness. These passages are borrowed
from Psa_5:9 and Psa_140:3. [2.] Cheating: With their tongues
they have used deceit. Herein they show themselves the devil's children,
for he is a liar, and the father of lies. They have used it: it
intimates that they make a trade of lying; it is their constant practice,
especially belying the ways and people of God. [3.] Cursing: reflecting upon
God, and blaspheming his holy name; wishing evil to their brethren: Their
mouth is full of cursing and bitterness. This is mentioned as one of the
great sins of the tongue, Jam_3:9. But
those that thus love cursing shall have enough of it, Psa_109:17-19. How many, who are called
Christians, do by these sin evince that they are still under the reign and
dominion of sin, still in the condition that they were born in.
(2.) In their ways (Rom_3:15-17):
Their feet are swift to shed blood; that is, they are very industrious
to compass any cruel design, ready to lay hold of all such opportunities.
Wherever they go, destruction and misery go along with them; these are
their companions-destruction and misery to the people of God, to the country
and neighbourhood where they live, to the land and nation, and to themselves at
last. Besides the destruction and misery that are at the end of their ways
(death is the end of these things), destruction and misery are in their ways;
their sin is its own punishment: a man needs no more to make him miserable than
to be a slave to his sins. - And the way of peace have they not known;
that is, they know not how to preserve peace with others, nor how to obtain
peace for themselves. They may talk of peace, such a peace as is in the devil's
palace, while he keeps it, but they are strangers to all true peace; they know
not the things that belong to their peace. These are quoted from Pro_1:16; Isa_59:7,
Isa_59:8.
(3.) The root of all this we have: There is no fear
of God before their eyes, Rom_3:18.
The fear of God is here put for all practical religion, which consists in an
awful and serious regard to the word and will of God as our rule, to the honour
and glory of God as our end. Wicked people have not this before their eyes;
that is, they do not steer by it; they are governed by other rules, aim at
other ends. This is quoted from Psa_36:1.
Where no fear of God is, no good is to be expected. The fear of God is would
lay a restraint upon our spirits, and keep them right, Neh_5:15. When once fear is cast off, prayer is
restrained (Job_15:4), and then all
goes to wreck and ruin quickly. So that we have here a short account of the
general depravity and corruption of mankind; and may say, O Adam! what hast
thou done? God made man upright, but thus he hath sought out many inventions.
Romans
3:19-31
From all this
Paul infers that it is in vain to look for justification by the works of the
law, and that it is to be had only by faith, which is the point he has been all
along proving, from Rom_1:17, and which
he lays down (Rom_3:28) as the summary
of his discourse, with a quod erat demonstrandum - which was to be
demonstrated. We conclude that a man is justified by faith, without the deeds
of the law; not by the deeds of the first law of pure innocence, which left
no room for repentance, nor the deeds of the law of nature, how highly soever
improved, nor the deeds of the ceremonial law (the blood of bulls and goats
could not take away sin), nor the deeds of the moral law, which are certainly
included, for he speaks of that law by which is the knowledge of sin and those
works which might be matter of boasting. Man, in his depraved state, under the
power of such corruption, could never, by any works of his own, gain acceptance
with God; but it must be resolved purely into the free grace of God, given
through Jesus Christ to all true believers that receive it as a free gift. If
we had never sinned, our obedience to the law would have been our
righteousness: “Do this, and live.” But having sinned, and being corrupted,
nothing that we can do will atone for our former guilt. It was by their
obedience to the moral law that the Pharisees looked for justification, Luk_18:11. Now there are two things from which
the apostle here argues: the guiltiness of man, to prove that we cannot be
justified by the works of the law, and the glory of God, to prove that we must
be justified by faith.
I. He argues
from man's guiltiness, to show the folly of expecting justification by the
works of the law. The argument is very plain: we can never be justified and
saved by the law that we have broken. A convicted traitor can never come off by
pleading the statute of 25 Edward III, for that law discovers his crime
and condemns him: indeed, if he had never broken it, he might have been
justified by it; but now it is past that he has broken it, and there is no way
of coming off but by pleading the act of indemnity, upon which he has
surrendered and submitted himself, and humbly and penitently claiming the
benefit of it and casting himself upon it. Now concerning the guiltiness of
man,
1. He fastens it
particularly upon the Jews; for they were the men that made their boast of the
law, and set up for justification by it. He had quoted several scriptures out
of the Old Testament to show this corruption: Now, says he (Rom_3:19), this that the law says, it says to
those who are under the law; this conviction belongs to the Jews as well as
others, for it is written in their law. The Jews boasted of their being under
the law, and placed a great deal of confidence in it: “But,” says he, “the law
convicts and condemns you - you see it does.” That every mouth may be
stopped - that all boasting may be silenced. See the method that God takes
both in justifying and condemning: he stops every mouth; those that are
justified have their mouths stopped by a humble conviction; those that are
condemned have their mouths stopped too, for they shall at last be convinced (Jud_1:15), and sent speechless to hell, Mat_22:12. All iniquity shall stop her mouth,
Psa_107:42.
2. He extends it
in general to all the world: That all the world may become guilty before
God. If the world likes in wickedness (1Jo_5:19),
to be sure it is guilty. - May become guilty; that is, may be proved
guilty, liable to punishment, all by nature children of wrath, Eph_2:3. They must all plead guilty; those that
stand most upon their own justification will certainly be cast. Guilty before
God is a dreadful word, before an all-seeing God, that is not, nor can be,
deceived in his judgment - before a just and righteous judge, who will by no
means clear the guilty. All are guilty, and therefore all have need of a
righteousness wherein to appear before God. For all have sinned (Rom_3:23); all are sinners by nature, by
practice, and have come short of the glory of God - have failed of that
which is the chief end of man. Come short, as the archer comes short of
the mark, as the runner comes short of the prize; so come short, as not only
not to win, but to be great losers. Come short of the glory of God. (1.)
Come short of glorifying God. See Rom_1:21,
They glorified him not as God. Man was placed at the head of the visible
creation, actively to glorify that great Creator whom the inferior creatures
could glorify only objectively; but man by sin comes short of this, and,
instead of glorifying God, dishonours him. It is a very melancholy
consideration, to look upon the children of men, who were made to glorify God,
and to think how few there are that do it. (2.) Come short of glorying before
God. There is no boasting of innocency: if we go about to glory before God,
to boast of any thing we are, or have, or do, this will be an everlasting
estoppe - hat we have all sinned, and this will silence us. We may glory before
men, who are short-sighted, and cannot search our hearts, - who are corrupt, as
we are, and well enough pleased with sin; but there is no glorying before God,
who cannot endure to look upon iniquity. (3.) Come short of being glorified by
God. Come short of justification, or acceptance with God, which is glory begun
- come short of the holiness or sanctification which is the glorious image of
God upon man, and have overthrown all hopes and expectations of being glorified
with God in heaven by any righteousness of their own. It is impossible now to
get to heaven in the way of spotless innocency. That passage is blocked up.
There is a cherub and a flaming sword set to keep that way to the tree of life.
3. Further to
drive us off from expecting justification by the law, he ascribes this
conviction to the law (Rom_3:20): For
by the law is the knowledge of sin. That law which convicts and condemns us
can never justify us. The law is the straight rule, that rectum which is
index sui et obliqui - that which points out the right and the wrong; it
is the proper use and intendment of the law to open our wound, and therefore
not likely to be the remedy. That which is searching is not sanative. Those
that would know sin must get the knowledge of the law in its strictness,
extent, and spiritual nature. If we compare our own hearts and lives with the
rule, we shall discover wherein we have turned aside. Paul makes this use of
the law, Rom_7:9, Therefore by the
deeds of the law shall no flesh be justified in his sight. Observe, (1.) No
flesh shall be justified, no man, no corrupted man (Gen_6:3), for that he also is flesh,
sinful and depraved; therefore not justified, because we are flesh. The
corruption that remains in our nature will for ever obstruct any justification
by our own works, which, coming from flesh, must needs taste of the cask, Job_14:4. (2.) Not justified in his sight. He
does not deny that justification which was by the deeds of the law in the sight
of the church: they were, in their church-estate, as embodied in a polity, a
holy people, a nation of priests; but as the conscience stands in relation to
God, in his sight, we cannot be justified by the deeds of the law. The
apostle refers to Psa_143:2.
II. He argues
from God's glory to prove that justification must be expected only by faith in
Christ's righteousness. There is no justification by the works of the law. Must
guilty man then remain eternally under wrath? Is there no hope? Is the wound
become incurable because of transgression? No, blessed be God, it is not (Rom_3:21, Rom_3:22);
there is another way laid open for us, the righteousness of God without the
law is manifested now under the gospel. Justification may be obtained
without the keeping of Moses's law: and this is called the righteousness of
God, righteousness of his ordaining, and providing, and accepting, -
righteousness which he confers upon us; as the Christian armour is called the
armour of God, Eph_6:11.
1. Now
concerning this righteousness of God observe, (1.) That it is manifested. The
gospel-way of justification is a high-way, a plain way, it is laid open for us:
the brazen serpent is lifted up upon the pole; we are not left to grope our way
in the dark, but it is manifested to us. (2.) It is without the law.
Here he obviates the method of the judaizing Christians, who would needs join
Christ and Moses together - owning Christ for the Messiah, and yet too fondly
retaining the law, keeping up the ceremonies of it, and imposing it upon the
Gentile converts: no, says he, it is without the law. The righteousness that
Christ hath brought in is a complete righteousness. (3.) Yet it is witnessed
by the law and the prophets; that is, there were types, and prophecies, and
promises, in the Old Testament, that pointed at this. The law is so far from
justifying us that it directs us to another way of justification, points at
Christ as our righteousness, to whom bear all the prophets witness. See Act_10:43. This might recommend it to the Jews,
who were so fond of the law and the prophets. (4.) It is by the faith of
Jesus Christ, that faith which hath Jesus Christ for its object - an anointed
Saviour, so Jesus Christ signifies. Justifying faith respects Christ as a
Saviour in all his three anointed offices, as prophet, priest, and
king-trusting in him, accepting of him, and adhering to him, in all these. It
is by this that we become interested in that righteousness which God has
ordained, and which Christ has brought in. (5.) It is to all, and upon all,
those that believe. In this expression he inculcates that which he had been
often harping upon, that Jews and Gentiles, if they believe, stand upon the
same level, and are alike welcome to God through Christ; for there is no
difference. Or, it is eis
pantas - to
all, offered all in general; the gospel excludes none that do not exclude
themselves; but it is to epi pantas tous piseuonta, upon all that
believe, not only tendered to them, but put upon them as a crown, as a
robe; they are, upon their believing, interested in it, and entitled to all the
benefits and privileges of it.
2. But now how is this for God's glory?
(1.) It is for the glory of his grace (Rom_3:24): Justified freely by his grace
- dōrean tē chariti. It is by his grace, not by the grace
wrought in us as the papists say, confounding justification and sanctification,
but by the gracious favour of God to us, without any merit in us so much as
foreseen. And, to make it the more emphatic, he says it is freely by his
grace, to show that it must be understood of grace in the most proper and
genuine sense. It is said that Joseph found grace in the sight of his
master (Gen_39:4), but there was a
reason; he saw that what he did prospered. There was something in Joseph to
invite that grace; but the grace of God communicated to us comes freely,
freely; it is free grace, mere mercy; nothing in us to deserve such
favours: no, it is all through the redemption that is in Jesus Christ.
It comes freely to us, but Christ bought it, and paid dearly for it, which yet
is so ordered as not to derogate from the honour of free grace. Christ's
purchase is no bar to the freeness of God's grace; for grace provided and
accepted this vicarious satisfaction.
(2.) It is for the glory of his justice and righteousness
(Rom_3:25, Rom_3:26):
Whom God hath set forth to be a propitiation, etc. Note, [1.] Jesus
Christ is the great propitiation, or propitiatory sacrifice, typified by the hilastērion,
or mercy-seat, under the law. He is our throne of grace, in and through
whom atonement is made for sin, and our persons and performances are accepted
of God, 1Jo_2:2. He is all in all in
our reconciliation, not only the maker, but the matter of it - our priest, our
sacrifice, our altar, our all. God was in Christ as in his mercy-seat,
reconciling the world unto himself. [2.] God hath set him forth to be
so. God, the party offended, makes the first overtures towards a
reconciliation, appoints the days-man; proetheto - fore-ordained
him to this, in the counsels of his love from eternity, appointed, anointed him
to it, qualified him for it, and has exhibited him to a guilty world as their
propitiation. See Mat_3:17, and Mat_17:5. [3.] That by faith in his blood
we become interested in this propitiation. Christ is the propitiation; there is
the healing plaster provided. Faith is the applying of this plaster to the
wounded soul. And this faith in the business of justification hath a special
regard to the blood of Christ, as that which made the atonement; for
such was the divine appointment that without blood there should be no
remission, and no blood but his would do it effectually. Here may be an
allusion to the sprinkling of the blood of the sacrifices under the law, as Exo_24:8. Faith is the bunch of hyssop, and the
blood of Christ is the blood of sprinkling. [4.] That all who by faith are
interested in this propitiation have the remission of their sins that are
past. It was for this that Christ was set forth to be a propitiation, in
order to remission, to which the reprieves of his patience and forbearance were
a very encouraging preface. Through the forbearance of God. Divine
patience has kept us out of hell, that we might have space to repent, and get
to heaven. Some refer the sins that are past to the sins of the Old Testament
saints, which were pardoned for the sake of the atonement which Christ in the
fulness of time was to make, which looked backward as well as forward. Past
through the forbearance of God. It is owing to the divine forbearance that
we were not taken in the very act of sin. Several Greek copies make en
tēanochē tou Theou - through the forbearance of God, to begin Rom_3:26, and they denote two precious fruits of
Christ's merit and God's grace: - Remission: dia tēn paresin - for
the remission; and reprieves: the forbearance of God. It is owing to
the master's goodness and the dresser's mediation that barren trees are let
alone in the vineyard; and in both God's righteousness is declared, in that
without a mediator and a propitiation he would not only not pardon, but not so
much as forbear, not spare a moment; it is owning to Christ that there is ever
a sinner on this side hell. [5.] That God does in all this declare his
righteousness. This he insists upon with a great deal of emphasis: To
declare, I say, at this time his righteousness. It is repeated, as that
which has in it something surprising. He declares his righteousness, First,
In the propitiation itself. Never was there such a demonstration of the justice
and holiness of God as there was in the death of Christ. It appears that he
hates sin, when nothing less than the blood of Christ would satisfy for it.
Finding sin, though but imputed, upon his own Son, he did not spare him,
because he had made himself sin for us, 2Co_5:21.
The iniquities of us all being laid upon him, though he was the Son of his
love, yet it pleased the Lord to bruise him, Isa_53:10.
Secondly, In the pardon upon that propitiation; so it follows, by way of
explication: That he might be just, and the justifier of him that believeth.
Mercy and truth are so met together, righteousness and peace have so kissed
each other, that it is now become not only an act of grace and mercy, but an
act of righteousness, in God, to pardon the sins of penitent believers, having
accepted the satisfaction that Christ by dying made to his justice for them. It
would not comport with his justice to demand the debt of the principal when the
surety has paid it and he has accepted that payment in full satisfaction. See 1Jo_1:9. He is just, that is, faithful to his
word.
(3.) It is for God's glory; for boasting is thus
excluded, Rom_3:27. God will have the
great work of the justification and salvation of sinners carried on from first
to last in such a way as to exclude boasting, that no flesh may glory in his
presence, 1Co_1:29-31. Now, if
justification were by the works of the law, boasting would not be excluded. How
should it? If we were saved by our own works, we might put the crown upon our
own heads. But the law of faith, that is, the way of justification by
faith, doth for ever exclude boasting; for faith is a depending, self-emptying,
self-denying grace, and casts every crown before the throne; therefore it is
most for God's glory that thus we should be justified. Observe, He speaks of the
law of faith. Believers are not left lawless: faith is a law, it is a
working grace, wherever it is in truth; and yet, because it acts in a strict
and close dependence upon Jesus Christ, it excludes boasting.
From all this he draws this conclusion (Rom_3:28): That a man is justified by faith
without the deeds of the law.
III. In the close of the chapter
he shows the extent of this privilege of justification by faith, and that it is
not the peculiar privilege of the Jews, but pertains to the Gentiles also; for
he had said (Rom_3:22) that there is no
difference: and as to this, 1. He asserts and proves it (Rom_3:29): Is he the God of the Jews only?
He argues from the absurdity of such a supposition. Can it be imagined that a
God of infinite love and mercy should limit and confine his favours to that
little perverse people of the Jews, leaving all the rest of the children of men
in a condition eternally desperate? This would by no means agree with the idea
we have of the divine goodness, for his tender mercies are over all his
works; therefore it is one God of grace that justifies the circumcision
by faith, and the uncircumcision through faith, that is, both in one and
the same way. However the Jews, in favour of themselves, will needs fancy a
difference, really there is no more difference than between by and through,
that is, no difference at all. 2. He obviates an objection (Rom_3:31), as if this doctrine did nullify the
law, which they knew came from God: “No,” says he, “though we do say that the
law will not justify us, yet we do not therefore say that it was given in vain,
or is of no use to us; no, we establish the right use of the law, and
secure its standing, by fixing it on the right basis. The law is still of use
to convince us of what is past, and to direct us for the future; though we
cannot be saved by it as a covenant, yet we own it, and submit to it, as a rule
in the hand of the Mediator, subordinate to the law of grace; and so are so far
from overthrowing that we establish the law.” Let those consider this who deny
the obligation of the moral law on believers.
Romans
4:1-8
Here the apostle
proves that Abraham was justified not by works, but by faith. Those that of all
men contended most vigorously for a share in righteousness by the privileges
they enjoyed, and the works they performed, were the Jews, and therefore he
appeals to the case of Abraham their father, and puts his own name to the
relation, being a Hebrew of the Hebrews: Abraham our father. Now surely
his prerogative must needs be as great as theirs who claim it as his seed
according to the flesh. Now what has he found? All the world is seeking;
but, while the most are wearying themselves for very vanity, none can be truly
reckoned to have found, but those who are justified before God; and thus
Abraham, like a wise merchant, seeking goodly pearls, found this one pearl of
great price. What has he found, kata sarka - as pertaining to the flesh, that is, by
circumcision and his external privileges and performances? These the apostle
calls flesh, Phi_3:3. Now what
did he get by these? Was he justified by them? Was it the merit of his works
that recommended him to God's acceptance? No, by no means, which he proves by
several arguments.
I. If he had been justified by works, room would have
been left for boasting, which must for ever be excluded. If so, he hath
whereof to glory (Rom_4:2), which
is not to be allowed. “But,” might the Jews say, “was not his name made great (Gen_12:2), and then might not he glory?” Yes,
but not before God; he might deserve well of men, but he could never merit of
God. Paul himself had whereof to glory before men, and we have him
sometimes glorying in it, yet with humility; but nothing to glory in before
God, 1Co_4:4; Phi_3:8, Phi_3:9.
So Abraham. Observe, He takes it for granted that man must not pretend to glory
in any thing before God; no, not Abraham, as great and as good a man as he was;
and therefore he fetches an argument from it: it would be absurd for him that
glorieth to glory in any but the Lord.
II. It is expressly said that Abraham's faith was
counted to him for righteousness. What saith the scripture? Rom_4:3. In all controversies in religion this
must be our question, What saith the scripture? It is not what this
great man, and the other good man, say, but What saith the scripture? Ask
counsel at this Abel, and so end the matter, 2Sa_2:18.
To the law, and to the testimony (Isa_8:20),
thither is the last appeal. Now the scripture saith that Abraham believed,
and this was counted to him for righteousness (Gen_15:6);
therefore he had not whereof to glory before God, it being purely of free grace
that it was so imputed, and having not in itself any of the formal nature of a
righteousness, further than as God himself was graciously pleased so to count
it to him. It is mentioned in Genesis, upon occasion of a very signal and
remarkable act of faith concerning the promised seed, and is the more
observable in that it followed upon a grievous conflict he had had with
unbelief; his faith was now a victorious faith, newly returned from the battle.
It is not the perfect faith that is required to justification (there may be
acceptable faith where there are remainders of unbelief), but the prevailing
faith, the faith that has the upper hand of unbelief.
III. If he had been justified by faith, the reward
would have been of debt, and not of grace, which is not to be imagined.
This is his argument (Rom_4:4, Rom_4:5): Abraham's reward was God himself; so
he had told him but just before (Gen_15:1),
I am thy exceeding great reward. Now, if Abraham had merited this by the
perfection of his obedience, it had not been an act of grace in God, but
Abraham might have demanded it with as much confidence as ever any labourer in
the vineyard demanded the penny he had earned. But this cannot be; it is
impossible for man, much more guilty man, to make God a debtor to him, Rom_11:35. No, God will have free grace to have
all the glory, grace for grace's sake, Joh_1:16.
And therefore to him that worketh not - that can pretend to no such
merit, nor show any worth or value in his work, which may answer such a reward,
but disclaiming any such pretension casts himself wholly upon the free grace of
God in Christ, by a lively, active, obedient faith - to such a one faith is
counted for righteousness, is accepted of God as the qualification required
in all those that shall be pardoned and saved. Him that justifieth the
ungodly, that is, him that was before ungodly. His former ungodliness was
no bar to his justification upon his believing: ton asebē - that
ungodly one, that is, Abraham, who, before his conversion, it should seem,
was carried down the stream of the Chaldean idolatry, Jos_24:2. No room therefore is left for despair;
though God clears not the impenitent guilty, yet through Christ he justifies the
ungodly.
IV. He further illustrates this by a passage out of the
Psalms, where David speaks of the remission of sins, the prime branch of
justification, as constituting the happiness and blessedness of a man,
pronouncing blessed, not the man who has no sin, or none which deserved death
(for then, while man is so sinful, and God so righteous, where would be the
blessed man?) but the man to whom the Lord imputeth not sin, who though
he cannot plead, Not guilty, pleads the act of indemnity, and his plea is
allowed. It is quoted from Psa_32:1, Psa_32:2, where observe, 1. The nature of
forgiveness. It is the remission of a debt or a crime; it is the covering of
sin, as a filthy thing, as the nakedness and shame of the soul. God is said to
cast sin behind his back, to hide his face from it, which, and the like
expressions, imply that the ground of our blessedness is not our innocency, or
our not having sinned (a thing is, and is filthy, though covered; justification
does not make the sin not to have been, or not to have been sin), but God's not
laying it to our charge, as it follows here: it is God's not imputing sin
(Rom_4:8), which makes it wholly a
gracious act of God, not dealing with us in strict justice as we have deserved,
not entering into judgment, not marking iniquities, all which being purely acts
of grace, the acceptance and the reward cannot be expected as debts; and
therefore Paul infers (Rom_4:6) that it
is the imputing of righteousness without works. 2. The blessedness of it: Blessed
are they. When it is said, Blessed are the undefiled in the way, blessed
is the man that walketh not in the counsel of the wicked, etc., the design
is to show the characters of those that are blessed; but when it is said, Blessed
are those whose iniquities are forgiven, the design is to show what that
blessedness is, and what the ground and foundation of it. Pardoned people are
the only blessed people. The sentiments of the world are, Those are happy that
have a clear estate, and are out of debt to man; but the sentence of the word
is, Those are happy that have their debts to God discharged. O how much
therefore is it our interest to make it sure to ourselves that our sins are
pardoned! For this is the foundation of all other benefits. So and so I will do
for them; for I will be merciful, Heb_8:12.
Romans
4:9-17
St. Paul
observes in this paragraph when and why Abraham was thus justified; for he has
several things to remark upon that. It was before he was circumcised, and
before the giving of the law; and there was a reason for both.
I. It was before
he was circumcised, Rom_4:10. His faith
was counted to him for righteousness while he was in uncircumcision. It was
imputed, Gen_15:6, and he was not
circumcised till ch. 17. Abraham is expressly said to be justified by faith fourteen
years, some say twenty-five years, before he was circumcised. Now
this the apostle takes notice of in answer to the question (Rom_4:9), Cometh this blessedness then on the
circumcision only, or on the uncircumcision also? Abraham was pardoned and
accepted in uncircumcision, a circumstance which, as it might silence the fears
of the poor uncircumcised Gentiles, so it might lower the pride and
conceitedness of the Jews, who gloried in their circumcision, as if they had
the monopoly of all happiness. Here are two reasons why Abraham was justified
by faith in uncircumcision: -
1. That
circumcision might be a seal of the righteousness of faith, Rom_4:11. The tenour of the covenants must first
be settled before the seal can be annexed. Sealing supposes a previous bargain,
which is confirmed and ratified by that ceremony. After Abraham's justification
by faith had continued several years only a grant by parole, for the
confirmation of Abraham's faith God was pleased to appoint a sealing ordinance,
and Abraham received it; though it was a bloody ordinance, yet he submitted to
it, and even received it as a special favour, the sign of circumcision,
etc. Now we may hence observe, (1.) The nature of sacraments in general: they
are signs and seals - signs to represent and instruct, seals to ratify and
confirm. They are signs of absolute grace and favour; they are seals of the
conditional promises; nay, they are mutual seals: God does in the sacraments
seal to us to be to us a God, and we do therein seal to him to be to him a
people. (2.) The nature of circumcision in particular: it was the initiating
sacrament of the Old Testament; and it is here said to be, [1.] A sign -
a sign of that original corruption which we are all born with, and which is cut
off by spiritual circumcision, - a commemorating sign of God's covenant with
Abraham, - a distinguishing sign between Jews and Gentiles, - a sign of
admission into the visible church, - a sign prefiguring baptism, which comes in
the room of circumcision, now under the gospel, when (the blood of Christ being
shed) all bloody ordinances are abolished; it was an outward and sensible
sign of an inward and spiritual grace signified thereby. [2.] A seal of
the righteousness of the faith. In general, it was a seal of the covenant
of grace, particularly of justification by faith - the covenant of grace,
called the righteousness which is of faith (Rom_10:6),
and it refers to an Old Testament promise, Deu_30:12.
Now if infants were then capable of receiving a seal of the covenant of grace,
which proves that they then were within the verge of that covenant, how they
come to be now cast out of the covenant and incapable of the seal, and by what
severe sentence they were thus rejected and incapacitated, those are concerned
to make out that not only reject, but nullify and reproach, the baptism of the
seed of believers.
2. That he
might be the father of all those that believe. Not but that there were
those that were justified by faith before Abraham; but of Abraham first it is
particularly observed, and in him commenced a much clearer and fuller
dispensation of the covenant of grace than any that had been before extant; and
there he is called the father of all that believe, because he was so
eminent a believer, and so eminently justified by faith, as Jabal was the
father of shepherds and Jubal of musicians, Gen_4:20,
Gen_4:21. The father of all those
that believe; that is, a standing pattern of faith, as parents are
examples to their children; and a standing precedent of justification by faith,
as the liberties, privileges, honours, and estates, of the fathers descend to
their children. Abraham was the father of believers, because to him
particularly the magna charta was renewed. (1.) The father of believing
Gentiles, though they be not circumcised. Zaccheus, a publican, if he
believe, is reckoned a son of Abraham, Luk_19:9.
Abraham being himself uncircumcised when he was justified by faith,
uncircumcision can never be a bar. Thus were the doubts and fears of the poor
Gentiles anticipated and no room left to question but that righteousness might
be imputed to them also, Col_3:11; Gal_5:6. (2.) The father of believing Jews, not
merely as circumcised, and of the seed of Abraham according to the flesh, but
because believers, because they are not of the circumcision only (that
is, are not only circumcised), but walk in the steps of that faith -
have not only the sign, but the thing signified - not only are of Abraham's
family, but follow the example of Abraham's faith. See here who are the genuine
children and lawful successors of those that were the church's fathers: not
those that sit in their chairs, and bear their names, but those that tread in
their steps; this is the line of succession, which holds, notwithstanding interruptions.
It seems, then, those were most loud and forward to call Abraham father that
had least title to the honours and privileges of his children. Thus those have
most reason to call Christ Father, not that bear his name in being Christians
in profession, but that tread in his steps.
II. It was
before the giving of the law, Rom_4:13-16.
The former observation is levelled against those that confined justification to
the circumcision, this against those that expected it by the law; now the
promise was made to Abraham long before the law. Compare Gal_3:17, Gal_3:18.
Now observe,
1. What that
promise was - that he should be the heir of the world, that is, of the
land of Canaan, the choicest spot of ground in the world, - or the father of
many nations of the world, who sprang from him, besides the Israelites, - or
the heir of the comforts of the life which now is. The meek are said to inherit
the earth, and the world is theirs. Though Abraham had so little of the
world in possession, yet he was heir of it all. Or, rather, it points at
Christ, the seed here mentioned; compare Gal_3:16,
To thy seed, which is Christ. Now Christ is the heir of the world, the
ends of the earth are his possession, and it is in him that Abraham was so. And
it refers to that promise (Gen_12:3), In
thee shall all the families of the earth be blessed.
2. How it was
made to him: Not through the law, but through the righteousness of faith.
Not through the law, for that was not yet given: but it was upon that
believing which was counted to him for righteousness; it was upon his trusting
God, in his leaving his own country when God commanded him, Heb_11:8. Now, being by faith, it could not be
by the law, which he proves by the opposition there is between them (Rom_4:14, Rom_4:15):
If those who are of the law be heirs; that is, those, and those only,
and they by virtue of the law (the Jews did, and still do, boast that they are
the rightful heirs of the world, because to them the law was given), then faith
is made void; for, if it were requisite to an interest in the promise that
there should be a perfect performance of the whole law, then the promise can
never take its effect, nor is it to any purpose for us to depend upon it, since
the way to life by perfect obedience to the law, and spotless sinless
innocency, is wholly blocked up, and the law in itself opens no other way. This
he proves, Rom_4:15. The law worketh
wrath - wrath in us to God; it irritates and provokes that carnal mind
which is enmity to God, as the damming up of a stream makes it swell - wrath in
God against us. It works this, that is, it discovers it, or our breach of the
law works it. Now it is certain that we can never expect the inheritance by a
law that worketh wrath. How the law works wrath he shows very concisely in the
latter part of the verse: Where no law is there is no transgression, an
acknowledged maxim, which implies, Where there is a law there is transgression
and that transgression is provoking, and so the law worketh wrath.
3. Why the
promise was made to him by faith; for three reasons, Rom_4:16. (1.) That it might be by grace, that grace
might have the honour of it; by grace, and not by the law; by grace, and not
of debt, nor of merit; that Grace, grace, might be cried to every
stone, especially to the top-stone, in this building. Faith hath particular
reference to grace granting, as grace hath reference to faith receiving. By
grace, and therefore through faith, Eph_2:8.
For God will have every crown thrown at the feet of grace, free grace, and
every song in heaven sung to that tune, Not unto us, O Lord, not unto us,
but unto thy name be the praise. (2.) That the promise might be sure.
The first covenant, being a covenant of works, was not sure: but, through man's
failure, the benefits designed by it were cut off; and therefore, the more
effectually to ascertain and ensure the conveyance of the new covenant, there
is another way found out, not by works (were it so, the promise would
not be sure, because of the continual frailty and infirmity of the flesh), but
by faith, which receives all from Christ, and acts in a continual
dependence upon him, as the great trustee of our salvation, and in whose
keeping it is safe. The covenant is therefore sure, because it is so well
ordered in all things, 2Sa_23:5. (3.) That
it might be sure to all the seed. If it had been by the law, it had
been limited to the Jews, to whom pertained the glory, and the covenants,
and the giving of the law (Rom_9:4);
but therefore it was by faith that Gentiles as well as Jews might become
interested in it, the spiritual as well as the natural seed of faithful
Abraham. God would contrive the promise in such a way as might make it most
extensive, to comprehend all true believers, that circumcision and
uncircumcision might break no squares; and for this (Rom_4:17) he refers us to Gen_17:5,
where the reason of the change of his name from Abram - a high father, to
Abraham - the high father of a multitude, is thus rendered: For a father
of many nations have I made thee; that is, all believers, both before and
since the coming of Christ in the flesh, should take Abraham for their pattern,
and call him father. The Jews say Abraham was the father of all
proselytes to the Jewish religion. Behold, he is the father of all the
world, which are gathered under the wings of the Divine Majesty. -
Maimonides.
Romans
4:17-22
Having observed
when Abraham was justified by faith, and why, for the honour of Abraham and for
example to us who call him father, the apostle here describes and commends the
faith of Abraham, where observe,
I. Whom he
believed: God who quickeneth. It is God himself that faith fastens upon:
other foundation can no man lay. Now observe what in God Abraham's faith
had an eye t - o that, certainly, which would be most likely to confirm his
faith concerning the things promised: - 1. God who quickeneth the dead.
It was promised that he should be the father of many nations, when he
and his wife were now as good as dead (Heb_11:11,
Heb_11:12), and therefore he looks upon
God as a God that could breathe life into dry bones. He that quickeneth the
dead can do any thing, can give a child to Abraham when he is old, can bring
the Gentiles, who are dead in trespasses and sins, to a divine and
spiritual life, Eph_2:1. Compare Eph_1:19, Eph_1:20.
2. Who calleth things which are not as though they were; that is,
creates all things by the word of his power, as in the beginning, Gen_1:3; 2Co_4:6.
The justification and salvation of sinners, the espousing of the Gentiles that
had not been a people, were a gracious calling of things which are not as
though they were, giving being to things that were not. This expresses the
sovereignty of God and his absolute power and dominion, a mighty stay to faith
when all other props sink and totter. It is the holy wisdom and policy of faith
to fasten particularly on that in God which is accommodated to the difficulties
wherewith it is to wrestle, and will most effectually answer the objections. It
is faith indeed to build upon the all-sufficiency of God for the accomplishment
of that which is impossible to anything but that all-sufficiency. Thus Abraham
became the father of many nations before him whom he believed, that is,
in the eye and account of God; or like him whom he believed; as God was
a common Father, so was Abraham. It is by faith in God that we become accepted
of him, and conformable to him.
II. How he
believed. He here greatly magnifies the strength of Abraham's faith, in several
expressions. 1. Against hope, he believed in hope, Rom_4:18. There was a hope against him, a
natural hope. All the arguments of sense, and reason, and experience, which in
such cases usually beget and support hope, were against him; no second causes
smiled upon him, nor in the least favoured his hope. But, against all those
inducements to the contrary, he believed; for he had a hope for him: He
believed in hope, which arose, as his faith did, from the consideration of
God's all-sufficiency. That he might become the father of many nations.
Therefore God, by his almighty grace, enabled him thus to believe against hope,
that he might pass for a pattern of great and strong faith to all generations.
It was fit that he who was to be the father of the faithful should have something
more than ordinary in his faith - that in him faith should be set in its
highest elevation, and so the endeavours of all succeeding believers be
directed, raised, and quickened. Or this is mentioned as the matter of the
promise that he believed; and he refers to Gen_15:5,
So shall thy seed be, as the stars of heaven, so innumerable, so
illustrious. This was that which he believed, when it was counted to him for
righteousness, Rom_4:6. And it is
observable that this particular instance of his faith was against hope,
against the surmises and suggestions of his unbelief. He had just before been
concluding hardly that he should go childless, that one born in his house was
his heir (Rom_4:2, Rom_4:3); and this unbelief was a foil to his
faith, and bespeaks it a believing against hope. 2. Being not weak in faith,
he considered not his own body, Rom_4:19.
Observe, His own body was now dead - become utterly unlikely to beget a child,
though the new life and vigour that God gave him continued after Sarah was dead,
witness his children by Keturah. When God intends some special blessing, some
child of promise, for his people, he commonly puts a sentence of death upon the
blessing itself, and upon all the ways that lead to it. Joseph must be enslaved
and imprisoned before he be advanced. But Abraham did not consider this, su katenoēse - he did not dwell in his
thoughts upon it. He said indeed, Shall a child be born to him that is a
hundred years old? Gen_17:17. But
that was the language of his admiration and his desire to be further satisfied,
not of his doubting and distrust; his faith passed by that consideration, and
thought of nothing but the faithfulness of the promise, with the contemplation
whereof he was swallowed up, and this kept up his faith. Being not weak in
faith, he considered not. It is mere weakness of faith that makes a man lie
poring upon the difficulties and seeming impossibilities that lie in the way of
a promise. Though it may seem to be the wisdom and policy of carnal reason, yet
it is the weakness of faith, to look into the bottom of all the difficulties
that arise against the promise. 3. He staggered not at the promise of God
through unbelief (Rom_4:20), and he
therefore staggered not because he considered not the frowns and
discouragements of second causes; su diekrithē - he disputed not;
he did not hold any self-consultation about it, did not take time to consider
whether he should close with it or no, did not hesitate nor stumble at it, but
by a resolute and peremptory act of his soul, with a holy boldness, ventured
all upon the promise. He took it not for a point that would admit of argument
or debate, but presently determined it as a ruled case, did not at all hang in
suspense about it: he staggered not through unbelief. Unbelief is at the
bottom of all our staggerings at God's promises. It is not the promise that
fails, but our faith that fails when we stagger. 4. He was strong in faith,
giving glory to God, enedunamōthē - he was strengthened in
faith, his faith got ground by exercise - crescit eundo. Though weak
faith shall not be rejected, the bruised reed not broken, the smoking flax not
quenched, yet strong faith shall be commended and honoured. The strength of his
faith appeared in the victory it won over his fears. And hereby he gave glory
to God; for, as unbelief dishonours God by making him a liar (1Jo_5:10), so faith honours God by setting to
its seal that he is true, Joh_3:33.
Abraham's faith gave God the glory of his wisdom, power, holiness, goodness,
and especially of his faithfulness, resting upon the word that he had spoken.
Among men we say, “He that trusts another, gives him credit, and honours him by
taking his word;” thus Abraham gave glory to God by trusting him. We never hear
our Lord Jesus commending any thing so much as great faith (Mat_8:10 and Mat_15:28):
therefore God gives honour to faith, great faith, because faith, great faith,
gives honour to God. 5. He was fully persuaded that what God had promised he
was able to perform, plērophorētheis - was carried on with the
greatest confidence and assurance; it is a metaphor taken from ships that
come into the harbour with full sail. Abraham saw the storms of doubts, and
fears, and temptations likely to rise against the promise, upon which many a
one would have shrunk back, and lain by for fairer days, and waited a smiling
gale of sense and reason. But Abraham, having taken God for his pilot, and the
promise for his card and compass, resolves to weather his point, and like a
bold adventurer sets up all his sails, breaks through all the difficulties,
regards neither winds nor clouds, but trusts to the strength of his bottom and
the wisdom and faithfulness of his pilot, and bravely makes to the harbour, and
comes home an unspeakable gainer. Such was his full persuasion, and it was
built on the omnipotence of God: He was able. Our waverings rise mainly
from our distrust of the divine power; and therefore to fix us it is requisite
we believe not only that he is faithful, but that he is able, that hath
promised. And therefore it was imputed to him for righteousness, Rom_4:22. Because with such a confidence he
ventured his all in the divine promise, God graciously accepted him, and not
only answered, but out-did, his expectation. This way of glorifying God by a
firm reliance on his bare promise was so very agreeable to God's design, and so
very conducive to his honour, that he graciously accepted it as a
righteousness, and justified him, though there was not that in the thing itself
which could merit such an acceptance. This shows why faith is chosen to be the
prime condition of our justification, because it is a grace that of all others
gives glory to God.
Romans
4:23-25
In the close of
the chapter, he applies all to us; and, having abundantly proved that Abraham
was justified by faith, he here concludes that his justification was to be the
pattern or sampler of ours: It was not written for his sake alone. It
was not intended only for an historical commendation of Abraham, or a relation
of something peculiar to him (as some antipaedobaptists will needs understand
that circumcision was a seal of the righteousness of the faith, Rom_4:11, only to Abraham himself, and no
other); no, the scripture did not intend hereby to describe some singular way
of justification that belonged to Abraham as his prerogative. The accounts we
have of the Old Testament saints were not intended for histories only, barely
to inform and divert us, but for precedents to direct us, for ensamples (1Co_10:11) for our learning, Rom_15:4. And this particularly concerning
Abraham was written for us also, to assure us what that righteousness is
which God requireth and accepteth to our salvation, - for us also, that are man
and vile, that come so far short of Abraham in privileges and performances, us
Gentiles as well as the Jews, for the blessing of Abraham comes upon the
Gentiles through Christ, - for us on whom the ends of the world are come, as
well as for the patriarchs; for the grace of God is the same yesterday, today,
and for ever. His application of it is but short. Only we may observe,
I. Our common
privilege; it shall be imputed to us, that is, righteousness shall. The gospel
way of justification is by an imputed righteousness, mellei logizesthai - it shall be imputed;
he uses a future verb, to signify the continuation of this mercy in the church,
that as it is the same now so it will be while God has a church in the world,
and there are any of the children of men to be justified; for there is a
fountain opened that is inexhaustible.
II. Our common duty, the
condition of this privilege, and that is believing. The proper object of this
believing is a divine revelation. The revelation to Abraham was concerning a
Christ to come; the revelation to us is concerning a Christ already come, which
difference in the revelation does not alter the case. Abraham believed the
power of God in raising up an Isaac from the dead womb of Sarah; we are to
believe the same power exerted in a higher instance, the resurrection of Christ
from the dead. The resurrection of Isaac was in a figure (Heb_11:19); the resurrection of Christ was real.
Now we are to believe on him that raised up Christ; not only believe his power,
that he could do it, but depend upon his grace in raising up Christ as our
surety; so he explains it, Rom_4:25,
where we have a brief account of the meaning of Christ's death and
resurrection, which are the two main hinges on which the door of salvation
turns. 1. He was delivered for our offences. God the Father delivered
him, he delivered up himself as a sacrifice for sin. He died indeed as a
malefactor, because he died for sin; but it was not his own sin, but the sins
of the people. He died to make atonement for our sins, to expiate our guilt, to
satisfy divine justice. 2. He was raised again for our justification,
for the perfecting and completing of our justification. By the merit of his
death he paid our debt, in his resurrection he took out our acquittance. When
he was buried he lay a prisoner in execution for our debt, which as a surety he
had undertaken to pay; on the third day an angel was sent to roll away the
stone, and so to discharge the prisoner, which was the greatest assurance
possible that divine justice was satisfied, the debt paid, or else he would never
have released the prisoner: and therefore the apostle puts a special emphasis
on Christ's resurrection; it is Christ that died, yea, rather that has risen
again, Rom_8:34. So that upon the
whole matter it is very evident that we are not justified by the merit of our
own works, but by a fiducial obediential dependence upon Jesus Christ and his
righteousness, as the condition on our part of our right to impunity and
salvation, which was the truth that Paul in this and the foregoing chapter had
been fixing as the great spring and foundation of all our comfort.
Romans
5:1-5
The precious
benefits and privileges which flow from justification are such as should
quicken us all to give diligence to make it sure to ourselves that we are
justified, and then to take the comfort it renders to us, and to do the duty it
calls for from us. The fruits of this tree of life are exceedingly precious.
I. We have
peace with God, Rom_5:1. It is sin
that breeds the quarrel between us and God, creates not only a strangeness, but
an enmity; the holy righteous God cannot in honour be at peace with a sinner
while he continues under the guilt of sin. Justification takes away the guilt,
and so makes way for peace. And such are the benignity and good-will of God to
man that, immediately upon the removing of that obstacle, the peace is made. By
faith we lay hold of God's arm and of his strength, and so are at peace, Isa_27:4, Isa_27:5.
There is more in this peace than barely a cessation of enmity, there is
friendship and loving-kindness, for God is either the worst enemy or the best
friend. Abraham, being justified by faith, was called the friend of God
(Jam_2:23), which was his honour, but
not his peculiar honour: Christ has called his disciples friends, Joh_15:13-15. And surely a man needs no more to
make him happy than to have God his friend! But this is through our Lord
Jesus Christ - through him as the great peace-maker, the Mediator
between God and man, that blessed Day's-man that has laid his hand upon us
both. Adam, in innocency, had peace with God immediately; there needed no such
mediator. But to guilty sinful man it is a very dreadful thing to think of God
out of Christ; for he is our peace, Eph_2:14,
not only the maker, but the matter and maintainer, of our peace, Col_1:20.
II. We have
access by faith into this grace wherein we stand, Rom_5:2. This is a further privilege, not only
peace, but grace, that is, this favour. Observe, 1. The saints' happy state. It
is a state of grace, God's loving-kindness to us and our conformity to God; he
that hath God's love and God's likeness is in a state of grace. Now into this
grace we have access prosagōgēn - an introduction,
which implies that we were not born in this state; we are by nature children
of wrath, and the carnal mind is enmity against God; but we are
brought into it. We could not have got into it of ourselves, nor have conquered
the difficulties in the way, but we have a manuduction, a leading by the hand,
- are led into it as blind, or lame, or weak people are led, - are introduced
as pardoned offenders, - are introduced by some favourite at court to kiss the
king's hand, as strangers, that are to have audience, are conducted. Prosagōgēn
eschēkamen - We have had access. He speaks of those that have been
already brought out of a state of nature into a state of grace. Paul, in his
conversion, had this access; then he was made nigh. Barnabas introduced him to
the apostles (Act_9:27), and there
were others that led him by the hand to Damascus (Rom_5:8), but it was Christ that introduced and
led him by the hand into this grace. By whom we have access by faith. By
Christ as the author and principal agent, by faith as the means of this access.
Not by Christ in consideration of any merit or desert of ours, but in consideration
of our believing dependence upon him and resignation of ourselves to him. 2.
Their happy standing in this state: wherein we stand. Not only wherein
we are, but wherein we stand, a posture that denotes our discharge from guilt; we
stand in the judgment (Psa_1:5),
not cast, as convicted criminals, but our dignity and honour secured, not
thrown to the ground, as abjects. The phrase denotes also our progress; while
we stand, we are going. We must not lie down, as if we had already attained,
but stand as those that are pressing forward, stand as servants attending on
Christ our master. The phrase denotes, further, our perseverance: we stand
firmly and safely, upheld by the power of God; stand as soldiers stand, that
keep their ground, not borne down by the power of the enemy. It denotes not
only our admission to, but our confirmation in, the favour of God. It is not in
the court of heaven as in earthly courts, where high places are slippery
places: but we stand in a humble confidence of this very thing that he who
has begun the good work will perform it, Phi_1:6.
III. We rejoice in hope of the glory of God.
Besides the happiness in hand, there is a happiness in hope, the glory of
God, the glory which God will put upon the saints in heaven, glory which
will consist in the vision and fruition of God. 1. Those, and those only, that
have access by faith into the grace of God now may hope for the glory of God
hereafter. There is no good hope of glory but what is founded in grace; grace
is glory begun, the earnest and assurance of glory. He will give grace and
glory, Psa_84:11. 2. Those who hope
for the glory of God hereafter have enough to rejoice in now. It is the duty of
those that hope for heaven to rejoice in that hope.
IV. We glory in tribulations also; not only
notwithstanding our tribulations (these do not hinder our rejoicing in hope of
the glory of God), but even in our tribulations, as they are working for us the
weight of glory, 2Co_4:17. Observe,
What a growing increasing happiness the happiness of the saints is: Not only
so. One would think such peace, such grace, such glory, and such a joy in
hope of it, were more than such poor undeserving creatures as we are could
pretend to; and yet it is not only so: there are more instances of our
happiness - we glory in tribulations also, especially tribulations for
righteousness' sake, which seemed the greatest objection against the saints'
happiness, whereas really their happiness did not only consist with, but take
rise fRom. those tribulations. They rejoiced that they were counted worthy
to suffer, Act_5:41. This being the
hardest point, he sets himself to show the grounds and reasons of it. How come
we to glory in tribulations? Why, because tribulations, by a chain of causes,
greatly befriend hope, which he shows in the method of its influence. 1. Tribulation
worketh patience, not in and of itself, but the powerful grace of God
working in and with the tribulation. It proves, and by proving improves,
patience, as parts and gifts increase by exercise. It is not the efficient
cause, but yields the occasion, as steel is hardened by the fire. See how God
brings meat out of the eater, and sweetness out of the strong. That which
worketh patience is matter of joy; for patience does us more good than
tribulations can do us hurt. Tribulation in itself worketh impatience; but, as
it is sanctified to the saints, it worketh patience. 2. Patience experience,
Rom_5:4. It works an experience of God,
and the songs he gives in the night; the patient sufferers have the greatest
experience of the divine consolations, which abound as afflictions abound. It
works an experience of ourselves. It is by tribulation that we make an
experiment of our own sincerity, and therefore such tribulations are called
trials. It works, dokimēn - an approbation, as he is approved
that has passed the test. Thus Job's tribulation wrought patience, and that
patience produced an approbation, that still he holds fast his integrity,
Job_2:3. 3. Experience hope. He
who, being thus tried, comes forth as gold, will thereby be encouraged to hope.
This experiment, or approbation, is not so much the ground, as the evidence, of
our hope, and a special friend to it. Experience of God is a prop to our hope;
he that hath delivered doth and will. Experience of ourselves helps to evidence
our sincerity. 4. This hope maketh not ashamed; that is, it is a hope
that will not deceive us. Nothing confounds more than disappointment.
Everlasting shame and confusion will be caused by the perishing of the
expectation of the wicked, but the hope of the righteous shall be gladness,
Pro_10:28. See Psa_22:5; Psa_71:1.
Or, It maketh not ashamed of our sufferings. Though we are counted as the
offscouring of all things, and trodden under foot as the mire in the streets,
yet, having hopes of glory, we are not ashamed of these sufferings. It is in a
good cause, for a good Master, and in good hope; and therefore we are not
ashamed. We will never think ourselves disparaged by sufferings that are likely
to end so well. Because the love of God is shed abroad. This hope will
not disappoint us, because it is sealed with the Holy Spirit as a Spirit of
love. It is the gracious work of the blessed Spirit to shed abroad the love of
God in the hearts of all the saints. The love of God, that is, the sense
of God's love to us, drawing out love in us to him again. Or, The great effects
of his love: (1.) Special grace; and, (2.) The pleasant gust or sense of it. It
is shed abroad, as sweet ointment, perfuming the soul, as rain watering it
and making it fruitful. The ground of all our comfort and holiness, and
perseverance in both, is laid in the shedding abroad of the love of God in
our hearts; it is this which constrains us, 2Co_5:14.
Thus are we drawn and held by the bonds of love. Sense of God's love to us will
make us not ashamed, either of our hope in him or our sufferings for him.
Romans
5:6-21
The apostle here
describes the fountain and foundation of justification, laid in the death of
the Lord Jesus. The streams are very sweet, but, if you run them up to the
spring-head, you will find it to be Christ's dying for us; it is in the
precious stream of Christ's blood that all these privileges come flowing to us:
and therefore he enlarges upon this instance of the love of God which is shed
abroad. Three things he takes notice of for the explication and illustration of
this doctrine: - 1. The persons he died for, Rom_5:6-8.
2. The precious fruits of his death, Rom_5:9-11.
3. The parallel he runs between the communication of sin and death by the first
Adam and of righteousness and life by the second Adam, Rom_5:12, to the end.
I. The character
we were under when Christ died for us.
1. We were
without strength (Rom_5:6), in a
sad condition; and, which is worse, altogether unable to help ourselves out of
that condition - lost, and no visible way open for our recovery - our condition
deplorable, and in a manner desperate; and, therefore our salvation is here
said to come in due time. God's time to help and save is when those that
are to be saved are without strength, that his own power and grace may be the
more magnified, Deu_32:36. It is the
manner of God to help at a dead lift,
2. He died
for the ungodly; not only helpless creatures, and therefore likely to
perish, but guilty sinful creatures, and therefore deserving to perish; not
only mean and worthless, but vile and obnoxious, unworthy of such favour with
the holy God. Being ungodly, they had need of one to die for them, to satisfy
for guilt, and to bring in a righteousness. This he illustrates (Rom_5:7, Rom_5:8)
as an unparalleled instance of love; herein God's thoughts and ways were above
ours. Compare Joh_15:13, Joh_15:14, Greater love has no man. (1.)
One would hardly die for a righteous man, that is, an innocent man, one
that is unjustly condemned; every body will pity such a one, but few will put
such a value upon his life as either to hazard, or much less to deposit, their
own in his stead. (2.) It may be, one might perhaps be persuaded to die for
a good man, that is, a useful man, who is more than barely a righteous man.
Many that are good themselves yet do but little good to others; but those that
are useful commonly get themselves well beloved, and meet with some that in a
case of necessity would venture to be their antipsuchoi - would engage life for life, would be their
bail, body for body. Paul was, in this sense, a very good man, one that was very
useful, and he met with some that for his life laid down their own necks, Rom_16:4. And yet observe how he qualifies this:
it is but some that would do so, and it is a daring act if they do it, it must
be some bold venturing soul; and, after all, it is but a peradventure.
(3.) But Christ died for sinners (Rom_5:8),
neither righteous nor good; not only such as were useless, but such as were
guilty and obnoxious; not only such as there would be no loss of should they
perish, but such whose destruction would greatly redound to the glory of God's
justice, being malefactors and criminals that ought to die. Some think he
alludes to a common distinction the Jews had of their people into tsaddim
- righteous, chesedim - merciful (compare Isa_57:1), and rashim - wicked.
Now herein God commended his love, not only proved or evidenced his love
(he might have done that at a cheaper rate), but magnified it and made it
illustrious. This circumstance did greatly magnify and advance his love, not
only put it past dispute, but rendered it the object of the greatest wonder and
admiration: “Now my creatures shall see that I love them, I will give them such
an instance of it as shall be without parallel.” Commendeth his love, as
merchants commend their goods when they would put them off. This commending of
his love was in order to the shedding abroad of his love in our hearts by the
Holy Ghost. He evinces his love in the most winning, affecting, endearing way
imaginable. While we were yet sinners, implying that we were not to be
always sinners, there should be a change wrought; for he died to save us, not
in our sins, but from our sins; but we were yet sinners when he died for us.
(4.) Nay, which is more, we were enemies (Rom_5:10),
not only malefactors, but traitors and rebels, in arms against the government;
the worst kind of malefactors and of all malefactors the most obnoxious. The
carnal mind is not only an enemy to God, but enmity itself, Rom_8:7; Col_1:21.
This enmity is a mutual enmity, God loathing the sinner, and the sinner
loathing God, Zec_11:8. And that for
such as these Christ should die is such a mystery, such a paradox, such an
unprecedented instance of love, that it may well be our business to eternity to
adore and wonder at it. This is a commendation of love indeed. Justly might he
who had thus loved us make it one of the laws of his kingdom that we should
love our enemies.
II. The precious fruits of his death.
1. Justification and reconciliation are the first and
primary fruit of the death of Christ: We are justified by his blood (Rom_5:9), reconciled by his death, Rom_5:10. Sin is pardoned, the sinner accepted
as righteous, the quarrel taken up, the enmity slain, an end made of iniquity,
and an everlasting righteousness brought in. This is done, that is, Christ has
done all that was requisite on his part to be done in order hereunto, and,
immediately upon our believing, we are actually put into a state of
justification and reconciliation. Justified by his blood. Our
justification is ascribed to the blood of Christ because without blood there
is no remission Heb_9:22. The
blood is the life, and that must go to make atonement. In all the
propitiatory sacrifices, the sprinkling of the blood was of the essence of the
sacrifice. It was the blood that made an atonement for the soul, Lev_17:11.
2. Hence results salvation from wrath: Saved from
wrath (Rom_5:9), saved by his
life, Rom_5:10 When that which
hinders our salvation is taken away, the salvation must needs follow. Nay, the
argument holds very strongly; if God justified and reconciled us when we were
enemies, and put himself to so much charge to do it, much more will he save us
when we are justified and reconciled. He that has done the greater, which is of
enemies to make us friends, will certainly the less, which is when we are
friends to use us friendly and to be kind to us. And therefore the apostle,
once and again, speaks of it with a much more. He that hath digged so
deep to lay the foundation will no doubt build upon that foundation. - We
shall be saved from wrath, from hell and damnation. It is the wrath of God
that is the fire of hell; the wrath to come, so it is called, 1Th_1:10. The final justification and absolution
of believers at the great day, together with the fitting and preparing of them
for it, are the salvation from wrath here spoken of; it is the perfecting of
the work of grace. - Reconciled by his death, saved by his life. His
life here spoken of is not to be understood of his life in the flesh, but his
life in heaven, that life which ensued after his death. Compare Rom_14:9. He was dead, and is alive, Rev_1:18. We are reconciled by Christ humbled,
we are saved by Christ exalted. The dying Jesus laid the foundation, in
satisfying for sin, and slaying the enmity, and so making us salvable; thus is
the partition-wall broken down, atonement made, and the attainder reversed; but
it is the living Jesus that perfects the work: he lives to make
intercession, Heb_7:25. It is
Christ, in his exaltation, that by his word and Spirit effectually calls, and
changes, and reconciles us to God, is our Advocate with the Father, and so
completes and consummates our salvation. Compare Rom_4:25
and Rom_8:34. Christ dying was the
testator, who bequeathed us the legacy; but Christ living is the executor, who
pays it. Now the arguing is very strong. He that puts himself to the charge of
purchasing our salvation will not decline the trouble of applying it.
3. All this produces, as a further privilege, our joy
in God, Rom_5:11. God is now so far
from being a terror to us that he is our joy, and our hope in the day of
evil, Jer_17:17. We are
reconciled and saved from wrath. Iniquity, blessed be God, shall not be
our ruin. And not only so, there is more in it yet, a constant stream of
favours; we not only go to heaven, but go to heaven triumphantly; not only get
into the harbour, but come in with full sail: We joy in God, not only
saved from his wrath, but solacing ourselves in his love, and this through
Jesus Christ, who is the Alpha and the Omega, the foundation-stone and the
top-stone of all our comforts and hopes - not only our salvation, but our
strength and our song; and all this (which he repeats as a string he loved
to be harping upon) by virtue of the atonement, for by him we Christians, we
believers, have now, now in gospel times, or now in this life, received the
atonement, which was typified by the sacrifices under thee law, and is an
earnest of our happiness in heaven. True believers do by Jesus Christ receive
the atonement. Receiving the atonement is our actual reconciliation to God in
justification, grounded upon Christ's satisfaction. To receive the atonement
is, (1.) To give our consent to the atonement, approving of, and agreeing to,
those methods which Infinite Wisdom has taken of saving a guilty world by the
blood of a crucified Jesus, being willing and glad to be saved in a gospel way
and upon gospel terms. (2.) To take the comfort of the atonement, which is the
fountain and the foundation of our joy in God. Now we joy in God, now we
do indeed receive the atonement, Kauchōmenoi - glorying
in it. God hath received the atonement (Mat_3:17;
Mat_17:5; Mat_28:2):
if we but receive it, the work is done.
III. The parallel that the apostle runs between the
communication of sin and death by the first Adam and of righteousness and life
by the second Adam (Rom_5:12, to the
end), which not only illustrates the truth he is discoursing of, but tends very
much to the commending of the love of God and the comforting of the hearts of
true believers, in showing a correspondence between our fall and our recovery,
and not only a like, but a much greater power in the second Adam to make us
happy, than there was in the first to make us miserable. Now, for the opening
of this, observe,
1. A general truth laid down as the foundation of his
discourse - that Adam was a type of Christ (Rom_5:14):
Who is the figure of him that was to come. Christ is therefore called
the last Adam, 1Co_15:45.
Compare 1Co_15:22. In this Adam was a
type of Christ, that in the covenant-transactions that were between God and
him, and in the consequent events of those transactions, Adam was a public
person. God dealt with Adam and Adam acted as such a one, as a common father
and factor, root and representative, of and for all his posterity; so that what
he did in that station, as agent for us, we may be said to have done in him,
and what was done to him may be said to have been done to us in him. Thus Jesus
Christ, the Mediator, acted as a public person, the head of all the elect,
dealt with God for them, as their father, factor, root, and representative -
died for them, rose for them, entered within the veil for them, did all for
them. When Adam failed, we failed with him; when Christ performed, he performed
for us. Thus was Adam tupos tou mellontos - the figure of him that
was to come, to come to repair that breach which Adam had made.
2. A more particular explication of the parallel, in
which observe,
(1.) How Adam, as a public person, communicated sin and
death to all his posterity (Rom_5:12): By
one man sin entered. We see the world under a deluge of sin and death, full
of iniquities and full of calamities. Now, it is worth while to enquire what is
the spring that feeds it, and you will find it to be the general corruption of
nature; and at what gap it entered, and you will find it to have been Adam's
first sin. It was by one man, and he the first man (for if any had been
before him they would have been free), that one man from whom, as from the
root, we all spring. [1.] By him sin entered. When God pronounced all
very good (Gen_1:31) there was no sin
in the world; it was when Adam ate forbidden fruit that sin made its entry. Sin
had before entered into the world of angels, when many of them revolted from
their allegiance and left their first estate; but it never entered into the
world of mankind till Adam sinned. Then it entered as an enemy, to kill and
destroy, as a thief, to rob and despoil; and a dismal entry it was. Then
entered the guilt of Adam's sin imputed to posterity, and a general corruption
and depravedness of nature. Eph' hō - for that (so we read it),
rather in whom, all have sinned. Sin entered into the world by Adam, for
in him we all sinned. As, 1Co_15:22, in
Adam all die; so here, in him all have sinned; for it is agreeable
to the law of all nations that the acts of a public person be accounted theirs
whom they represent; and what a whole body does every member of the same body
may be said to do. Now Adam acted thus as a public person, by the sovereign ordination
and appointment of God, and yet that founded upon a natural necessity; for God,
as the author of nature, had made this the law of nature, that man should beget
in his own likeness, and so the other creatures. In Adam therefore, as in a
common receptacle, the whole nature of man was reposited, from him to flow down
in a channel to his posterity; for all mankind are made of one blood (Act_17:26), so that according as this nature
proves through his standing or falling, before he puts it out of his hands,
accordingly it is propagated from him. Adam therefore sinning and falling, the
nature became guilty and corrupt, and is so derived. Thus in him all have
sinned. [2.] Death by sin, for death is the wages of sin. Sin, when it
is finished, brings forth death. When sin came, of course death came with it.
Death is here put for all that misery which is the due desert of sin, temporal,
spiritual, eternal death. If Adam had not sinned, he had not died; the
threatening was, In the day thou eatest thou shall surely die, Gen_2:17. [3.] So death passed, that is,
a sentence of death was passed, as upon a criminal, diēlthen - passed
through all men, as an infectious disease passes through a town, so that
none escape it. It is the universal fate, without exception: death passes upon
all. There are common calamities incident to human life which do abundantly
prove this. Death reigned, Rom_5:14.
He speaks of death as a mighty prince, and his monarchy the most absolute,
universal, and lasting monarchy. None are exempted from its sceptre; it is a
monarchy that will survive all other earthly rule, authority, and power, for it
is the last enemy, 1Co_15:26. Those
sons of Belial that will be subject to no other rule cannot avoid being subject
to this. Now all this we may thank Adam for; from him sin and death descend.
Well may we say, as that good man, observing the change that a fit of sickness
had made in his countenance, O Adam! what hast thou done?
Further, to clear this, he shows that sin did not
commence with the law of Moses, but was in the world until, or before,
that law; therefore that law of Moses is not the only rule of life, for there
was a rule, and that rule was transgressed, before the law was given. It
likewise intimates that we cannot be justified by our obedience to the law of
Moses, any more than we were condemned by and for our disobedience to it. Sin
was in the world before the law; witness Cain's murder, the apostasy of the old
world, the wickedness of Sodom. His inference hence is, Therefore there was a law;
for sin is not imputed where there is no law. Original sin is a want of
conformity to, and actual sin is a transgression of, the law of God: therefore
all were under some law. His proof of it is, Death reigned from Adam to
Moses, Rom_5:14. It is certain that
death could not have reigned if sin had not set up the throne for him. This
proves that sin was in the world before the law, and original sin, for death
reigned over those that had not sinned any actual sin, that had not sinned
after the similitude of Adam's transgression, never sinned in their own
persons as Adam did - which is to be understood of infants, that were never
guilty of actual sin, and yet died, because Adam's sin was imputed to them.
This reign of death seems especially to refer to those violent and
extraordinary judgments which were long before Moses, as the deluge and the
destruction of Sodom, which involved infants. It is a great proof of original
sin that little children, who were never guilty of any actual transgression,
are yet liable to very terrible diseases, casualties, and deaths, which could
by no means be reconciled with the justice and righteousness of God if they
were not chargeable with guilt.
(2.) How, in correspondence to this, Christ, as a
public person, communicates righteousness and life to all true believers, who
are his spiritual seed. And in this he shows not only wherein the resemblance
holds, but, ex abundanti, wherein the communication of grace and love by
Christ goes beyond the communication of guilt and wrath by Adam.
Observe,
[1.] Wherein the resemblance holds. This is laid down
most fully, Rom_5:18, Rom_5:19.
First, By the offence and disobedience of one many were
made sinners, and judgment came upon all men to condemnation. Here observe, 1. That Adam's
sin was disobedience, disobedience to a plain and express command: and it was a
command of trial. The thing he did was therefore evil because it was forbidden,
and not otherwise; but this opened the door to other sins, though itself
seemingly small. 2. That the malignity and poison of sin are very strong and
spreading, else the guilt of Adam's sin would not have reached so far, nor have
been so deep and long a stream. Who would think there should be so much evil in
sin? 3. That by Adam's sin many are made sinners: many, that is, all his
posterity; said to be many, in opposition to the one that offended, Made
sinners, katestathēsan. It denotes the making of us such by a
judicial act: we were cast as sinners by due course of law. 4. That judgment is
come to condemnation upon all those that by Adam's disobedience were made
sinners. Being convicted, we are condemned. All the race of mankind lie under a
sentence, like an attainder upon a family. There is judgment given and recorded
against us in the court of heaven; and, if the judgment be not reversed, we are
likely to sink under it to eternity.
Secondly, In like manner, by the righteousness and obedience
of one (and that one is Jesus Christ, the second Adam), are many made
righteous, and so the free gift comes upon all. It is observable how
the apostle inculcates this truth, and repeats it again and again, as a truth
of very great consequence. Here observe, 1. The nature of Christ's
righteousness, how it is brought in; it is by his obedience. The disobedience
of the first Adam ruined us, the obedience of the second Adam saves us, - his
obedience to the law of mediation, which was that he should fulfil all
righteousness, and then make his soul an offering for sin. By his obedience to
this law he wrought out a righteousness for us, satisfied God's justice, and so
made way for us into his favour. 2. The fruit of it. (1.) There is a free
gift come upon all men, that is, it is made and offered promiscuously to
all. The salvation wrought is a common salvation; the proposals are general,
the tender free; whoever will may come, and take of these waters of life. This
free gift is to all believers, upon their believing, unto justification of
life. It is not only a justification that frees from death, but that
entitles to life. (2.) Many shall be made righteous - many compared with
one, or as many as belong to the election of grace, which, though but a few as
they are scattered up and down in the world, yet will be a great many when they
come all together. Katastathēsontai - they shall be constituted
righteous, as by letters patent. Now the antithesis between these two, our ruin
by Adam and our recovery by Christ, is obvious enough.
[2.] Wherein the communication of grace and love by
Christ goes beyond the communication of guilt and wrath by Adam; and this he
shows, Rom_5:15-17. It is designed for
the magnifying of the riches of Christ's love, and for the comfort and
encouragement of believers, who, considering what a wound Adam's sin has made,
might begin to despair of a proportionable remedy. His expressions are a little
intricate, but this he seems to intend: - First, If guilt and wrath be
communicated, much more shall grace and love; for it is agreeable to the idea
we have of the divine goodness to suppose that he should be more ready to save
upon an imputed righteousness than to condemn upon an imputed guilt: Much
more the grace of God, and the gift by grace. God's goodness is, of all his
attributes, in a special manner his glory, and it is that grace that is the
root (his favour to us in Christ), and the gift is by grace. We know that God
is rather inclined to show mercy; punishing is his strange work. Secondly,
If there was so much power and efficacy, as it seems there was, in the sin of a
man, who was of the earth, earthy, to condemn us, much more are there power and
efficacy in the righteousness and grace of Christ, who is the Lord from heaven,
to justify and save us. The one man that saves us is Jesus Christ.
Surely Adam could not propagate so strong a poison but Jesus Christ could
propagate as strong an antidote, and much stronger. 3. It is but the guilt of
one single offence of Adam's that is laid to our charge: The judgment was
ex henos eis katakrima, by one, that is, by one offence, Rom_5:16, Rom_5:17.
Margin. But from Jesus Christ we receive and derive an abundance of
grace, and of the gift of righteousness. The stream of grace and
righteousness is deeper and broader than the stream of guilt; for this
righteousness does not only take away the guilt of that one offence, but of many
other offences, even of all. God in Christ forgives all trespasses, Col_2:13. 4. By Adam's sin death reigned;
but by Christ's righteousness there is not only a period put to the reign of
death, but believers are preferred to reign of life, Rom_5:17. In and by the righteousness of Christ
we have not only a charter of pardon, but a patent of honour, are not only
freed from our chains, but, like Joseph, advanced to the second chariot, and
made unto our God kings and priests - not only pardoned, but preferred. See
this observed, Rev_1:5, Rev_1:6; Rev_5:9,
Rev_5:10. We are by Christ and his
righteousness entitled to, and instated in, more and greater privileges than we
lost by the offence of Adam. The plaster is wider than the wound, and more
healing than the wound is killing.
IV. In the last two verses the
apostle seems to anticipate an objection which is expressed, Gal_3:19, Wherefore then serveth the law?
Answer, 1. The law entered that the offence might abound. Not to make
sin to abound the more in itself, otherwise than as sin takes occasion by the
commandment, but to discover the abounding sinfulness of it. The glass
discovers the spots, but does not cause them. When the commandment came into
the world sin revived, as the letting of a clearer light into a room discovers
the dust and filth which were there before, but were not seen. It was like the
searching of a wound, which is necessary to to the cure. The offence, paraptōma
- that offence, the sin of Adam, the extending of the guilt of it to us,
and the effect of the corruption in us, are the abounding of that offence which
appeared upon the entry of the law. 2. That grace might much more abound
- that the terrors of the law might make gospel-comforts so much the sweeter.
Sin abounded among the Jews; and, to those of them that were converted to the
faith of Christ, did not grace much more abound in the remitting of so much
guilt and the subduing of so much corruption? The greater the strength of the
enemy, the greater the honour of the conqueror. This abounding of grace he
illustrates, Rom_5:21. As the reign of
a tyrant and oppressor is a foil to set off the succeeding reign of a just and
gentle prince and to make it the more illustrious, so doth the reign of sin set
off the reign of grace. Sin reigned unto death; it was a cruel bloody
reign. But grace reigns to life, eternal life, and this through
righteousness, righteousness imputed to us for justification, implanted in
us for sanctification; and both by Jesus Christ our Lord, through the
power and efficacy of Christ, the great prophet, priest, and king, of his
church.
Romans
6:1-23
The apostle's
transition, which joins this discourse with the former, is observable: “What
shall we say then? Rom_6:1. What
use shall we make of this sweet and comfortable doctrine? Shall we do evil that
good may come, as some say we do? Rom_3:8.
Shall we continue in sin that grace may abound? Shall we hence take
encouragement to sin with so much the more boldness, because the more sin we
commit the more will the grace of God be magnified in our pardon? Is this a use
to be made of it?” No, it is an abuse, and the apostle startles at the thought
of it (Rom_6:2): “God forbid;
far be it from us to think such a thought.” He entertains the objection as
Christ did the devil's blackest temptation (Mat_4:10):
Get thee hence, Satan. Those opinions that give any countenance to sin,
or open a door to practical immoralities, how specious and plausible soever
they be rendered, by the pretension of advancing free grace, are to be rejected
with the greatest abhorrence; for the truth as it is in Jesus is a truth according
to godliness, Tit_1:1. The apostle
is very full in pressing the necessity of holiness in this chapter, which may
be reduced to two heads: - His exhortations to holiness, which show the nature
of it; and his motives or arguments to enforce those exhortations, which show
the necessity of it.
I. For the
first, we may hence observe the nature of sanctification, what it is, and
wherein it consists. In general it has two things in it, mortification and
vivification - dying to sin and living to righteousness, elsewhere expressed by
putting off the old man and putting on the new, ceasing to do evil and learning
to do well.
1. Mortification,
putting off the old man; several ways this is expressed. (1.) We must live
no longer in sin (Rom_6:2), we must
not be as we have been nor do as we have done. The time past of our life must
suffice, 1Pe_4:3. Though there are none
that live without sin, yet, blessed be God, there are those that do not live in
sin, do not live in it as their element, do not make a trade of it: this is to
be sanctified. (2.) The body of sin must be destroyed, Rom_6:6. The corruption that dwelleth in us is
the body of sin, consisting of many parts and members, as a body. This is the
root to which the axe must be laid. We must not only cease from the acts of sin
(this may be done through the influence of outward restraints, or other
inducements), but we must get the vicious habits and inclinations weakened and
destroyed; not only cast away the idols of iniquity out of the heart. - That
henceforth we should not serve sin. The actual transgression is certainly
in a great measure prevented by the crucifying and killing of the original
corruption. Destroy the body of sin, and then, though there should be
Canaanites remaining in the land, yet the Israelites will not be slaves to
them. It is the body of sin that sways the sceptre, wields the iron rod;
destroy this, and the yoke is broken. The destruction of Eglon the tyrant is
the deliverance of oppressed Israel from the Moabites. (3.) We must be dead
indeed unto sin, Rom_6:11. As the
death of the oppressor is a release, so much more is the death of the
oppressed, Job_3:17, Job_3:18. Death brings a writ of ease to the
weary. Thus must we be dead to sin, obey it, observe it, regard it, fulfil its
will no more than he that is dead doth his quandam task-masters - be as
indifference to the pleasures and delights of sin as a man that is dying is to
his former diversions. He that is dead is separated from his former company,
converse, business, enjoyments, employments, is not what he was, does not what
he did, has not what he had. Death makes a mighty change; such a change doth
sanctification make in the soul, it cuts off all correspondence with sin. (4.) Sin
must not reign in our mortal bodies that we should obey it, Rom_6:12. Though sin may remain as an outlaw,
though it may oppress as a tyrant, yet let it not reign as a king. Let it not
make laws, nor preside in councils, nor command the militia; let it not be
uppermost in the soul, so that we should obey it. Though we may be sometimes
overtaken and overcome by it, yet let us never be obedient to it in the lusts
thereof; let not sinful lusts be a law to you, to which you would yield a
consenting obedience. In the lusts thereof - en tais epithumiais autou. It refers to the body, not to
sin. Sin lies very much in the gratifying of the body, and humouring that. And
there is a reason implied in the phrase your mortal body; because it is
a mortal body, and hastening apace to the dust, therefore let not sin reign in
it. It was sin that made our bodies mortal, and therefore do not yield
obedience to such an enemy. (5.) We must not yield our members as
instruments of unrighteousness, Rom_6:13.
The members of the body are made use of by the corrupt nature as tools, by
which the wills of the flesh are fulfilled; but we must not consent to that
abuse. The members of the body are fearfully and wonderfully made; it is a pity
they should be the devil's tools of unrighteousness unto sin,
instruments of the sinful actions, according to the sinful dispositions.
Unrighteousness is unto sin; the sinful acts confirm and strengthen the sinful
habits; one sin begets another; it is like the letting forth of water,
therefore leave it before it be meddled with. The members of the body may
perhaps, through the prevalency of temptation, be forced to be instruments of
sin; but do not yield them to be so, do not consent to it. This is one branch
of sanctification, the mortification of sin.
2. Vivification, or living to righteousness; and what
is that? (1.) It is to walk in newness of life, Rom_6:4. Newness of life supposes newness of
heart, for out of the heart are the issues of life, and there is not way to
make the stream sweet but by making the spring so. Walking, in scripture, is
put for the course and tenour of the conversation, which must be new. Walk by
new rules, towards new ends, from new principles. Make a new choice of the way.
Choose new paths to walk in, new leaders to walk after, new companions to walk
with. Old things should pass away, and all things become new. The man is what
he was not, does what he did not. (2.) It is to be alive unto God through
Jesus Christ our Lord, Rom_6:11. To
converse with God, to have a regard to him, a delight in him, a concern for
him, the soul upon all occasions carried out towards him as towards an
agreeable object, in which it takes a complacency: this is to be alive to God.
The love of God reigning in the heart is the life of the soul towards God. Anima
est ubi amat, non ubi animat - The soul is where it loves, rather than where it
lives. It is to have the affections and desires alive towards God. Or, living
(our live in the flesh) unto God, to his honour and glory as our end, by
his word and will as our rule - in all our ways to acknowledge him, and to have
our eyes ever towards him; this is to live unto God. - Through Jesus Christ
our Lord. Christ is our spiritual life; there is no living to God but
through him. He is the Mediator; there can be no comfortable receivings from
God, nor acceptable regards to God, but in and through Jesus Christ; no
intercourse between sinful souls and a holy God, but by the mediation of the
Lord Jesus. Through Christ as the author and maintainer of this life; through
Christ as the head from whom we receive vital influence; through Christ as the
root by which we derive sap and nourishment, and so live. In living to God,
Christ is all in all. (3.) It is to yield ourselves to God, as those that
are alive from the dead, Rom_6:13.
The very life and being of holiness lie in the dedication of ourselves to the
Lord, giving our own selves to the Lord, 2Co_8:5.
“Yield yourselves to him, not only as the conquered yields to the conqueror,
because he can stand it out no longer; but as the wife yields herself to her
husband, to whom her desire is, as the scholar yields himself to the teacher,
the apprentice to his master, to be taught and ruled by him. Not yield your
estates to him, but yield yourselves; nothing less than your whole selves;” parastēsate
eautous - accommodate vos ipsos Deo - accommodate yourselves to
God; so Tremellius, from the Syriac. “Not only submit to him,
but comply with him; not only present yourselves to him once for all, but be
always ready to serve him. Yield yourselves to him as wax to the seal, to take any
impression, to be, and have, and do, what he pleases.” When Paul said, Lord,
what wilt thou have me to do? (Act_9:6)
he was then yielded to God. As those that are alive from the dead. To
yield a dead carcase to a living God is not to please him, but to mock him:
“Yield yourselves as those that are alive and good for something, a living
sacrifice,” Rom_12:1. The surest
evidence of our spiritual life is the dedication of ourselves to God. It
becomes those that are alive from the dead (it may be understood of a death in
law), that are justified and delivered from death, to give themselves to him
that hath so redeemed them. (4.) It is to yield our members as instruments
of righteousness to God. The members of our bodies, when withdrawn from the
service of sin, are not to lie idle, but to be made use of in the service of
God. When the strong man armed is dispossessed, let him whose right it is
divide the spoils. Though the powers and faculties of the soul be the immediate
subjects of holiness and righteousness, yet the members of the body are to be
instruments; the body must be always ready to serve the soul in the service of
God. Thus (Rom_6:19), “Yield your
members servants to righteousness unto holiness. Let them be under the
conduct and at the command of the righteous law of God, and that principle of
inherent righteousness which the Spirit, as sanctifier, plants in the soul.” Righteousness
unto holiness, which intimates growth, and progress, and ground obtained.
As every sinful act confirms the sinful habit, and makes the nature more and
more prone to sin (hence the members of a natural man are here said to be
servants to iniquity unto iniquity - one sin makes the heart more
disposed for another), so every gracious act confirms the gracious habit:
serving righteousness is unto holiness; one duty fits us for another; and the
more we do the more we may do for God. Or serving righteousness, eis
hagiasmon - as an evidence of sanctification.
II. The motives or arguments here used to show the
necessity of sanctification. There is such an antipathy in our hearts by nature
to holiness that it is no easy matter to bring them to submit to it: it is the
Spirit's work, who persuades by such inducements as these set home upon the
soul.
1. He argues from our sacramental conformity to Jesus
Christ. Our baptism, with the design and intention of it, carried in it a great
reason why we should die to sin, and live to righteousness. Thus we must
improve our baptism as a bridle of restraint to keep us in from sin, as a spur
of constraint to quicken us to duty. Observe this reasoning.
(1.) In general, we are dead to sin, that is, in
profession and in obligation. Our baptism signifies our cutting off from the
kingdom of sin. We profess to have no more to do with sin. We are dead to sin
by a participation of virtue and power for the killing of it, and by our union
with Christ and interest in him, in and by whom it is killed. All this is in
vain if we persist in sin; we contradict a profession, violate an obligation,
return to that to which we were dead, like walking ghosts, than which nothing
is more unbecoming and absurd. For (Rom_6:7)
he that is dead is freed from sin; that is, he that is dead to it is
freed from the rule and dominion of it, as the servant that is dead is freed
from his master, Job_3:19. Now shall we
be such fools as to return to that slavery from which we are discharged? When
we are delivered out of Egypt, shall we talk of going back to it again?
(2.) In particular, being baptized into Jesus
Christ, we were baptized into his death, Rom_6:3.
We were baptized eis Christon - unto Christ, as 1Co_10:2, eis Mōsēn - unto Moses.
Baptism binds us to Christ, it binds us apprentice to Christ as our teacher, it
is our allegiance to Christ as our sovereign. Baptism is externa ansa
Christi - the external handle of Christ, by which Christ lays hold on men,
and men offer themselves to Christ. Particularly, we were baptized into his
death, into a participation of the privileges purchased by his death, and into
an obligation both to comply with the design of his death, which was to redeem
us from all iniquity, and to conform to the pattern of his death, that, as
Christ died for sin, so we should die to sin. This was the profession and
promise of our baptism, and we do not do well if we do not answer this
profession, and make good this promise.
[1.] Our conformity to the death of Christ obliges us
to die unto sin; thereby we know the fellowship of his sufferings, Phi_3:10. Thus we are here said to be planted
together in the likeness of is death (Rom_6:5),
tō homoiōmati, not only a conformity, but a conformation, as the
engrafted stock is planted together into the likeness of the shoot, of the
nature of which it doth participate. Planting is in order to life and
fruitfulness: we are planted in the vineyard in a likeness to Christ, which
likeness we should evidence in sanctification. Our creed concerning Jesus
Christ is, among other things, that he was crucified, dead, and buried;
now baptism is a sacramental conformity to him in each of these, as the apostle
here takes notice. First, Our old man is crucified with him, Rom_6:6. The death of the cross was a slow
death; the body, after it was nailed to the cross, gave many a throe and many a
struggle: but it was a sure death, long in expiring, but expired at last; such
is the mortification of sin in believers. It was a cursed death, Gal_3:13. Sin dies as a malefactor, devoted to
destruction; it is an accursed thing. Though it be a slow death, yet this must
needs hasten it that it is an old man that is crucified; not in the prime of
its strength, but decaying: that which waxeth old is ready to vanish away, Heb_8:13. Crucified with him - sunestaurōthē,
not in respect of time, but in respect of causality. The crucifying of Christ
for us has an influence upon the crucifying of sin in us. Secondly, We
are dead with Christ, Rom_6:8. Christ
was obedient to death: when he died, we might be said to die with him, as our
dying to sin is an act of conformity both to the design and to the example of
Christ's dying for sin. Baptism signifies and seals our union with Christ, our
engrafting into Christ; so that we are dead with him, and engaged to have no
more to do with sin than he had. Thirdly, We are buried with him by baptism,
Rom_6:4. Our conformity is complete. We
are in profession quite cut off from all commerce and communion with sin, as
those that are buried are quite cut off from all the world; not only not of the
living, but no more among the living, have nothing more to do with them. Thus
must we be, as Christ was, separate from sin and sinners. We are buried,
namely, in profession and obligation: we profess to be so, and we are bound to
be so: it was our covenant and engagement in baptism; we are sealed to be the
Lord's, therefore to be cut off from sin. Why this burying in baptism should so
much as allude to any custom of dipping under water in baptism, any more than
our baptismal crucifixion and death should have any such references, I confess
I cannot see. It is plain that it is not the sign, but the thing signified, in
baptism, that the apostle here calls being buried with Christ, and the
expression of burying alludes to Christ's burial. As Christ was buried, that he
might rise again to a new and more heavenly life, so we are in baptism buried,
that is, cut off from the life of sin, that we may rise again to a new life of
faith and love.
[2.] Our conformity to the resurrection of Christ
obliges us to rise again to newness of life. This is the power of his
resurrection which Paul was so desirous to know, Phi_3:10. Christ was raised up from the dead by the glory
of the Father, that is, by the power of the Father. The power of God is his
glory; it is glorious power, Col_1:11.
Now in baptism we are obliged to conform to that pattern, to be planted in the likeness
of his resurrection (Rom_6:5), to live
with him, Rom_6:8. See Col_2:12. Conversion is the first resurrection
from the death of sin to the life of righteousness; and this resurrection is
conformable to Christ's resurrection. This conformity of the saints to the
resurrection of Christ seems to be intimated in the rising of so many of the
bodies of the saints, which, though mentioned before by anticipation, is
supposed to have been concomitant with Christ's resurrection, Mat_27:52. We have all risen with Christ. In two
things we must conform to the resurrection of Christ: - First, He rose
to die no more, Rom_6:9. We read of
many others that were raised from the dead, but they rose to die again. But,
when Christ rose, he rose to die no more; therefore he left his grave-clothes
behind him, whereas Lazarus, who was to die again, brought them out with him,
as one that should have occasion to use them again: but over Christ death
has no more dominion; he was dead indeed, but he is alive, and so alive
that he lives for evermore, Rev_1:18.
Thus we must rise from the grave of sin never again to return to it, nor to
have any more fellowship with the works of darkness, having quitted that grave,
that land of darkness as darkness itself. Secondly, He rose to live unto
God (Rom_6:10), to live a heavenly
life, to receive that glory which was set before him. Others that were raised
from the dead returned to the same life in every respect which they had before
lived; but so did not Christ: he rose again to leave the world. Now I am no
more in the world, Joh_13:1; Joh_17:11. He rose to live to God, that
is, to intercede and rule, and all to the glory of the Father. Thus must we
rise to live to God: this is what he calls newness of life (Rom_6:4), to live from other principles, by
other rules, with other aims, than we have done. A life devoted to God is a new
life; before, self was the chief and highest end, but now God. To live indeed
is to live to God, with our eyes ever towards him, making him the centre of all
our actions.
2. He argues from the precious promises and privileges
of the new covenant, Rom_6:14. It might
be objected that we cannot conquer and subdue sin, it is unavoidably too hard
for us: “No,” says he, “you wrestle with an enemy that may be dealt with and
subdued, if you will but keep your ground and stand to your arms; it is an
enemy that is already foiled and baffled; there is strength laid up in the
covenant of grace for your assistance, if you will but use it. Sin shall not
have dominion.” God's promises to us are more powerful and effectual for
the mortifying of sin than our promises to God. Sin may struggle in a believer,
and may create him a great deal of trouble, but it shall not have dominion; it
may vex him, but shall not rule over him. For we are not under the law, but
under grace, not under the law of sin and death, but under the law of the
spirit of life, which is in Christ Jesus: we are actuated by other principles
than we have been: new lords, new laws. Or, not under the covenant of works,
which requires brick, and gives no straw, which condemns upon the least
failure, which runs thus, “Do this, and live; do it not, and die;” but under
the covenant of grace, which accepts sincerity as our gospel perfection, which
requires nothing but what it promises strength to perform, which is herein well
ordered, that every transgression in the covenant does not put us out of
covenant, and especially that it does not leave our salvation in our own
keeping, but lays it up in the hands of the Mediator, who undertakes for us
that sin shall not have dominion over us, who hath himself condemned it, and
will destroy it; so that, if we pursue the victory, we shall come off more than
conquerors. Christ rules by the golden sceptre of grace, and he will not let
sin have dominion over those that are willing subjects to that rule. This is a
very comfortable word to all true believers. If we were under the law, we were
undone, for the law curses every one that continues not in every thing; but we
are under grace, grace which accepts the willing mind, which is not extreme to
mark what we do amiss, which leaves room for repentance, which promises pardon
upon repentance; and what can be to an ingenuous mind a stronger motive than
this to have nothing to do with sin? Shall we sin against so much goodness,
abuse such love? Some perhaps might suck poison out of this flower, and
disingenuously use this as an encouragement to sin. See how the apostle starts
at such a thought (Rom_6:15): Shall
we sin because we are not under the law, but under grace? God forbid. What
can be more black and ill-natured than from a friend's extraordinary
expressions of kindness and good-will to take occasion to affront and offend
him? To spurn at such bowels, to spit in the face of such love, is that which,
between man and man, all the world would cry out shame on.
3. He argues from the evidence that this will be of our
state, making for us, or against us (Rom_6:16):
To whom you yield yourselves servants to obey, his servants you are. All
the children of men are either the servants of God, or the servants of sin;
these are the two families. Now, if we would know to which of these families we
belong, we must enquire to which of these masters we yield obedience. Our
obeying the laws of sin will be an evidence against us that we belong to that
family on which death is entailed. As, on the contrary, our obeying the laws of
Christ will evidence our relation to Christ's family.
4. He argues from their former sinfulness, Rom_6:17-21, where we may observe,
(1.) What they had been and done formerly. We have need
to be often reminded of our former state. Paul frequently remembers it
concerning himself, and those to whom he writes. [1.] You were the servants
of sin. Those that are now the servants of God would do well to remember
the time when they were the servants of sin, to keep them humble, penitent, and
watchful, and to quicken them in the service of God. It is a reproach to the
service of sin that so many thousands have quitted the service, and shaken off
the yoke; and never any that sincerely deserted it, and gave themselves to the
service of God, have returned to the former drudgery. “God be thanked that
you were so, that is, that though you were so, yet you have obeyed. You
were so; God be thanked that we can speak of it as a thing past: you were so,
but you are not now so. Nay, your having been so formerly tends much to the
magnifying of divine mercy and grace in the happy change. God be thanked that
the former sinfulness is such a foil and such a spur to your present holiness.”
[2.] You have yielded your members servants to uncleanness, and to iniquity
unto iniquity, Rom_6:19. It is the
misery of a sinful state that the body is made a drudge to sin, than which
there could not be a baser or a harder slavery, like that of the prodigal that
was sent into the fields to feed swine. You have yielded. Sinners are
voluntary in the service of sin. The devil could not force them into the
service, if they did not yield themselves to it. This will justify God in the
ruin of sinners, that they sold themselves to work wickedness: it was their own
act and deed. To iniquity unto iniquity. Every sinful act strengthens
and confirms the sinful habit: to iniquity as the work unto iniquity as the
wages. Sow the wind, and reap the whirlwind; growing worse and worse, more and
more hardened. This he speaks after the manner of men, that is, he
fetches a similitude from that which is common among men, even the change of
services and subjections. [3.] You were free from righteousness (Rom_6:20); not free by any liberty given, but by
a liberty taken, which is licentiousness: “You were altogether void of
that which is good, - void of any good principles, motions, or inclinations, -
void of all subjection to the law and will of God, of all conformity to his
image; and this you were highly pleased with, as a freedom and a liberty; but a
freedom from righteousness is the worst kind of slavery.”
(2.) How the blessed change was made, and wherein it
did consist.
[1.] You have obeyed from the heart that form of
doctrine which was delivered to you, Rom_6:17.
This describes conversion, what it is; it is our conformity to, and compliance
with, the gospel which was delivered to us by Christ and his ministers. - Margin.
Whereto you were delivered; eis hon paredothēte - into which you
were delivered. And so observe, First, The rule of grace, that
form of doctrine - tupon didachēs. The gospel is the great rule
both of truth and holiness; it is the stamp, grace is the impression of that
stamp; it is the form of healing words, 2Ti_1:13.
Secondly, The nature of grace, as it is our conformity to that rule. 1.
It is to obey from the heart. The gospel is a doctrine not only to be
believed, but to be obeyed, and that from the heart, which denotes the
sincerity and reality of that obedience; not in profession only, but in power -
from the heart, the innermost part, the commanding part of us. 2. It is to be delivered
into it, as into a mould, as the wax is cast into the impression of the
seal, answering it line for line, stroke for stroke, and wholly representing
the shape and figure of it. To be a Christian indeed is to be transformed into
the likeness and similitude of the gospel, our souls answering to it, complying
with it, conformed to it - understanding, will, affections, aims, principles,
actions, all according to that form of doctrine.
[2.] Being made free from sin, you became servants
of righteousness (Rom_6:18), servants
to God, Rom_6:22. Conversion is, First,
A freedom from the service of sin; it is the shaking off of that yoke,
resolving to have no more to do with it. Secondly, A resignation of
ourselves to the service of God and righteousness, to God as our master, to
righteousness as our work. When we are made free from sin, it is not that we
may live as we list, and be our own masters; no: when we are delivered out of
Egypt, we are, as Israel, led to the holy mountain, to receive the law, and are
there brought into the bond of the covenant. Observe, We cannot be made the
servants of God till we are freed from the power and dominion of sin; we cannot
serve two masters so directly opposite one to another as God and sin are. We
must, with the prodigal, quit the drudgery of the citizen of the country,
before we can come to our Father's house.
(3.) What apprehensions they now had of their former
work and way. He appeals to themselves (Rom_6:21),
whether they had not found the service of sin, [1.] An unfruitful service: “What
fruit had you then? Did you ever get any thing by it? Sit down, and cast up
the account, reckon your gains, what fruit had you then?” Besides the future
losses, which are infinitely great, the very present gains of sin are not worth
mentioning. What fruit? Nothing that deserves the name of fruit. The
present pleasure and profit of sin do not deserve to be called fruit; they are
but chaff, ploughing iniquity, sowing vanity, and reaping the same. [2.] It is
an unbecoming service; it is that of which we are now ashamed - ashamed
of the folly, ashamed of the filth, of it. Shame came into the world with sin,
and is still the certain product of it - either the shame of repentance, or, if
not that, eternal shame and contempt. Who would wilfully do that which sooner
or later he is sure to be ashamed of?
5. He argues from the end of
all these things. it is the prerogative of rational creatures that they are
endued with a power of prospect, are capable of looking forward, considering
the latter end of things. To persuade us from sin to holiness here are blessing
and cursing, good and evil, life and death, set before us; and we are put to
our choice. (1.) The end of sin is death (Rom_6:21):
The end of those things is death. Though the way may seem pleasant and
inviting, yet the end is dismal: at the last it bites; it will be bitterness in
the latter end. The wages of sin is death, Rom_6:23.
Death is as due to a sinner when he hath sinned as wages are to a servant when
he hath done his work. This is true of every sin. There is no sin in its own
nature venial. Death is the wages of the least sin. Sin is here represented
either as the work for which the wages are given, or as the master by whom the
wages are given; all that are sin's servants and do sin's work must expect to
be thus paid. (2.) If the fruit be unto holiness, if there be an active
principle of true and growing grace, the end will be everlasting life - a very
happy end! - Though the way be up-hill, though it be narrow, and thorny, and
beset, yet everlasting life at the end of it is sure. So, Rom_6:23, The gift of God is eternal life.
Heaven is life, consisting in the vision and fruition of God; and it is eternal
life, no infirmities attending it, no death to put a period to it. This is the
gift of God. The death is the wages of sin, it comes by desert; but the life is
a gift, it comes by favour. Sinners merit hell, but saints do not merit heaven.
There is no proportion between the glory of heaven and our obedience; we must
thank God, and not ourselves, if ever we get to heaven. And this gift is through
Jesus Christ our Lord. It is Christ that purchased it, prepared it,
prepares us for it, preserves us to it; he is the Alpha and Omega, All
in all in our salvation.
Romans
7:1-6
Among other
arguments used in the foregoing chapter to persuade us against sin, and to
holiness, this was one (Rom_7:14), that
we are not under the law; and this argument is here further insisted
upon and explained (Rom_7:6): We are
delivered from the law. What is meant by this? And how is it an argument
why sin should not reign over us, and why we should walk in newness of life? 1.
We are delivered from the power of the law which curses and condemns us for the
sin committed by us. The sentence of the law against us is vacated and
reversed, by the death of Christ, to all true believers. The law saith, The
soul that sins shall die; but we are delivered from the law. The Lord
has taken away thy sin, thou shalt not die. We are redeemed from the
curse of the law, Gal_3:13. 2. We
are delivered from that power of the law which irritates and provokes the sin
that dwelleth in us. This the apostle seems especially to refer to (Rom_7:5): The motions of sins which were by
the law. The law, by commanding, forbidding, threatening, corrupt and
fallen man, but offering no grace to cure and strengthen, did but stir up the
corruption, and, like the sun shining upon a dunghill, excite and draw up the
filthy steams. We being lamed by the fall, the law comes and directs us, but
provides nothing to heal and help our lameness, and so makes us halt and
stumble the more. Understand this of the law not as a rule, but as a covenant of
works. Now each of these is an argument why we should be holy; for here is
encouragement to endeavours, though in many things we come short. We are under
grace, which promises strength to do what it commands, and pardon upon
repentance when we do amiss. This is the scope of these verses in general,
that, in point of profession and privilege, we are under a covenant of grace,
and not under a covenant of works - under the gospel of Christ, and not under
the law of Moses. The difference between a law-state and a gospel-state he had
before illustrated by the similitude of rising to a new life, and serving a new
master; now here he speaks of is under the similitude of being married to a new
husband.
I. Our first
marriage was to the law, which, according to the law of marriage, was to
continue only during the life of the law. The law of marriage is binding till
the death of one of the parties, no matter which, and no longer. The death of
either discharges both. For this he appeals to themselves, as persons knowing
the law (Rom_7:1): I speak to those
that know the law. It is a great advantage to discourse with those that
have knowledge, for such can more readily understand and apprehend a truth.
Many of the Christians at Rome were such as had been Jews, and so were well
acquainted with the law. One has some hold of knowing people. The law hath
power over a man as long as he liveth; in particular, the law of marriage
hath power; or, in general, every law is so limited - the laws of nations, of
relations, of families, etc. 1. The obligation of laws extends no further; by
death the servant who, while he lived, was under the yoke, is freed from his
master, Job_3:19. 2. The
condemnation of laws extends no further; death is the finishing of the law. Actio
moritur cum personâ - The action expires with the person. The severest laws
could but kill the body, and after that there is no more that they can do. Thus
while we were alive to the law we were under the power of it - while we were in
our Old Testament state, before the gospel came into the world, and before it
came with power into our hearts. Such is the law of marriage (Rom_7:2), the woman is bound to her husband
during life, so bound to him that she cannot marry another; if she do, she
shall be reckoned an adulteress, Rom_7:3.
It will make her an adulteress, not only to be defiled by, but to be married
to, another man; for that is so much the worse, upon this account, that it
abuses an ordinance of God, by making it to patronise the uncleanness. Thus
were we married to the law (Rom_7:5): When
we were in the flesh, that is, in a carnal state, under the reigning power
of sin and corruption - in the flesh as in our element - then the motions of
sins which were by the law did work in our members, we were carried down
the stream of sin, and the law was but as an imperfect dam, which made the
stream to swell the higher, and rage the more. Our desire was towards sin, as
that of the wife towards her husband, and sin ruled over us. We embraced it,
loved it, devoted all to it, conversed daily with it, made it our care to
please it. We were under a law of sin and death, as the wife under the law of
marriage; and the product of this marriage was fruit brought forth unto death,
that is, actual transgressions were produced by the original corruption, such
as deserve death. Lust, having conceived by the law (which is the strength of
sin, 1Co_15:56), bringeth forth sin,
and sin, when it is finished, bringeth forth death, Jam_1:15. This is the posterity that springs
from this marriage to sin and the law. This comes of the motions of sin working
in our members. And this continues during life, while the law is alive to us,
and we are alive to the law.
II. Our second
marriage is to Christ: and how comes this about? Why,
1. We are freed,
by death, from our obligation to the law as a covenant, as the wife is from her
obligation to her husband, Rom_7:3.
This resemblance is not very close, nor needed it to be. You are become dead
to the law, Rom_7:4. He does not
say, “The law is dead” (some think because he would avoid giving offence to
those who were yet zealous for the law), but, which comes all to one, You
are dead to the law. As the crucifying of the world to us, and of us to the
world, amounts to one and the same thing, so doth the law dying, and our dying
to it. We are delivered from the law (Rom_7:6),
katērgēthēmen - we are nulled as to
the law; our obligation to it as a husband is cassated and made void. And then
he speaks of the law being dead as far as it was a law of bondage to us: That
being dead wherein we were held; not the law itself, but its obligation to
punishment and its provocation to sin. It is dead, it has lost its power; and
this (Rom_7:4) by the body of
Christ, that is, by the sufferings of Christ in his body, by his crucified
body, which abrogated the law, answered the demands of it, made satisfaction
for our violation of it, purchased for us a covenant of grace, in which
righteousness and strength are laid up for us, such as were not, nor could be,
by the law. We are dead to the law by our union with the mystical body of
Christ. By being incorporated into Christ in our baptism professedly, in our
believing powerfully and effectually, we are dead to the law, have no more to
do with it than the dead servant, that is free from his master, hath to do with
his master's yoke.
2. We are married to Christ. The day of our believing
is the day of our espousals to the Lord Jesus. We enter upon a life of
dependence on him and duty to him: Married to another, even to him who is
raised from the dead, a periphrasis of Christ and very pertinent here; for
as our dying to sin and the law is in conformity to the death of Christ, and
the crucifying of his body, so our devotedness to Christ in newness of life is
in conformity to the resurrection of Christ. We are married to the raised
exalted Jesus, a very honourable marriage. Compare 2Co_11:2;
Eph_5:29. Now we are thus married to
Christ, (1.) That we should bring forth fruit unto God, Rom_7:4. One end of marriage is fruitfulness:
God instituted the ordinance that he might seek a godly seed, Mal_2:15. The wife is compared to the fruitful
vine, and children are called the fruit of the womb. Now the great end of our
marriage to Christ is our fruitfulness in love, and grace, and every good work.
This is fruit unto God, pleasing to God, according to his will, aiming at his
glory. As our old marriage to sin produced fruit unto death, so our second
marriage to Christ produces fruit unto God, fruits of righteousness. Good works
are the children of the new nature, the products of our union with Christ, as
the fruitfulness of the vine is the product of its union with the root.
Whatever our professions and pretensions may be, there is no fruit brought
forth to God till we are married to Christ; it is in Christ Jesus that we are
created unto good works, Eph_2:10. The
only fruit which turns to a good account is that which is brought forth in
Christ. This distinguishes the good works of believers from the good works of
hypocrites and self-justifiers that they are brought forth in marriage, done in
union with Christ, in the name of the Lord Jesus, Col_3:17.
This is, without controversy, one of the great mysteries of godliness. (2.) That
we should serve in newness of spirit, and not in the oldness of the letter,
Rom_7:6. Being married to a new
husband, we must change our way. Still we must serve, but it is a service that
is perfect freedom, whereas the service of sin was a perfect drudgery: we must
now serve in newness of spirit, by new spiritual rules, from new spiritual
principles, in spirit and in truth, Joh_4:24.
There must be a renovation of our spirits wrought by the spirit of God, and in
that we must serve. Not in the oldness of the letter; that is, we must
not rest in mere external services, as the carnal Jews did, who gloried in
their adherence to the letter of the law, and minded not the spiritual part of
worship. The letter is said to kill with its bondage and terror, but we are
delivered from that yoke that we may serve God without fear, in holiness and
righteousness, Luk_1:74, Luk_1:75. We are under the dispensation of the
Spirit, and therefore must be spiritual, and serve in the spirit. Compare with
this 2Co_3:3, 2Co_3:6, etc. It becomes us to worship within
the veil, and no longer in the outward court.
Romans
7:7-14
To what he had
said in the former paragraph, the apostle here raises an objection, which he
answers very fully: What shall we say then? Is the law sin? When he had
been speaking of the dominion of sin, he had said so much of the influence of
the law as a covenant upon that dominion that it might easily be misinterpreted
as a reflection upon the law, to prevent which he shows from his own experience
the great excellency and usefulness of the law, not as a covenant, but as a
guide; and further discovers how sin took occasion by the commandment. Observe
in particular,
I. The great
excellency of the law in itself. Far be it from Paul to reflect upon the law;
no, he speaks honourably of it. 1. It is holy, just, and good, Rom_7:12. The law in general is so, and every
particular commandment is so. Laws are as the law-makers are. God, the great
lawgiver, is holy, just, and good, therefore his law must needs be so. The
matter of it is holy: it commands holiness, encourages holiness; it is holy,
for it is agreeable to the holy will of God, the original of holiness. It is
just, for it is consonant to the rules of equity and right reason: the ways of
the Lord are right. It is good in the design of it; it was given for the good
of mankind, for the conservation of peace and order in the world. It makes the
observers of it good; the intention of it was to better and reform mankind.
Wherever there is true grace there is an assent to this - that the law is holy,
just, and good. 2. The law is spiritual (Rom_7:14),
not only in regard to the effect of it, as it is a means of making us
spiritual, but in regard to the extent of it; it reaches our spirits, it lays a
restraint upon, and gives a direction to, the motions of the inward man; it
is a discerner of the thoughts and intents of the heart, Heb_4:12. It forbids spiritual wickedness,
heart-murder, and heart-adultery. It commands spiritual service, requires the
heart, obliges us to worship God in the spirit. It is a spiritual law, for it
is given by God, who is a Spirit and the Father of spirits; it is given to man,
whose principal part is spiritual; the soul is the best part, and the leading
part of the man, and therefore the law to the man must needs be a law to the
soul. Herein the law of God is above all other laws, that it is a spiritual
law. Other laws may forbid compassing and imagining, etc., which are
treason in the heart, but cannot take cognizance thereof, unless there be some
overt act; but the law of God takes notice of the iniquity regarded in the
heart, though it go no further. Wash thy heart from wickedness, Jer_4:14. We know this: Wherever there is
true grace there is an experimental knowledge of the spirituality of the law of
God.
II. The great
advantage that he had found by the law. 1. It was discovering: I had not
known sin but by the law, Rom_7:7.
As that which is straight discovers that which is crooked, as the looking-glass
shows us our natural face with all its spots and deformities, so there is no
way of coming to that knowledge of sin which is necessary to repentance, and
consequently to peace and pardon, but by comparing our hearts and lives with
the law. Particularly he came to the knowledge of the sinfulness of lust by the
law of the tenth commandment. By lust he means sin dwelling in us, sin in its
first motions and workings, the corrupt principle. This he came to know when
the law said, Thou shalt not covet. The law spoke in other language than
the scribes and Pharisees made it to speak in; it spoke in the spiritual sense
and meaning of it. By this he knew that lust was sin and a very sinful sin,
that those motions and desires of the heart towards sin which never came into
act were sinful, exceedingly sinful. Paul had a very quick and piercing
judgment, all the advantages and improvements of education, and yet never
attained the right knowledge of indwelling sin till the Spirit by the law made
it known to him. There is nothing about which the natural man is more blind
than about original corruption, concerning which the understanding is
altogether in the dark till the Spirit by the law reveal it, and make it known.
Thus the law is a schoolmaster, to bring us to Christ, opens and
searches the wound, and so prepares it for healing. Thus sin by the commandment
does appear sin (Rom_7:13); it appears
in its own colours, appears to be what it is, and you cannot call it by a worse
name than its own. Thus by the commandment it becomes exceedingly sinful;
that is, it appears to be so. We never see the desperate venom or malignity
there is in sin, till we come to compare it with the law, and the spiritual
nature of the law, and then we see it to be an evil and a bitter thing. 2. It
was humbling (Rom_7:9): I was alive.
He thought himself in a very good condition; he was alive in his own opinion
and apprehension, very secure and confident of the goodness of his state. Thus
he was once, pote - in times past, when
he was a Pharisee; for it was the common temper of that generation of men that
they had a very good conceit of themselves; and Paul was then like the rest of
them, and the reason was he was then without the law. Though brought up
at the feet of Gamaliel, a doctor of the law, though himself a great student in
the law, a strict observer of it, and a zealous stickler for it, yet without
the law. He had the letter of the law, but he had not the spiritual meaning
of it - the shell, but not the kernel. He had the law in his hand and in his
head, but he had it not in his heart; the notion of it, but not the power of
it. There are a great many who are spiritually dead in sin, that yet are alive
in their own opinion of themselves, and it is their strangeness to the law that
is the cause of the mistake. But when the commandment came, came in the
power of it (not to his eyes only, but to his heart), sin revived, as
the dust in a room rises (that is, appears) when the sun-shine is let into it.
Paul then saw that in sin which he had never seen before; he then saw sin in
its causes, the bitter root, the corrupt bias, the bent to backslide, - sin in
its colours, deforming, defiling, breaking a righteous law, affronting an awful
Majesty, profaning a sovereign crown by casting it to the ground, - sin in its
consequences, sin with death at the heels of it, sin and the curse entailed
upon it. “Thus sin revived, and then I died; I lost that good opinion which I
had had of myself, and came to be of another mind. Sin revived, and I died;
that is, the Spirit, but the commandment, convinced me that I was in a state of
sin, and in a state of death because of sin.” Of this excellent use is the law;
it is a lamp and a light; it converts the soul, opens the eyes, prepares the
way of the Lord in the desert, rends the rocks, levels the mountains, makes
ready a people prepared for the Lord.
III. The ill use that his corrupt nature made of the
law notwithstanding. 1. Sin, taking occasion by the commandment, wrought in
me all manner of concupiscence, Rom_7:8.
Observe, Paul had in him all manner of concupiscence, though one of the best
unregenerate men that ever was; as touching the righteousness of the law,
blameless, and yet sensible of all manner of concupiscence. And it was sin that
wrought it, indwelling sin, his corrupt nature (he speaks of a sin that did
work sin), and it took occasion by the commandment. The corrupt nature would
not have swelled and raged so much if it had not been for the restraints of the
law; as the peccant humours in the body are raised, and more inflamed, by a
purge that is not strong enough to carry them off. It is incident to corrupt
nature, in vetitum niti - to lean towards what is forbidden. Ever since
Adam ate forbidden fruit, we have all been fond of forbidden paths; the diseased
appetite is carried out most strongly towards that which is hurtful and
prohibited. Without the law sin was dead, as a snake in winter, which
the sunbeams of the law quicken and irritate. 2. It deceived men. Sin
puts a cheat upon the sinner, and it is a fatal cheat, Rom_7:11. By it (by the commandment) slew
me. There being in the law no such express threatening against sinful
lustings, sin, that is, his won corrupt nature, took occasion thence to promise
him impunity, and to say, as the serpent to our first parents, You shall not
surely die. Thus it deceived and slew him. 3. It wrought death in me by
that which is good, Rom_7:13. That
which works concupiscence works death, for sin bringeth forth death. Nothing so
good but a corrupt and vicious nature will pervert it, and make it an occasion
of ins; no flower so sweet by sin will such poison out of it. Now in this sin
appears sin. The worst thing that sin does, and most like itself, is the
perverting of the law, and taking occasion from it to be so much the more
malignant. Thus the commandment, which was ordained to life, was intended as a
guide in the way to comfort and happiness, proved unto death, through the
corruption of nature, Rom_7:10. Many a
precious soul splits upon the rock of salvation; and the same word which to
some is an occasion of life unto life is to others an occasion of death unto
death. The same sun that makes the garden of flowers more fragrant makes the
dunghill more noisome; the same heat that softens wax hardens clay; and the
same child was set for the fall and rising again of many in Israel. The way to
prevent this mischief is to bow our souls to the commanding authority of the
word and law of God, not striving against, but submitting to it.
Romans
7:14-25
Here is a
description of the conflict between grace and corruption in the heart, between
the law of God and the law of sin. And it is applicable two ways: - 1. To the
struggles that are in a convinced soul, but yet unregenerate, in the person of
whom it is supposed, by some, that Paul speaks. 2. To the struggles that are in
a renewed sanctified soul, but yet in a state of imperfection; as other
apprehend. And a great controversy there is of which of these we are to
understand the apostle here. So far does the evil prevail here, when he speaks
of one sold under sin, doing it, not performing that which is good, that it
seems difficult to apply it to the regenerate, who are described to walk not
after the flesh, but after the Spirit; and yet so far does the good prevail in
hating sin, consenting to the law, delighting in it, serving the law of God
with the mind, that it is more difficult to apply it to the unregenerate that
are dead in trespasses and sins.
I. Apply it to
the struggles that are felt in a convinced soul, that is yet in a state of sin,
knows his Lord's will, but does it not, approves the things that are more
excellent, being instructed out of the law, and yet lives in the constant
breach of it, Rom_2:17-23. Though he
has that within him that witnesses against the sin he commits, and it is not
without a great deal of reluctancy that he does commit it, the superior
faculties striving against it, natural conscience warning against it before it
is committed and smiting for it afterwards, yet the man continues a slave to
his reigning lusts. It is not thus with every unregenerate man, but with those
only that are convinced by the law, but not changed by the gospel. The apostle
had said (Rom_6:14), Sin shall not
have dominion, because you are not under the law, but under grace, for the
proof of which he here shows that a man under the law, and not under grace, may
be, and is, under the dominion of sin. The law may discover sin, and convince
of sin, but it cannot conquer and subdue sin, witness the predominancy of sin
in many that are under very strong legal convictions. It discovers the
defilement, but will not wash it off. It makes a man weary and heavy laden (Mat_11:28), burdens him with his sin; and yet,
if rested in, it yields no help towards the shaking off of that burden; this is
to be had only in Christ. The law may make a man cry out, O wretched man
that I am! who shall deliver me? and yet leave him thus fettered and
captivated, as being too weak to deliver him (Rom_8:3),
give him a spirit of bondage to fear, Rom_8:15.
Now a soul advanced thus far by the law is in a fair way towards a state of
liberty by Christ, though many rest here and go no further. Felix trembled, but
never came to Christ. It is possible for a man to go to hell with his eyes open
(Num_24:3, Num_24:4),
illuminated with common convictions, and to carry about with him a
self-accusing conscience, even in the service of the devil. He may consent
to the law that it is good, delight to know God's ways (as they, Isa_58:2), may have that within him that
witnesses against sin and for holiness; and yet all this overpowered by the
reigning love of sin. Drunkards and unclean persons have some faint desires to
leave off their sins, and yet persist in them notwithstanding, such is the
impotency and such the insufficiency of their convictions. Of such as these
there are many that will needs have all this understood, and contend earnestly
for it: though it is very hard to imagine why, if the apostle intended this, he
should speak all along in his own person; and not only so, but in the present
tense. Of his own state under conviction he had spoken at large, as of a thing
past (Rom_7:7, etc.): I died; the
commandment I found to be unto death; and if here he speaks of the same
state as his present state, and the condition he was now in, surely he did not
intend to be so understood: and therefore,
II. It seems
rather to be understood of the struggles that are maintained between grace and
corruption in sanctified souls. That there are remainders of indwelling
corruption, even where there is a living principle of grace, is past dispute;
that this corruption is daily breaking forth in sins of infirmity (such as are
consistent with a state of grace) is no less certain. If we say that we have no
sin, we deceive ourselves, 1Jo_1:8, 1Jo_1:10. That true grace strives against these
sins and corruptions, does not allow of them, hates them, mourns over them,
groans under them as a burden, is likewise certain (Gal_5:17):
The flesh lusteth against the spirit, and the spirit against the flesh; and
these are contrary the one to the other, so that you cannot do the things that
you would. These are the truths which, I think, are contained in this
discourse of the apostle. And his design is further to open the nature of
sanctification, that it does not attain to a sinless perfection in this life;
and therefore to quicken us to, and encourage us in, our conflicts with
remaining corruptions. Our case is not singular, that which we do sincerely
strive against, shall not be laid to our charge, and through grace the victory
is sure at last. The struggle here is like that between Jacob and Esau in the
womb, between the Canaanites and Israelites in the land, between the house of
Saul and the house of David; but great is the truth and will prevail.
Understanding it thus, we may observe here,
1. What he
complains of - the remainder of indwelling corruptions, which he here speaks
of, to show that the law is insufficient to justify even a regenerate man, that
the best man in the world hath enough in him to condemn him, if God should deal
with him according to the law, which is not the fault of the law, but of our
own corrupt nature, which cannot fulfil the law. The repetition of the same
things over and over again in this discourse shows how much Paul's heart was
affected with what he wrote, and how deep his sentiments were. Observe the
particulars of this complaint. (1.) I am carnal, sold under sin, Rom_7:14. He speaks of the Corinthians as
carnal, 1Co_3:1. Even where there is
spiritual life there are remainders of carnal affections, and so far a man may
be sold under sin; he does not sell himself to work wickedness, as Ahab
did (1Ki_21:25), but he was sold by
Adam when he sinned and fell - sold, as a poor slave that does his master's
will against his own will - sold under sin, because conceived in iniquity and
born in sin. (2.) What I would, that I do not; but what I hate, that do I,
Rom_7:15. And to the same purport, Rom_7:19, Rom_7:21,
When I would do good, evil is present with me. Such was the strength of
corruptions, that he could not attain that perfection in holiness which he
desired and breathed after. Thus, while he was pressing forward towards
perfection, yet he acknowledges that he had not already attained, neither was
already perfect, Phi_3:12. Fain he
would be free from all sin, and perfectly do the will of God, such was his
settled judgment; but his corrupt nature drew him another way: it was like a
clog, that checked and kept him down when he would have soared upward, like the
bias in a bowl, which, when it is thrown straight, yet draws it aside. (3.) In
me, that is in my flesh, dwelleth no good, Rom_7:18.
Here he explains himself concerning the corrupt nature, which he calls flesh;
and as far as that goes there is no good to be expected, any more than one
would expect good corn growing upon a rock, or on the sand which is by the
sea-side. As the new nature, as far as that goes, cannot commit sin (1Jo_3:9), so the flesh, the old nature, as far
as that goes, cannot perform a good duty. How should it? For the flesh serveth
the law of sin (Rom_7:25), it is under
the conduct and government of that law; and, while it is so, it is not likely
to do any good. The corrupt nature is elsewhere called flesh (Gen_6:3, Joh_3:6);
and, though there may be good things dwelling in those that have this flesh,
yet, as far as the flesh goes, there is no good, the flesh is not a subject
capable of any good. (4.) I see another law in my members warring against
the law of my mind, Rom_7:23. The
corrupt and sinful inclination is here compared to a law, because it controlled
and checked him in his good motions. It is said to be seated in his members,
because, Christ having set up his throne in his heart, it was only the
rebellious members of the body that were the instruments of sin - in the
sensitive appetite; or we may take it more generally for all that corrupt
nature which is the seat not only of sensual but of more refined lusts. This
wars against the law of the mind, the new nature; it draws the contrary way,
drives on a contrary interest, which corrupt disposition and inclination are as
great a burden and grief to the soul as the worst drudgery and captivity could
be. It brings me into captivity. To the same purport (Rom_7:25), With the flesh I serve the law of
sin; that is, the corrupt nature, the unregenerate part, is continually
working towards sin. (5.) His general complaint we have in Rom_7:24, O wretched man that I am! who shall
deliver me from the body of this death? The thing he complains of is a body
of death; either the body of flesh, which is a mortal dying body (while we
carry this body about with us, we shall be troubled with corruption; when we
are dead, we shall be freed from sin, and not before), or the body of sin, the old
man, the corrupt nature, which tends to death, that is, to the ruin of the
soul. Or, comparing it to a dead body, the touch of which was by the ceremonial
law defiling, if actual transgressions be dead works (Heb_9:14), original corruption is a dead body.
It was as troublesome to Paul as if he had had a dead body tied to him, which
he must have carried about with him. This made him cry out, O wretched man
that I am! A man that had learned in every state to be content yet
complains thus of his corrupt nature. Had I been required to speak of Paul, I
should have said, “O blessed man that thou art, an ambassador of Christ, a
favourite of heaven, a spiritual father of thousands!” But in his own account
he was a wretched man, because of the corruption of nature, because he was not
so good as he fain would be, had not yet attained, neither was already perfect.
Thus miserably does he complain. Who shall deliver me? He speaks like
one that was sick of it, that would give any thing to be rid of it, looks to
the right hand and to the left for some friend that would part between him and
his corruptions. The remainders of indwelling sin are a very grievous burden to
a gracious soul.
2. What he
comforts himself with. The case was sad, but there were some allays. Three things
comforted him: -
(1.) That his
conscience witnessed for him that he had a good principle ruling and prevailing
in him, notwithstanding. It is well when all does not go one way in the soul.
The rule of this good principle which he had was the law of God, to which he
here speaks of having a threefold regard, which is certainly to be found in all
that are sanctified, and no others. [1.] I consent unto the law that it is
good, Rom_7:16, sumphēmi - I give my vote to the
law; here is the approbation of the judgment. Wherever there is grace there is
not only a dread of the severity of the law, but a consent to the goodness of
the law. “It is a good in itself, it is good for me.” This is a sign that the
law is written in the heart, that the soul is delivered into the mould of it. To
consent to the law is so far to approve of it as not to wish it otherwise
constituted than it is. The sanctified judgment not only concurs to the equity
of the law, but to the excellency of it, as convinced that a conformity to the
law is the highest perfection of human nature, and the greatest honour and
happiness we are capable of. [2.] I delight in the law of God after the
inward man, Rom_7:22. His
conscience bore witness to a complacency in the law. He delighted not only in
the promises of the word, but in the precepts and prohibitions of the word; sunēdomai
expresses a becoming delight. He did herein concur in affection with all
the saints. All that are savingly regenerate or born again do truly delight in
the law of God, delight to know it, to do it - cheerfully submit to the
authority of it, and take a complacency in that submission, never better
pleased than when heart and life are in the strictest conformity to the law and
will of God. After the inward man; that is, First, The mind or
rational faculties, in opposition to the sensitive appetites and wills of the
flesh. The soul is the inward man, and that is the seat of gracious delights,
which are therefore sincere and serious, but secret; it is the renewing of the
inward man, 2Co_4:16. Secondly,
The new nature. The new man is called the inner man (Eph_3:16), the hidden man of the heart, 1Pe_3:4. Paul, as far as he was sanctified, had
a delight in the law of God. [3.] With the mind I myself serve the law of
God, Rom_7:25. It is not enough to
consent to the law, and to delight in the law, but we must serve the law; our
souls must be entirely delivered up into the obedience of it. Thus it was with
Paul's mind; thus it is with every sanctified renewed mind; this is the
ordinary course and way; thitherward goes the bent of the soul. I myself
- autos egō, plainly intimating that he speaks in his own person, and
not in the person of another.
(2.) That the fault lay in that corruption of his
nature which he did really bewail and strive against: It is no more I that
do it, but sin that dwelleth in me. This he mentions twice (Rom_7:17, Rom_7:20),
not as an excuse for the guilt of his sin (it is enough to condemn us, if we
were under the law, that the sin which does the evil dwelleth in us), but as a
salvo for his evidences, that he might not sink in despair, but take comfort
from the covenant of grace, which accepts the willingness of the spirit, and
has provided pardon for the weakness of the flesh. He likewise herein enters a
protestation against all that which this indwelling sin produced. Having
professed his consent to the law of God, he here professes his dissent from the
law of sin. “It is not I; I disown the fact; it is against my mind that it is
done.” As when in the senate the major part are bad, and carry every thing the
wrong way, it is indeed the act of the senate, but the honest party strive
against it, bewail what is done, and enter their protestation against it; so
that it is no more they that do it. - Dwelleth in me, as the Canaanites
among the Israelites, though they were put under tribute: dwelleth in me, and
is likely to dwell there, while I live.
(3.) His great comfort lay in
Jesus Christ (Rom_7:25): I thank
God, through Jesus Christ our Lord. In the midst of his complaints he
breaks out into praises. It is a special remedy against fears and sorrows to be
much in praise: many a poor drooping soul hath found it so. And, in all our
praises, this should be the burden of the son, “Blessed be God for Jesus
Christ.” Who shall deliver me? says he (Rom_7:24),
as one at a loss for help. At length he finds an all-sufficient friend, even
Jesus Christ. When we are under the sense of the remaining power of sin and
corruption, we shall see reason to bless God through Christ (for, as he is the
mediator of all our prayers, so he is of all our praises) - to bless God for
Christ; it is he that stands between us and the wrath due to us for this sin.
If it were not for Christ, this iniquity that dwells in us would certainly be
our ruin. He is our advocate with the Father, and through him God pities, and
spares, and pardons, and lays not our iniquities to our charge. It is Christ
that has purchased deliverance for us in due time. Through Christ death will
put an end to all these complaints, and waft us to an eternity which we shall
spend without sin or sigh. Blessed be God that giveth us this victory
through our Lord Jesus Christ!
Romans
8:1-9
I. The apostle
here beings with one signal privilege of true Christians, and describes the
character of those to whom it belongs: There is therefore now no
condemnation to those that are in Christ Jesus, Rom_8:1.
This is his triumph after that melancholy complaint and conflict in the
foregoing chapter - sin remaining, disturbing, vexing, but, blessed be God, not
ruining. The complaint he takes to himself, but humbly transfers the comfort
with himself to all true believers, who are all interested in it. 1. It is the
unspeakable privilege and comfort of all those that are in Christ Jesus that
there is therefore now no condemnation to them. He does not say, “There is no
accusation against them,” for this there is; but the accusation is thrown out,
and the indictment quashed. He does not say, “There is nothing in them that
deserves condemnation,” for this there is, and they see it, and own it, and
mourn over it, and condemn themselves for it; but it shall not be their ruin.
He does not say, “There is no cross, no affliction to them or no displeasure in
the affliction,” for this there may be; but no condemnation. They may be
chastened of the Lord, but not condemned with the world. Now this arises from
their being in Christ Jesus; by virtue of their union with him through faith
they are thus secured. They are in Christ Jesus, as in their city of refuge,
and so are protected from the avenger of blood. He is their advocate, and
brings them off. There is therefore no condemnation, because they are
interested in the satisfaction that Christ by dying made to the law. In Christ,
God does not only not condemn them, but is well pleased with them, Mat_17:5. 2. It is the undoubted character of
all those who are so in Christ Jesus as to be freed from condemnation that they
walk not after the flesh but after the Spirit. Observe, The character is
given from their walk, not from any one particular act, but from their course
and way. And the great question is, What is the principle of the walk, the
flesh or the spirit, the old or the new nature, corruption or grace? Which of
these do we mind, for which of these doe we make provision, by which of these
are we governed, which of these do we take part with?
II. This great
truth, thus laid down, he illustrates in the following verses; and shows how we
come by this great privilege, and how we may answer this character.
1. How we come
by these privileges - the privilege of justification, that there is no
condemnation to us - the privilege of sanctification, that we walk after
the Spirit, and not after the flesh, which is no less our privilege than it
is our duty. How comes it about?
(1.) The law
could not do it, Rom_8:3. It could
neither justify nor sanctify, neither free us from the guilt nor from the power
of sin, having not the promises either of pardon or grace. The law made nothing
perfect: It was weak. Some attempt the law made towards these blessed
ends, but, alas! it was weak, it could not accomplish them: yet that weakness
was not through any defect in the law, but through the flesh, through
the corruption of human nature, by which we became incapable either of being
justified or sanctified by the law. We had become unable to keep the law, and,
in case of failure, the law, as a covenant of works, made no provision, and so
left us as it found us. Or understand it of the ceremonial law; that was a
plaster not wide enough for the wound, it could never take away sin, Heb_10:4.
(2.) The law
of the Spirit of life in Christ Jesus does it, Rom_8:2.
The covenant of grace made with us in Christ is a treasury of merit and grace,
and thence we receive pardon and a new nature, are freed from the law of sin
and death, that is, both from the guilt and power of sin - from the course
of the law, and the dominion of the flesh. We are under another covenant,
another master, another husband, under the law of the Spirit, the law
that gives the Spirit, spiritual life to qualify us for eternal. The foundation
of this freedom is laid in Christ's undertaking for us, of which he speaks Rom_8:3, God sending his own Son.
Observe, When the law failed, God provided another method. Christ comes to do
that which the law could not do. Moses brought the children of Israel to the
borders of Canaan, and then died, and left them there; but Joshua did that
which Moses could not do, and put them in possession of Canaan. Thus what the
law could not do Christ did. The best exposition of this verse we have Heb_10:1-10. To make the sense of the words
clear, which in our translation is a little intricate, we may read it thus,
with a little transposition: - God sending his own Son in the likeness of
sinful flesh, and a sacrifice for sin, condemned sin in the flesh, which the
law could not do, in that it was weak through the flesh, etc., Rom_8:4. Observe, [1.] How Christ appeared: In
the likeness of sinful flesh. Not sinful, for he was holy, harmless,
undefiled; but in the likeness of that flesh which was sinful. He took upon him
that nature which was corrupt, though perfectly abstracted from the corruptions
of it. His being circumcised, redeemed, baptized with John's baptism, bespeaks
the likeness of sinful flesh. The bitings of the fiery serpents were cured by a
serpent of brass, which had the shape, through free from the venom, of the serpents
that bit them. It was great condescension that he who was God should be made in
the likeness of flesh; but much greater that he who was holy should be made in
the likeness of sinful flesh. And for sin, - here the best Greek copies
place the comma. God sent him, en homoiōmati sarkos hamartias, kai peri hamartias - in the likeness of sinful
flesh, and as a sacrifice for sin. The Septuagint call a sacrifice for sin
no more than peri hamartias - for sin; so Christ was a sacrifice;
he was sent to be so, Heb_9:26. [2.]
What was done by this appearance of his: Sin was condemned, that is, God
did therein more than ever manifest his hatred of sin; and not only so, but for
all that are Christ's both the damning and the domineering power of sin is
broken and taken out of the way. He that is condemned can neither accuse nor
rule; his testimony is null, and his authority null. Thus by Christ is sin
condemned; though it live and remain, its life in the saints is still but like
that of a condemned malefactor. it was by the condemning of sin that death was
disarmed, and the devil, who had the power of death, destroyed. The condemning
of sin saved the sinner from condemnation. Christ was made sin for us (2Co_5:21), and, being so made, when he was
condemned sin was condemned in the flesh of Christ, condemned in the human
nature: So was sanctification made to divine justice, and way made for the
salvation of the sinner. [3.] The happy effect of this upon us (Rom_8:4): That the righteousness of the law
might be fulfilled in us. Both in our justification and in our
sanctification, the righteousness of the law if fulfilled. A righteousness of
satisfaction for the breach of the law is fulfilled by the imputation of
Christ's complete and perfect righteousness, which answers the utmost demands
of the law, as the mercy-seat was as long and as broad as the ark. A
righteousness of obedience to the commands of the law is fulfilled in us, when
by the Spirit the law of love is written upon the heart, and that love is the
fulfilling of the law, Rom_13:10.
Though the righteousness of the law is not fulfilled by us, yet, blessed be
God, it is fulfilled in us; there is that to be found upon and in all true
believers which answers the intention of the law. Us who walk not after the
flesh, but after the Spirit. This is the description of all those that are
interested in this privilege - they act from spiritual and not from carnal
principles; as for others, the righteousness of the law will be fulfilled upon
them in their ruin. Now,
2. Observe how we may answer to this character, Rom_8:5, etc.
(1.) By looking to our minds. How may we know whether
we are after the flesh or after the Spirit? By examining what we mind, the
things of the flesh or the things of the spirit. Carnal pleasure, worldly profit
and honour, the things of sense and time, are the things of the flesh, which
unregenerate people mind. The favour of God, the welfare of the soul, the
concerns of eternity, are the things of the Spirit, which those that are after
the Spirit do mind. The man is as the mind is. The mind is the forge of
thoughts. As he thinketh in his heart, so is he, Pro_23:7. Which way do the thoughts move with
most pleasure? On what do they dwell with most satisfaction? The mind is the
seat of wisdom. Which way go the projects and contrivances? whether are we more
wise for the world or for our souls? phronousi ta tēs sarkos - they
savour the things of the flesh; so the word is rendered, Mat_16:23. It is a great matter what our savour
is, what truths, what tidings, what comforts, we do most relish, and are most
agreeable to us. Now, to caution us against this carnal-mindedness, he shows
the great misery and malignity of it, and compares it with the unspeakable
excellency and comfort of spiritual-mindedness. [1.] It is death, Rom_8:6. It is spiritual death, the certain way
to eternal death. It is the death of the soul; for it is its alienation from
God, in union and communion with whom the life of the soul consists. A carnal
soul is a dead soul, dead as a soul can die. She that liveth in pleasure is
dead (1Ti_5:6), not only dead in
law as guilty, but dead in state as carnal. Death includes all misery; carnal
souls are miserable souls. But to be spiritually minded, phronēma
tou pneumatos - a spiritual savour (the wisdom that is from above, a
principle of grace) is life and peace; it is the felicity and happiness
of the soul. The life of the soul consists in its union with spiritual things
by the mind. A sanctified soul is a living soul, and that life is peace; it is
a very comfortable life. All the paths of spiritual wisdom are paths of peace.
It is life and peace in the other world, as well as in this.
Spiritual-mindedness is eternal life and peace begun, and an assuring earnest
of the perfection of it. [2.] It is enmity to God (Rom_8:7),
and this is worse than the former. The former speaks the carnal sinner a dead
man, which is bad; but this speaks him a devil of a man. It is not only an
enemy, but enmity itself. It is not only the alienation of the soul from God,
but the opposition of the soul against God; it rebels against his authority,
thwarts his design, opposes his interest, spits in his face, spurns at his
bowels. Can there be a greater enmity? An enemy may be reconciled, but enmity
cannot. How should this humble us for and warn us against, carnal-mindedness!
Shall we harbour and indulge that which is enmity to God our creator, owner,
ruler, and benefactor? To prove this, he urges that it is not subject to the
law of God, neither indeed can be. The holiness of the law of God, and the
unholiness of the carnal mind, are as irreconcilable as light and darkness. The
carnal man may, by the power of divine grace, be made subject to the law of
God, but the carnal mind never can; this must be broken and expelled.
See how wretchedly the corrupt will of man is enslaved to sin; as far as the
carnal mind prevails, there is no inclination to the law of God; therefore
wherever there is a change wrought it is by the power of God's grace, not by
the freedom of man's will. Hence he infers (Rom_8:8),
Those that are in the flesh cannot please God. Those that are in a
carnal unregenerate state, under the reigning power of sin, cannot do the
things that please God, wanting grace, the pleasing principle, and an interest
in Christ, the pleasing Mediator. The very sacrifice of the wicked is an
abomination, Pro_15:8. Pleasing God
is our highest end, of which those that are in the flesh cannot but fall short;
they cannot please him, nay, they cannot but displease him. We may know our
state and character,
(2.) By enquiring whether we have the Spirit of God and
Christ, or not (Rom_8:9): You are
not in the flesh, but in the Spirit. This expresses states and conditions
of the soul vastly different. All the saints have flesh and spirit in them; but
to be in the flesh and to be in the Spirit are contrary. It denotes our being
overcome and subdued by one of these principles. As we say, A man is in
love, or in drink, that is, overcome by it. Now the great question
is whether we are in the flesh or in the Spirit; and how may we come to know
it? Why, by enquiring whether the Spirit of God dwell in us. The Spirit
dwelling in us is the best evidence of our being in the Spirit, for the
indwelling is mutual (1Jo_4:16): Dwelleth
in God, and God in him. The Spirit visits many that are unregenerate with
his motions, which they resist and quench; but in all that are sanctified he
dwells; there he resides and rules. He is there as a man at his own house,
where he is constant and welcome, and has the dominion. Shall we put this
question to our own hearts, Who dwells, who rules, who keeps house, here? Which
interest has the ascendant? To this he subjoins a general rule of trial: If
any man has not the Spirit of Christ, he is none of his. To be Christ's
(that is, to be a Christian indeed, one of his children, his servants, his
friends, in union with him) is a privilege and honour which many pretend to
that have no part nor lot in the matter. None are his but those that have his
Spirit; that is, [1.] That are spirited as he was spirited-are meek, and lowly,
and humble, and peaceable, and patient, and charitable, as he was. We cannot
tread in his steps unless we have his spirit; the frame and disposition of our
souls must be conformable to Christ's pattern. [2.] That are actuated and
guided by the Holy Spirit of God, as a sanctifier, teacher, and comforter.
Having the Spirit of Christ is the same with having the Spirit of God to dwell
in us. But those two come much to one; for all that are actuated by the Spirit
of God as their rule are conformable to the spirit of Christ as their pattern.
Now this description of the character of those to whom belongs this first
privilege of freedom from condemnation is to be applied to all the other
privileges that follow.
Romans
8:10-16
In these verses
the apostle represents two more excellent benefits, which belong to true
believers.
I. Life. The
happiness is not barely a negative happiness, not to be condemned; but it is
positive, it is an advancement to a life that will be the unspeakable happiness
of the man (Rom_8:10, Rom_8:11): If Christ be in you. Observe,
If the Spirit be in us, Christ is in us. He dwells in the heart by faith, Eph_3:17. Now we are here told what becomes of
the bodies and souls of those in whom Christ is.
1. We cannot say
but that the body is dead; it is a frail, mortal, dying body, and it
will be dead shortly; it is a house of clay, whose foundation is in the dust.
The life purchased and promised does not immortalize the body in its present
state. It is dead, that is, it is appointed to die, it is under a sentence of
death: as we say one that is condemned is a dead man. In the midst of life we
are in death: be our bodies ever so strong, and healthful, and handsome, they
are as good as dead (Heb_11:12), and this
because of sin. It is sin that kills the body. This effect the first
threatening has (Gen_3:19): Dust
thou art. Methinks, were there no other argument, love to our bodies should
make us hate sin, because it is such an enemy to our bodies. The death even of
the bodies of the saints is a remaining token of God's displeasure against sin.
2. But the
spirit, the precious soul, that is life; it is now spiritually alive, nay, it
is life. Grace in the soul is its new nature; the life of the saint lies in the
soul, while the life of the sinner goes no further than the body. When the body
dies, and returns to the dust, the spirit if life; not only living and
immortal, but swallowed up of life. Death to the saints is but the freeing of
the heaven-born spirit from the clog and load of this body, that it may be fit
to partake of eternal life. When Abraham was dead, yet God was the God of
Abraham, for even then his spirit was life, Mat_22:31,
Mat_22:32. See Psa_49:15. And this because of righteousness.
The righteousness of Christ imputed to them secures the soul, the better part,
from death; the righteousness of Christ inherent in them, the renewed image of
God upon the soul, preserves it, and, by God's ordination, at death elevates
it, and improves it, and makes it meet to partake of the inheritance of the
saints in light. The eternal life of the soul consists in the vision and
fruition of God, and both assimilating, for which the soul is qualified by the
righteousness of sanctification. I refer to Psa_17:15,
I will behold thy face in righteousness.
3. There is a
life reserved too for the poor body at last: He shall also quicken your
mortal bodies, Rom_8:11. The Lord
is for the body; and though at death it is cast aside as a despised broken
vessel, a vessel in which is no pleasure, yet God will have a desire to the
work of his hands (Job_14:15), will
remember his covenant with the dust, and will not lose a grain of it; but the
body shall be reunited to the soul, and clothed with a glory agreeable to it.
Vile bodies shall be newly fashioned, Phi_3:21;
1Co_15:42. Two great assurances of the
resurrection of the body are mentioned: - (1.) The resurrection of Christ: He that
raised up Christ from the dead shall also quicken. Christ rose as the head,
and first-fruits, and forerunner of all the saints, 1Co_15:20.
The body of Christ lay in the grave, under the sin of all the elect imputed,
and broke through it. O grave, then, where is thy victory? It is in the virtue
of Christ's resurrection that we shall rise. (2.) The indwelling of the Spirit.
The same Spirit that raiseth the soul now will raise the body shortly: By
his Spirit that dwelleth in you. The bodies of the saints are the temples
of the Holy Ghost, 1Co_3:16; 1Co_6:19. Now, though these temples may be
suffered for awhile to lie in ruins, yet they shall be rebuilt. The tabernacle
of David, which has fallen down, shall be repaired, whatever great mountains
may be in the way. The Spirit, breathing upon dead and dry bones, will make
them live, and the saints even in their flesh shall see God. Hence the apostle
by the way infers how much it is our duty to walk not after the flesh, but
after the Spirit, Rom_8:12, Rom_8:13. Let not our life be after the wills
and motions of the flesh. Two motives he mentions here: - [1.] We are not
debtors to the flesh, neither by relation, gratitude, nor any other bond or
obligation. We owe no suit nor service to our carnal desires; we are indeed
bound to clothe, and feed, and take care of the body, as a servant to the soul
in the service of God, but no further. We are not debtors to it; the flesh
never did us so much kindness as to oblige us to serve it. It is implied that
we are debtors to Christ and to the Spirit: there we owe our all, all we have
and all we can do, by a thousand bonds and obligations. Being delivered from so
great a death by so great a ransom, we are deeply indebted to our deliverer.
See 1Co_6:19, 1Co_6:20. [2.] Consider the consequences, what
will be at the end of the way. Here are life and death, blessing and cursing,
set before us. If you live after the flesh, you shall die; that is, die
eternally. It is the pleasing, and serving, and gratifying, of the flesh, that
are the ruin of souls; that is, the second death. Dying indeed is the soul's
dying: the death of the saints is but a sleep. But, on the other hand, You
shall live, live and be happy to eternity; that is the true life: If you
through the Spirit mortify the deeds of the body, subdue and keep under all
fleshly lusts and affections, deny yourselves in the pleasing and humouring of
the body, and this through the Spirit; we cannot do it without the Spirit
working it in us, and the Spirit will not do it without our doing our
endeavour. So that in a word we are put upon this dilemma, either to displease
the body or destroy the soul.
II. The Spirit
of adoption is another privilege belonging to those that are in Christ
Jesus, Rom_8:14-16.
1. All that are
Christ's are taken into the relation of Children to God, Rom_8:14. Observe, (1.) Their property: They are
led by the Spirit of God, as a scholar in his learning is led by his
tutor, as a traveller in his journey is led by his guide, as a soldier in his
engagements is led by his captain; not driven as beasts, but led as rational
creatures, drawn with the cords of a man and the bands of love. It is the
undoubted character of all true believers that they are led by the Spirit of
God. Having submitted themselves in believing to his guidance, they do in their
obedience follow that guidance, and are sweetly led into all truth and all duty.
(2.) Their privilege: They are the sons of God, received into the number
of God's children by adoption, owned and loved by him as his children.
2. And those
that are the sons of God have the Spirit,
(1.) To work in
them the disposition of children.
[1.] You have
not received the spirit of bondage again to fear, Rom_8:15. Understand it, First, Of that
spirit of bondage which the Old Testament church was under, by reason of the
darkness and terror of that dispensation. The veil signified bondage, 2Co_3:15. Compare Rom_8:17.
The Spirit of adoption was not then so plentifully poured out as now; for the
law opened the wound, but little of the remedy. Now you are not under that
dispensation, you have not received that spirit. Secondly, Of that
spirit of bondage which many of the saints themselves were under at their
conversion, under the convictions of sin and wrath set home by the Spirit; as
those in Act_2:37, the jailer (Act_16:30), Paul, Act_9:6.
Then the Spirit himself was to the saints a spirit of bondage: “But,” says the
apostle, “with you this is over.” “God as a Judge,” says Dr. Manton, “by the
spirit of bondage, sends us to Christ as Mediator, and Christ as Mediator, by
the spirit of adoption, sends us back again to God as a Father.” Though a child
of God may come under fear of bondage again, and may be questioning his
sonship, yet the blessed Spirit is not again a spirit of bondage, for then he
would witness an untruth.
[2.] But you have
received the Spirit of adoption. Men may give a charter of adoption; but it
is God's prerogative, when he adopts, to give a spirit of adoption - the nature
of children. The Spirit of adoption works in the children of God a filial love
to God as a Father, a delight in him, and a dependence upon him, as a Father. A
sanctified soul bears the image of God, as the child bears the image of the
father. Whereby we cry, Abba, Father. Praying is here called crying,
which is not only an earnest, but a natural expression of desire; children that
cannot speak vent their desires by crying. Now, the Spirit teaches us in prayer
to come to God as a Father, with a holy humble confidence, emboldening the soul
in that duty. Abba, Father. Abba is a Syriac word signifying father
or my father; patēr,
a Greek work; and why both, Abba, Father? Because Christ said so in
prayer (Mar_14:36), Abba, Father:
and we have received the Spirit of the Son. It denotes an affectionate
endearing importunity, and a believing stress laid upon the relation. Little
children, begging of their parents, can say little but Father, Father,
and that is rhetoric enough. It also denotes that the adoption is common both
to Jews and Gentiles: the Jews call him Abba in their language, the
Greeks may call him patēr in their language; for in Christ Jesus there
is neither Greek nor Jew.
(2.) To witness to the relation of children, Rom_8:16. The former is the work of the Spirit
as a Sanctifier; this as a Comforter. Beareth witness with our spirit.
Many a man has the witness of his own spirit to the goodness of his state who
has not the concurring testimony of the Spirit. Many speak peace to themselves
to whom the God of heaven does not speak peace. But those that are sanctified
have God's Spirit witnessing with their spirits, which is to be understood not
of any immediate extraordinary revelation, but an ordinary work of the Spirit,
in and by the means of comfort, speaking peace to the soul. This testimony is
always agreeable to the written word, and is therefore always grounded upon
sanctification; for the Spirit in the heart cannot contradict the Spirit in the
word. The Spirit witnesses to none the privileges of children who have not the
nature and disposition of children.
Romans
8:17-25
In these words
the apostle describes a fourth illustrious branch of the happiness of
believers, namely, a title to the future glory. This is fitly annexed to our
sonship; for as the adoption of sons entitles us to that glory, so the
disposition of sons fits and prepares us for it. If children, then heirs,
Rom_8:17. In earthly inheritances this
rule does not hold, only the first-born are heirs; but the church is a church
of first-born, for they are all heirs. Heaven is an inheritance that all the
saints are heirs to. They do not come to it as purchasers by any merit or
procurement of their own; but as heirs, purely by the act of God; for God makes
heirs. The saints are heirs though in this world they are heirs under age; see Gal_4:1, Gal_4:2.
Their present state is a state of education and preparation for the
inheritance. How comfortable should this be to all the children of God, how
little soever they have in possession, that, being heirs, they have enough in
reversion! But the honour and happiness of an heir lie in the value and worth
of that which he is heir to: we read of those that inherit the wind; and
therefore we have here an abstract of the premises. 1. Heirs of God. The
Lord himself is the portion of the saints' inheritance (Psa_16:5), a goodly heritage, Psa_16:6. The saints are spiritual priests, that
have the Lord for their inheritance, Num_18:20.
The vision of God and the fruition of God make up the inheritance the saints
are heirs to. God himself will be with them, and will be their God, Rev_21:3. 2. Joint-heirs with Christ.
Christ, as Mediator, is said to be the heir of all things (Heb_1:2), and true believers, by virtue of their
union with him, shall inherit all things, Rev_21:7.
Those that now partake of the Spirit of Christ, as his brethren, shall, as his
brethren, partake of his glory (Joh_17:24),
shall sit down with him upon his throne, Rev_3:21.
Lord, what is man, that thou shouldst thus magnify him! Now this future glory
is further spoken of as the reward of present sufferings and as the
accomplishment of present hopes.
I. As the reward
of the saints' present sufferings; and it is a rich reward: If so be that we
suffer with him (Rom_8:17), or forasmuch
as we suffer with him. The state of the church in this world always is, but
was then especially, an afflicted state; to be a Christian was certainly to be
a sufferer. Now, to comfort them in reference to those sufferings, he tells
them that they suffered with Christ - for his sake, for his honour, and for the
testimony of a good conscience, and should be glorified with him. Those that
suffered with David in his persecuted state were advanced by him and with him
when he came to the crown; see 2Ti_2:12.
See the gains of suffering for Christ; though we may be losers for him, we
shall not, we cannot, be losers by him in the end. This the gospel is filled
with the assurances of. Now, that suffering saints may have strong supports and
consolations from their hopes of heaven, he holds the balance (Rom_8:18), in a comparison between the two,
which is observable. 1. In one scale he puts the sufferings of this present
time. The sufferings of the saints are but sufferings of this present time,
strike no deeper than the things of time, last no longer than the present time
(2Co_4:17), light affliction, and but
for a moment. So that on the sufferings he writes tekel, weighed in the balance and
found light. 2. In the other scale he puts the glory, and finds that a weight,
an exceeding and eternal weight: Glory that shall be revealed. In our
present state we come short, not only in the enjoyment, but in the knowledge of
that glory (1Co_2:9; 1Jo_3:2): it shall be revealed. It surpasses all
that we have yet seen and known: present vouchsafements are sweet and precious,
very precious, very sweet; but there is something to come, something behind the
curtain, that will outshine all. Shall be revealed in us; not only
revealed to us, to be seen, but revealed in us, to be enjoyed. The kingdom of
God is within you, and will be so to eternity. 3. He concludes the sufferings not
worthy to be compared with the glory - ouk axia pros tēn doxan.
They cannot merit that glory; and, if suffering for Christ will not merit, much
less will doing. They should not at all deter and frighten us from the diligent
and earnest pursuit of that glory. The sufferings are small and short, and
concern the body only; but the glory is rich and great, and concerns the soul,
and is eternal. This he reckons. I reckon - logizomai. It is not
a rash and sudden determination, but the product of a very serious and
deliberate consideration. he had reasoned the case within himself, weighed the
arguments on both sides, and thus at last resolves the point. O how vastly
different is the sentence of the word from the sentiment of the world
concerning the sufferings of this present time! I reckon, as an
arithmetician that is balancing an account. He first sums up what is disbursed
for Christ in the sufferings of this present time, and finds they come to very
little; he then sums up what is secured to us by Christ in the glory that shall
be revealed, and this he finds to be an infinite sum, transcending all
conception, the disbursement abundantly made up and the losses infinitely
countervailed. And who would be afraid then to suffer for Christ, who as he is
before-hand with us in suffering, so he will not be behind-hand with us in
recompence? Now Paul was as competent a judge of this point as ever any mere
man was. He could reckon not by art only, but by experience; for he knew both.
He knew what the sufferings of this present time were; see 2Co_11:23-28. He knew what the glory of heaven
is; see 2Co_12:3, 2Co_12:4. And, upon the view of both, he gives
this judgment here. There is nothing like a believing view of the glory which
shall be revealed to support and bear up the spirit under all the sufferings of
this present time. The reproach of Christ appears riches to those who have
respect to the recompence of reward, Heb_11:26.
II. As the accomplishment of the saints' present hopes
and expectations, Rom_8:19, etc. As the
saints are suffering for it, so they are waiting for it. Heaven is therefore
sure; for God by his Spirit would not raise and encourage those hopes only to
defeat and disappoint them. He will establish that word unto his servants on
which he has caused them to hope (Psa_119:49),
and heaven is therefore sweet; for, if hope deferred makes the heart sick,
surely when the desire comes it will be a tree of life, Pro_13:12. Now he observes an expectation of
this glory,
1. In the creatures Rom_8:19-22.
That must needs be a great, a transcendent glory, which all the creatures are
so earnestly expecting and longing for. This observation in these verses has
some difficulty in it, which puzzles interpreters a little; and the more
because it is a remark not made in any other scripture, with which it might be
compared. By the creature here we understand, not as some do the Gentile
world, and their expectation of Christ and the gospel, which is an exposition very
foreign and forced, but the whole frame of nature, especially that of this
lower world - the whole creation, the compages of inanimate and sensible
creatures, which, because of their harmony and mutual dependence, and because
they all constitute and make up one world, are spoken of in the singular number
as the creature. The sense of the apostle in these four verses we may
take in the following observations: - (1.) That there is a present vanity to
which the creature, by reason of the sin of man, is made subject, Rom_8:20. When man sinned, the ground was cursed
for man's sake, and with it all the creatures (especially of this lower world,
where our acquaintance lies) became subject to that curse, became mutable and
mortal. Under the bondage of corruption, Rom_8:21.
There is an impurity, deformity, and infirmity, which the creature has
contracted by the fall of man: the creation is sullied and stained, much of the
beauty of the world gone. There is an enmity of one creature to another; they
are all subject to continual alteration and decay of the individuals, liable to
the strokes of God's judgments upon man. When the world was drowned, and almost
all the creatures in it, surely then it was subject to vanity indeed. The whole
species of creatures is designed for, and is hastening to, a total dissolution
by fire. And it is not the least part of their vanity and bondage that they are
used, or abused rather, by men as instruments of sin. The creatures are often
abused to the dishonour of their Creator, the hurt of his children, or the
service of his enemies. When the creatures are made the food and fuel of our
lusts, they are subject to vanity, they are captivated by the law of sin. And
this not willingly, not of their own choice. All the creatures desire
their own perfection and consummation; when they are made instruments of sin it
is not willingly. Or, They are thus captivated, not for any sin of their own,
which they had committed, but for man's sin: By reason of him who hath
subjected the same. Adam did it meritoriously; the creatures being
delivered to him, when he by sin delivered himself he delivered them likewise
into the bondage of corruption. God did it judicially; he passed a sentence
upon the creatures for the sin of man, by which they became subject. And this
yoke (poor creatures) they bear in hope that it will not be so always. Ep'
elpidi hoti kai, etc. - in hope that the creature itself; so many
Greek copies join the words. We have reason to pity the poor creatures that for
our sin have become subject to vanity. (2.) That the creatures groan and
travail in pain together under this vanity and corruption, Rom_8:22. It is a figurative expression. Sin is
a burden to the whole creation; the sin of the Jews, in crucifying Christ, set
the earth a quaking under them. The idols were a burden to the weary beast, Isa_46:1. There is a general outcry of the whole
creation against the sin of man: the stone crieth out of the wall (Hab_2:11), the land cries, Job_31:38. (3.) That the creature, that is now
thus burdened, shall, at the time of the restitution of all things, be delivered
from this bondage into the glorious liberty of the children of God (Rom_8:21) - they shall no more be subject to
vanity and corruption, and the other fruits of the curse; but, on the contrary,
this lower world shall be renewed: when there will be new heavens there will be
a new earth (2Pe_3:13; Rev_21:1); and there shall be a glory conferred
upon all the creatures, which shall be (in the proportion of their natures) as
suitable and as great an advancement as the glory of the children of God shall
be to them. The fire at the last day shall be a refining, not a destroying
annihilating fire. What becomes of the souls of brutes, that go downwards, none
can tell. But it should seem by the scripture that there will be some kind of
restoration of them. And if it be objected, What use will they be of to
glorified saints? we may suppose them of as much use as they were to Adam in
innocency; and if it be only to illustrate the wisdom, power, and goodness of
their Creator, that is enough. Compare with this Psa_96:10-13;
Psa_98:7-9. Let the heavens rejoice
before the Lord, for he cometh. (4.) That the creature doth therefore
earnestly expect and wait for the manifestation of the children of God, Rom_8:19. Observe, At the second coming of
Christ there will be a manifestation of the children of God. Now the saints are
God's hidden ones, the wheat seems lost in a heap of chaff; but then they shall
be manifested. It does not yet appear what we shall be (1Jo_3:2), but then the glory shall be revealed.
The children of God shall appear in their own colours. And this redemption of
the creature is reserved till then; for, as it was with man and for man that
they fell under the curse, so with man and for man they shall be delivered. All
the curse and filth that now adhere to the creature shall be done away then
when those that have suffered with Christ upon earth shall reign with him upon
the earth. This the whole creation looks and longs for; and it may serve as a
reason why now a good man should be merciful to his beast.
2. In the saints, who are new creatures, Rom_8:23-25. Observe, (1.) The grounds of this
expectation in the saints. It is our having received the first-fruits of the
Spirit, which both quickens our desires and encourages our hopes, and both
ways raises our expectations. The first-fruits did both sanctify and ensure the
lump. Grace is the first-fruits of glory, it is glory begun. We, having
received such clusters in this wilderness, cannot but long for the full vintage
in the heavenly Canaan. Not only they - not only the creatures which are
not capable of such a happiness as the first-fruits of the Spirit, but even we,
who have such present rich receivings, cannot but long for something more and
greater. In having the first-fruits of the Spirit we have that which is very
precious, but we have not all we would have. We groan within ourselves,
which denotes the strength and secrecy of these desires; not making a loud
noise, as the hypocrites howling upon the bed for corn and wine, but with
silent groans, which pierce heaven soonest of all. Or, We groan among
ourselves. It is the unanimous vote, the joint desire, of the whole church,
all agree in this: Come, Lord Jesus, come quickly. The groaning denotes
a very earnest and importunate desire, the soul pained with the delay. Present
receivings and comforts are consistent with a great many groans; not as the
pangs of one dying, but as the throes of a woman in travail - groans that are
symptoms of life, not of death. (2.) The object of this expectation. What is it
we are thus desiring and waiting for? What would we have? The adoption, to
wit, the redemption of our body. Though the soul be the principal part of
the man, yet the Lord has declared himself for the body also, and has provided
a great deal of honour and happiness for the body. The resurrection is here
called the redemption of the body. It shall then be rescued from the
power of death and the grave, and the bondage of corruption; and, though a vile
body, yet it shall be refined and beautified, and made like that glorious body
of Christ, Phi_3:21; 1Co_15:42. This is called the adoption.
[1.] It is the adoption manifested before all the world, angels and men. Now
are we the sons of God, but it does not yet appear, the honour is now clouded;
but then God will publicly own all his children. The deed of adoption, which is
now written, signed, and sealed, will then be recognized, proclaimed, and
published. As Christ was, so the saints will be, declared to be the sons of God
with power, by the resurrection from the dead, Rom_1:4.
It will then be put past dispute. [2.] It is the adoption perfected and
completed. The children of God have bodies as well as souls; and, till those
bodies are brought into the glorious liberty of the children of God, the
adoption is not perfect. But then it will be complete, when the Captain of our
salvation shall bring the many sons to glory, Heb_2:10.
This is that which we expect, in hope of which our flesh rests, Psa_16:9, Psa_16:10.
All the days of our appointed time we are waiting, till this change shall come,
when he shall call, and we shall answer, and he will have a desire to the work
of his hands, Job_14:14, Job_14:15. (3.) The agreeableness of this to our
present state, Rom_8:24, Rom_8:25. Our happiness is not in present
possession: We are saved by hope. In this, as in other things, God hath
made our present state a state of trial and probation - that our reward is out
of sight. Those that will deal with God must deal upon trust. It is
acknowledged that one of the principal graces of a Christian is hope (1Co_13:13), which necessarily implies a good
thing to come, which is the object of that hope. Faith respects the promise,
hope the thing promised. Faith is the evidence, hope the expectation, of things
not seen. Faith is the mother of hope. We do with patience wait. In
hoping for this glory we have need of patience, to bear the sufferings we meet
with in the way to it and the delays of it. Our way is rough and long; but he
that shall come will come, and will not tarry; and therefore, though he seem to
tarry, it becomes us to wait for him.
Romans
8:26-28
The apostle here
suggests two privileges more to which true Christians are entitled: -
I. The help of
the Spirit in prayer. While we are in this world, hoping and waiting for what
we see not, we must be praying. Hope supposes desire, and that desire offered
up to God is prayer; we groan. Now observe,
1. Our weakness
in prayer: We know not what we should pray for as we ought. (1.) As to
the matter of our requests, we know not what to ask. We are not competent
judges of our own condition. Who knows what is good for a man in this life?
Ecc_6:12. We are short-sighted, and
very much biassed in favour of the flesh, and apt to separate the end from the
way. You know not what you ask, Mat_20:22.
We are like foolish children, that are ready to cry for fruit before it is ripe
and fit for them; see Luk_9:54, Luk_9:55. (2.) As to the manner, we know not how
to pray as we ought. It is not enough that we do that which is good, but we
must do it well, seek in a due order; and here we are often at a loss - graces
are weak, affections cold, thoughts wandering, and it is not always easy to find
the heart to pray, 2Sa_7:27. The
apostle speaks of this in the first person: We know not. He puts himself
among the rest. Folly, and weakness, and distraction in prayer, are what all the
saints are complaining of. If so great a saint as Paul knew not what to pray
for, what little reason have we to go forth about that duty in our own
strength!
2. The
assistances which the Spirit gives us in that duty. He helps our
infirmities, meant especially of our praying infirmities, which most easily
beset us in that duty, against which the Spirit helps. The Spirit in the world
helps; many rules and promises there are in the word for our help. The Spirit
in the heart helps, dwelling in us, working in us, as a Spirit of grace and
supplication, especially with respect to the infirmities we are under when we
are in a suffering state, when our faith is most apt to fail; for this end the
Holy Ghost was poured out. Helpeth, sumantilambanetai - heaves with us, over against us, helps as we
help one that would lift up a burden, by lifting over against him at the other
end - helps with us, that is, with us doing our endeavour, putting forth the
strength we have. We must not sit still, and expect that the Spirit should do
all; when the Spirit goes before us we must bestir ourselves. We cannot without
God, and he will not without us. What help? Why, the Spirit itself makes
intercession for us, dictates our requests, indites our petitions, draws up
our plea for us. Christ intercedes for us in heaven, the Spirit intercedes for
us in our hearts; so graciously has God provided for the encouragement of the
praying remnant. The Spirit, as an enlightening Spirit, teaches us what to pray
for, as a sanctifying Spirit works and excites praying graces, as a comforting
Spirit silences our fears, and helps us over all our discouragements. The Holy
Spirit is the spring of all our desires and breathings towards God. Now this
intercession which the Spirit makes is, (1.) With groanings that cannot be
uttered. The strength and fervency of those desires which the Holy Spirit
works are hereby intimated. There may be praying in the Spirit where there is
not a word spoken; as Moses prayed (Exo_14:15),
and Hannah, 1Sa_1:13. It is not the rhetoric
and eloquence, but the faith and fervency, of our prayers, that the Spirit
works, as an intercessor, in us. Cannot be uttered; they are so
confused, the soul is in such a hurry with temptations and troubles, we know
not what to say, nor how to express ourselves. Here is the Spirit interceding
with groans that cannot be uttered. When we can but cry, Abba, Father,
and refer ourselves to him with a holy humble boldness, this is the work of the
Spirit. (2.) According to the will of God, Rom_8:27.
The Spirit in the heart never contradicts the Spirit in the word. Those desires
that are contrary to the will of God do not come from the Spirit. The Spirit
interceding in us evermore melts our wills into the will of God. Not as I
will, but as thou wilt.
3. The sure success of these intercessions: He that
searches the heart knoweth what is the mind of the Spirit, Rom_8:27. To a hypocrite, all whose religion
lies in his tongue, nothing is more dreadful than that God searches the heart
and sees through all his disguises. To a sincere Christian, who makes
heart-work of his duty, nothing is more comfortable than that God searches the
heart, for then he will hear and answer those desires which we want words to
express. He knows what we have need of before we ask, Mat_6:8. He knows what is the mind of his own
Spirit in us. And, as he always hears the Son interceding for us, so he always
hears the Spirit interceding in us, because his intercession is according to
the will of God. What could have been done more for the comfort of the Lord's
people, in all their addresses to God? Christ had said, “Whatever you ask the
Father according to his will he will give it you.” But how shall we learn to
ask according to his will? Why, the Spirit will teach us that. Therefore it is
that the seed of Jacob never seek in vain.
II. The concurrence of all providences for the good of
those that are Christ's, Rom_8:28. It
might be objected that, notwithstanding all these privileges, we see believers
compassed about with manifold afflictions; though the Spirit makes intercession
for them, yet their troubles are continued. It is very true; but in this the
Spirit's intercession is always effectual, that, however it goes with them, all
this is working together for their good. Observe here.
1. The character of the saints, who are interested in
this privilege; they are here described by such properties as are common to all
that are truly sanctified. (1.) They love God. This includes all the
out-goings of the soul's affections towards God as the chief good and highest
end. It is our love to God that makes every providence sweet, and therefore
profitable. Those that love God make the best of all he does, and take all in
good part. (2.) They are the called according to his purpose,
effectually called according to the eternal purpose. The call is effectual, not
according to any merit or desert of ours, but according to God's own gracious
purpose.
2. The privilege of the saints, that all things work
together for good to them, that is, all the providences of God that concern
them. All that God performs he performs for them, Psa_57:2.
Their sins are not of his performing, therefore not intended here, though his
permitting sin is made to work for their good, 2Ch_32:31.
But all the providences of God are theirs - merciful providences, afflicting
providences, personal, public. They are all for good; perhaps for temporal
good, as Joseph's troubles; at least, for spiritual and eternal good. That is
good for them which does their souls good. Either directly or indirectly, every
providence has a tendency to the spiritual good of those that love God,
breaking them off from sin, bringing them nearer to God, weaning them from the
world, fitting them for heaven. Work together. They work, as physic
works upon the body, various ways, according to the intention of the physician;
but all for the patient's good. They work together, as several
ingredients in a medicine concur to answer the intention. God hath set the one
over against the other (Ecc_7:14): sunergei,
a very singular, with a noun plural, denoting the harmony of Providence and its
uniform designs, all the wheels as one wheel, Eze_10:13.
He worketh all things together for good; so some read it. It is not from
any specific quality in the providences themselves, but from the power and
grace of God working in, with, and by, these providences. All this we know
- know it for a certainty, from the word of God, from our own experience, and
from the experience of all the saints.
Romans
8:29-30
The apostle,
having reckoned up so many ingredients of the happiness of true believers,
comes here to represent the ground of them all, which he lays in
predestination. These precious privileges are conveyed to us by the charter of
the covenant, but they are founded in the counsel of God, which infallibly
secures the event. That Jesus Christ, the purchaser, might not labour in vain,
nor spend his strength and life for nought and in vain, there is a remnant
given him, a seed that he shall see, so that the good pleasure of the Lord
shall prosper in his hands. For the explication of this he here sets before us
the order of the causes of our salvation, a golden chain, which cannot be
broken. There are four links of it: -
I. Whom he
did foreknow he also did predestinate to be conformed to the image of his Son.
All that God designed for glory and happiness as the end he decreed to grace
and holiness as the way. Not, whom he did foreknow to be holy those he
predestinated to be so. The counsels and decrees of God do not truckle to the
frail and fickle will of men; no, God's foreknowledge of the saints is the same
with that everlasting love wherewith he is said to have loved them, Jer_31:3. God's knowing his people is the same
with his owning them, Psa_1:6; Joh_10:14; 2Ti_2:19.
See Rom_11:2. Words of knowledge often
in scripture denote affection; so here: Elect according to the foreknowledge
of God, 1Pe_1:2. And the same word
is rendered fore-ordained, 1Pe_1:20.
Whom he did foreknow, that is, whom he designed for his friends and
favourites. I know thee by name, said God to Moses, Exo_33:12. Now those whom god thus foreknew he
did predestinate to be conformed to Christ. 1. Holiness consists in our
conformity to the image of Christ. This takes in the whole of sanctification,
of which Christ is the great pattern and sampler. To be spirited as Christ was,
to walk and live as Christ did, to bear our sufferings patiently as Christ did.
Christ is the express image of his Father, and the saints are conformed to the
image of Christ. Thus it is by the mediation and interposal of Christ that we
have God's love restored to us and God's likeness renewed upon us, in which two
things consists the happiness of man. 2. All that God hath from eternity
foreknown with favour he hath predestinated to this conformity. It is not we
that can conform ourselves to Christ. Our giving ourselves to Christ takes rise
in God's giving us to him; and, in giving us to him, he predestinated us to be
conformable to his image. It is a mere cavil therefore to call the doctrine of
election a licentious doctrine, and to argue that it gives encouragement to
sin, as if the end were separated from the way and happiness from holiness.
None can know their election but by their conformity to the image of Christ;
for all that are chosen are chosen to sanctification (2Th_2:13), and surely it cannot be a temptation
to any to be conformed to the world to believe that they were predestinated to
be conformed to Christ. 3. That which is herein chiefly designed is the honour
of Jesus Christ, that he might be the first-born among many brethren;
that is, that Christ might have the honour of being the great pattern, as well
as the great prince, and in this, as in other things, might have pre-eminence.
It was in the first-born that all the children were dedicated to God under the
law. The first-born was the head of the family, on whom all the rest did
depend: now in the family of the saints Christ must have the honour of being
the first-born. And blessed be God that there are many brethren; though they
seem but a few in one place at one time, yet, when they come all together, they
will be a great many. There is, therefore, a certain number predestinated, that
the end of Christ's undertaking might be infallibly secured. Had the event been
left at uncertainties in the divine counsels, to depend upon the contingent
turn of man's will, Christ might have been the first-born among but few or no
brethren - a captain without soldiers and a prince without subjects - to
prevent which, and to secure to him many brethren, the decree is absolute, the
thing ascertained, that he might be sure to see his seed, there is a remnant
predestinated to be conformed to his image, which decree will certainly have
its accomplishment in the holiness and happiness of that chosen race; and so,
in spite of all the opposition of the powers of darkness, Christ will be the
first-born among many, very many brethren.
II. Whom he
did predestinate those he also called, not only with the external call (so
many are called that were not chosen, Mat_20:16;
Mat_22:14), but with the internal and
effectual call. The former comes to the ear only, but this to the heart. All
that God did from eternity predestinate to grace and glory he does, in the
fulness of time, effectually call. The call is then effectual when we come at
the call; and we then come at the call when the Spirit draws us, convinces the
conscience of guilt and wrath, enlightens the understanding, bows the will,
persuades and enables us to embrace Christ in the promises, makes us willing in
the day of his power. It is an effectual call from self and earth to God, and
Christ, and heaven, as our end - from sin and vanity to grace, and holiness,
and seriousness as our way. This is the gospel call. Them he called,
that the purpose of God, according to election, might stand: we are called to
that to which we were chosen. So that the only way to make our election sure is
to make sure our calling, 2Pe_1:10.
III. Whom he
called those he also justified. All that are effectually called are
justified, absolved from guilt, and accepted as righteous through Jesus Christ.
They are recti in curia - right in court; no sin that ever they have
been guilty of shall come against them, to condemn them. The book is crossed,
the bond cancelled, the judgment vacated, the attainder reversed; and they are
no longer dealt with as criminals, but owned and loved as friends and
favourites. Blessed is the man whose iniquity is thus forgiven. None are thus
justified but those that are effectually called. Those that stand it out
against the gospel call abide under guilt and wrath.
IV. Whom he
justified those he also glorified. The power of corruption being broken in
effectual calling, and the guilt of sin removed in justification, all that
which hinders is taken out of the way, and nothing can come between that soul
and glory. Observe, It is spoken of as a thing done: He glorified,
because of the certainty of it; he hath saved us, and called us with a
holy calling. In the eternal glorification of all the elect, God's design of
love has its full accomplishment. This was what he aimed at all along - to
bring them to heaven. Nothing less than that glory would make up the fulness of
his covenant relation to them as God; and therefore, in all he does for them,
and in them, he has this in his eye. Are they chosen? It is to salvation.
Called? It is to his kingdom and glory. Begotten again? It is to an inheritance
incorruptible. Afflicted: It is to work for them this exceeding and eternal
weight of glory. Observe, The author of all these is the same. It is God
himself that predestinated, calleth, justifieth, glorifieth; so the Lord
alone did lead him, and there was no strange God with him. Created wills
are so very fickle, and created powers so very feeble, that, if any of these
did depend upon the creature, the whole would shake. But God himself hath
undertaken the doing of it from first to last, that we might abide in a
constant dependence upon him and subjection to him, and ascribe all the praise
to him - that every crown may be cast before the throne. This is a mighty
encouragement to our faith and hope; for, as for God, his way, his work, is
perfect. He that hath laid the foundation will build upon it, and the top-stone
will at length be brought forth with shoutings, and it will be our eternal work
to cry, Grace, grace to it.
Romans
8:31-39
The apostle
closes this excellent discourse upon the privileges of believers with a holy
triumph, in the name of all the saints. Having largely set forth the mystery of
God's love to us in Christ, and the exceedingly great and precious privileges
we enjoy by him, he concludes like an orator: What shall we then say to
these things? What use shall we make of all that has been said? He speaks
as one amazed and swallowed up with the contemplation and admiration of it,
wondering at the height and depth, and length and breadth, of the love of
Christ, which passeth knowledge. The more we know of other things the less we
wonder at them; but the further we are led into an acquaintance with gospel
mysteries the more we are affected with the admiration of them. If Paul was at
a loss what to say to these things, no marvel if we be. And what does he say?
Why, if ever Paul rode in a triumphant chariot on this side of heaven, here it
was: with such a holy height and bravery of spirit, with such a fluency and
copiousness of expression, does he here comfort himself and all the people of
God, upon the consideration of these privileges. In general, he here makes a
challenge, throws down the gauntlet, as it were, dares all the enemies of the
saints to do their worst: If God be for us, who can be against us? The
ground of the challenge is God's being for us; in this he sums up all our
privileges. This includes all, that God is for us; not only reconciled
to us, and so not against us, but in covenant with us, and so engaged for us -
all his attributes for us, his promises for us. All that he is, and has, and
does, is for his people. He performs all things for them. He is for them, even
when he seems to act against them. And, if so, who can be against us, so
as to prevail against us, so as to hinder our happiness? Be they ever so great
and strong, ever so many, ever so might, ever so malicious, what can they do?
While God is for us, and we keep in his love, we may with a holy boldness defy
all the powers of darkness. Let Satan do his worst, he is chained; let the
world do its worst, it is conquered: principalities and powers are spoiled and
disarmed, and triumphed over, in the cross of Christ. Who then dares fight
against us, while God himself is fighting for us? And this we say to these
things, this is the inference we draw from these premises. More particularly.
I. We have
supplies ready in all our wants (Rom_8:32):
He that spared, etc. Who can be against us, to strip us, to deprive us
of our comforts? Who can cut off our streams, while we have a fountain to go
to? 1. Observe what God has done for us, on which our hopes are built: He
spared not his own Son. When he was to undertake our salvation, the Father
was willing to part with him, did not think him too precious a gift to bestow
for the salvation of poor souls; now we may know that he loves us, in that he
hath not withheld his Son, his own Son, his only Son, from us, as he said of
Abraham, Gen_22:12. If nothing less
will save man, rather than man shall perish let him go, though it were out of
his bosom. Thus did he deliver him up for us all, that is, for all the
elect; for us all, not only for our good, but in our stead, as a
sacrifice of atonement to be a propitiation for sin. When he had undertaken it,
he did not spare him. Though he was his own Son, yet, being made sin for us, it
pleased the Lord to bruise him. Ouk epheisato - he did not abate him a farthing of that great
debt, but charged it home. Awake, O sword. He did not spare his own
Son that served him, that he might spare us, though we have done him so
much disservice. 2. What we may therefore expect he will do: He will with
him freely give us all things. (1.) It is implied that he will give us
Christ, for other things are bestowed with him: not only with him given for us,
but with him given to us. He that put himself to so much charge to make the
purchase for us surely will not hesitate at making the application to us. (2.)
He will with him freely give us all things, all things that he sees to be
needful and necessary for us, all good things, and more we should not desire, Psa_34:10. And Infinite Wisdom shall be the
judge whether it be good for us and needful for us or no. Freely give -
freely, without reluctancy; he is ready to give, meets us with his favours; -
and freely, without recompence, without money, and without price. How shall
he not? Can it be imagined that he should do the greater and not do the
less? that he should give so great a gift for us when we were enemies, and
should deny us any good thing, now that through him we are friends and
children? Thus may we by faith argue against our fears of want. he that hath
prepared a crown and kingdom for us will be sure to give us enough to bear our
charges in the way to it. He that hath designed us for the inheritance of sons
when we come to age will not let us want necessaries in the mean time.
II. We have an answer ready to all accusations and a
security against all condemnations (Rom_8:33,
Rom_8:34): Who shall lay any thing?
Doth the law accuse them? Do their own consciences accuse them? Is the devil,
the accuser of the brethren, accusing them before our God day and night? This
is enough to answer all those accusations, It is God that justifieth.
Men may justify themselves, as the Pharisees did, and yet the accusations may
be in full force against them; but, if God justifies, this answers all. He is
the judge, the king, the party offended, and his judgment is according to
truth, and sooner or later all the world will be brought to be of his mind; so
that we may challenge all our accusers to come and put in their charge. This
overthrows them all; it is God, the righteous faithful God, that justifieth. Who
is he that condemneth? Though they cannot make good the charge yet they will
be ready to condemn; but we have a plea ready to move in arrest of judgment, a
plea which cannot be overruled. It is Christ that died, etc. It is by
virtue of our interest in Christ, our relation to him, and our union with him,
that we are thus secured. 1. His death: It is Christ that died. By the
merit of his death he paid our debt; and the surety's payment is a good plea to
an action of debt. It is Christ, an able all-sufficient Saviour. 2. His
resurrection: Yea, rather, that has risen again. This is a much greater
encouragement, for it is a convincing evidence that divine justice was
satisfied by the merit of his death. His resurrection was his acquittance, it
was a legal discharge. Therefore the apostle mentions it with a yea, rather.
If he had died, and not risen again, we had been where we were. 3. His sitting
at the right hand of God: He is even at the right hand of God - a
further evidence that he has done his work, and a mighty encouragement to us in
reference to all accusations, that we have a friend, such a friend, in court.
At the right hand of God, which denotes that he is ready there - always
at hand; and that he is ruling there - all power is given to him. Our friend is
himself the judge. 4. The intercession which he makes there. He is there, not
unconcerned about us, not forgetful of us, but making intercession. He
is agent for us there, an advocate for us, to answer all accusations, to put in
our plea, and to prosecute it with effect, to appear for us and to present our
petitions. And is not this abundant matter for comfort? What shall we say to
these things? Is this the manner of men, O Lord God? What room is left for
doubting and disquietment? Why art thou cast down, O my soul? Some understand
the accusation and condemnation here spoken of of that which the suffering
saints met with from men. The primitive Christians had many black crimes laid
to their charge - heresy, sedition, rebellion, and what not? For these the
ruling powers condemned them: “But no matter for that” (says the apostle); “while
we stand right at God's bar it is of no great moment how we stand at men's. To
all the hard censures, the malicious calumnies, and the unjust and unrighteous
sentences of men, we may with comfort oppose our justification before God
through Christ Jesus as that which doth abundantly countervail,” 1Co_4:3, 1Co_4:4.
III. We have good assurance of our preservation and
continuance in this blessed state, Rom_8:35,
to the end. The fears of the saints lest they should lose their hold of Christ
are often very discouraging and disquieting, and create them a great deal of
disturbance; but here is that which may silence their fears, and still such
storms, that nothing can separate them. We have here from the apostle,
1. A daring challenge to all the enemies of the saints
to separate them, if they could, from the love of Christ. Who shall?
None shall, Rom_8:35-37. God having
manifested his love in giving his own Son for us, and not hesitating at that,
can we imagine that any thing else should divert or dissolve that love? Observe
here,
(1.) The present calamities of Christ's beloved ones
supposed - that they meet with tribulation on all hands, are in distress,
know not which way to look for any succour and relief in this world, are
followed with persecution from an angry malicious world that always
hated those whom Christ loved, pinched with famine, and starved with nakedness,
when stripped of all creature-comforts, exposed to the greatest perils,
the sword of the magistrate drawn against them, ready to be sheathed in
their bowels, bathed in their blood. Can a case be supposed more black and
dismal? It is illustrated (Rom_8:36) by
a passage quoted from Psa_44:22, For
thy sake we are killed all the day long, which intimates that we are not to
think strange, no not concerning the fiery bloody trial. We see the Old
Testament saints had the same lot; so persecuted they the prophets that were
before us. Killed all the day long, that is, continually exposed to and
expecting the fatal stroke. There is still every day, and all the day long, one
or other of the people of God bleeding and dying under the rage of persecuting
enemies. Accounted as sheep for the slaughter; they make no more of
killing a Christian than of butchering a sheep. Sheep are killed, not because
they are hurtful while they live, but because they are useful when they are
dead. They kill the Christians to please themselves, to be food to their
malice. They eat up my people as they eat bread, Psa_14:4.
(2.) The inability of all these things to separate us
from the love of Christ. Shall they, can they, do it? No, by no means. All this
will not cut the bond of love and friendship that is between Christ and true
believers. [1.] Christ doth not, will not, love us the less for all this. All
these troubles are very consistent with the strong and constant love of the
Lord Jesus. They are neither a cause nor an evidence of the abatement of his
love. When Paul was whipped, and beaten, and imprisoned, and stoned, did Christ
love him ever the less? Were his favours intermitted? his smiles any whit
suspended? his visits more shy? By no means, but the contrary. These things
separate us from the love of other friends. When Paul was brought before Nero
all men forsook him, but then the Lord stood by him, 2Ti_4:16, 2Ti_4:17.
Whatever persecuting enemies may rob us of, they cannot rob us of the love of
Christ, they cannot intercept his love-tokens, they cannot interrupt nor
exclude his visits: and therefore, let them do their worst, they cannot make a
true believer miserable. [2.] We do not, will not, love him the less for this;
and that for this reason, because we do not think that he loves us the less.
Charity thinks no evil, entertains no misgiving thoughts, makes no hard
conclusions, no unkind constructions, takes all in good part that comes from
love. A true Christian loves Christ never the less though he suffer for him,
thinks never the worse of Christ through he lose all for him.
(3.) The triumph of believers in this (Rom_8:37): Nay, in all these things we are
more than conquerors.
[1.] We are conquerors: though killed all the day long,
yet conquerors. A strange way of conquering, but it was Christ's way; thus he
triumphed over principalities and powers in his cross. It is a surer and a
nobler way of conquest by faith and patience than by fire and sword. The
enemies have sometimes confessed themselves baffled and overcome by the
invincible courage and constancy of the martyrs, who thus overcame the most
victorious princes by not loving their lives to the death, Rev_12:11.
[2.] We are more than conquerors. In our patiently
bearing these trials we are not only conquerors, but more than conquerors, that
is, triumphers. Those are more than conquerors that conquer, First, With
little loss. Many conquests are dearly bought; but what do the suffering saints
lose? Why, they lose that which the gold loses in the furnace, nothing but the
dross. It is no great loss to lose things which are not - a body that is of the
earth, earthy. Secondly, With great gain. The spoils are exceedingly
rich; glory, honour, and peace, a crown of righteousness that fades not away.
In this the suffering saints have triumphed; not only have not been separated
from the love of Christ, but have been taken into the most sensible endearments
and embraces of it. As afflictions abound, consolations much more abound, 2Co_1:5. There is one more than a conqueror,
when pressed above measure. He that embraced the stake, and said, “Welcome the
cross of Christ, welcome everlasting life,” - he that dated his letter from the
delectable orchard of the Leonine prison, - he that said, “In these flames I
feel no more pain than if I were upon a bed of down,” - she who, a little
before her martyrdom, being asked how she did, said, “Well and merry, and going
to heaven,” - those that have gone smiling to the stake, and stood singing in
the flames - these were more than conquerors.
[3.] It is only through Christ that loved us,
the merit of his death taking the sting out of all these troubles, the Spirit
of his grace strengthening us, and enabling us to bear them with holy courage
and constancy, and coming in with special comforts and supports. Thus we are
conquerors, not in our own strength, but in the grace that is in Christ Jesus.
We are conquerors by virtue of our interest in Christ's victory. He hath
overcome the world for us (Joh_16:33),
both the good things and the evil things of it; so that we have nothing to do
but to pursue the victory, and to divide the spoil, and so are more than
conquerors.
2. A direct and positive conclusion of the whole
matter: For I am persuaded, Rom_8:38,
Rom_8:39. It denotes a full, and
strong, and affectionate persuasion, arising from the experience of the
strength and sweetness of the divine love. And here he enumerates all those
things which might be supposed likely to separate between Christ and believers,
and concludes that it could not be done. (1.) Neither death nor life -
neither the terrors of death on the one hand nor the comforts and pleasures of
life on the other, neither the fear of death nor the hope of life. Or, We shall
not be separated from that love either in death or in life. (2.) Nor angels,
nor principalities, nor powers. Both the good angels and the bad are called
principalities and powers: the good, Eph_1:21;
Col_1:16; the bad, Eph_6:12; Col_2:15.
And neither shall do it. The good angels will not, the bad shall not; and
neither can. The good angels are engaged friends, the bad are restrained
enemies. (3.) Nor things present, nor things to come - neither the sense
of troubles present nor the fear of troubles to come. Time shall not separate
us, eternity shall not. Things present separate us from things to come, and
things to come separate and cut us off from things present; but neither from
the love of Christ, whose favour is twisted in with both present things and
things to come. (4.) Nor height, nor depth - neither the height of
prosperity and preferment, nor the depth of adversity and disgrace; nothing
from heaven above, no storms, no tempests; nothing on earth below, no rocks, no
seas, no dungeons. (5.) Nor any other creature - any thing that can be
named or thought of. It will not, it cannot, separate us from the love of God,
which is in Christ Jesus our Lord. It cannot cut off or impair our love to God,
or God's to us; nothing does it, can do it, but sin. Observe, The love that
exists between God and true believers is through Christ. He is the Mediator of
our love: it is in and through him that God can love us and that we dare love
God. This is the ground of the stedfastness of the love; therefore God rests in
his love (Zep_3:17), because Jesus
Christ, in whom he loves us, is the same yesterday, today, and for ever.
Mr. Hugh Kennedy, an eminent
Christian of Ayr, in Scotland, when he was dying, called for a Bible; but,
finding his sight gone, he said, “Turn me to the eighty of the Romans, and set
my finger at these words, I am persuaded that neither death nor life,”
etc. “Now,” said he, “is my finger upon them?” And, when they told him it was,
without speaking any more, he said, “Now, God be with you, my children; I have
breakfasted with you, and shall sup with my Lord Jesus Christ this night;” and
so departed.
Romans
9:1-5
We have here the
apostle's solemn profession of a great concern for the nation and people of the
Jews - that he was heartily troubled that so many of them were enemies to the
gospel, and out of the way of salvation. For this he had great heaviness and
continual sorrow. Such a profession as this was requisite to take off the
odium which otherwise he might have contracted by asserting and proving their
rejection. It is wisdom as much as may be to mollify those truths which sound
harshly and seem unpleasant: dip the nail in oil, it will drive the better. The
Jews had a particular pique at Paul above any of the apostles, as appears by
the history of the Acts, and therefore were the more apt to take things amiss
of him, to prevent which he introduces his discourse with this tender and
affectionate profession, that they might not think he triumphed or insulted
over the rejected Jews or was pleased with the calamities that were coming upon
them. Thus Jeremiah appeals to God concerning the Jews of his day, whose ruin
was hastening on (Jer_17:16), Neither
have I desired the woeful day, thou knowest. Nay, Paul was so far from
desiring it that he most pathetically deprecates it. And lest this should be
thought only a copy of his countenance, to flatter and please them,
I. He asserts it
with a solemn protestation (Rom_9:1): I
say the truth in Christ, “I speak it as a Christian, one of God's people,
children that will not lie, as one that knows not how to give flattering
title.” Or, “I appeal to Christ, who searches the heart, concerning it.” He
appeals likewise to his own conscience, which was instead of a thousand
witnesses. That which he was going to assert was not only a great and weighty
thing (such solemn protestations are not to be thrown away upon trifles), but
it was likewise a secret; it was concerning a sorrow in his heart to which none
was a capable competent witness but God and his own conscience. - That I
have great heaviness, Rom_9:2. He
does not say for what; the very mention of it was unpleasant and invidious; but
it is plain that he means for the rejection of the Jews.
II. He backs it
with a very serious imprecation, which he was ready to make, out of love to the
Jews. I could wish; he does not say, I do wish, for it was no proper
means appointed for such an end; but, if it were, I could wish that myself
were accursed from Christ for my brethren - a very high pang of zeal and
affection for his countrymen. He would be willing to undergo the greatest
misery to do them good. Love is apt to be thus bold, and venturous, and self-denying.
Because the glory of God's grace in the salvation of many is to be preferred
before the welfare and happiness of a single person, Paul, if they were put in
competition, would be content to forego all his own happiness to purchase
theirs. 1. He would be content to be cut off from the land of the living, in
the most shameful and ignominious manner, as an anathema, or a devoted person.
They thirsted for his blood, persecuted him as the most obnoxious person in the
world, the curse and plague of his generation, 1Co_4:13;
Act_22:22. “Now,” says Paul, “I am
willing to bear all this, and a great deal more, for your good. Abuse me as
much as you will, count and call me at your pleasure; your unbelief and
rejection create in my heart a heaviness so much greater than all these
troubles can that I could look upon them not only as tolerable, but as
desirable, rather than this rejection.” 2. He would be content to be
excommunicated from the society of the faithful, to be separated from the
church, and from the communion of saints, as a heathen man and a publican, if
that would do them any good. he could wish himself no more remembered among the
saints, his name blotted out of the church-records; though he had been so great
a planter of churches, and the spiritual father of so many thousands, yet he
would be content to be disowned by the church, cut off from all communion with
it, and have his name buried in oblivion or reproach, for the good of the Jews.
It may be, some of the Jews had a prejudice against Christianity for Paul's
sake; such a spleen they had at him that they hated the religion he was of: “If
this stumble you,” says Paul, “I could wish I might be cast out, not embraced
as a Christian, so you might but be taken in.” Thus Moses (Exo_32:33), in a like holy passion of concern, Blot
me, I pray thee, out of the book which thou hast written. 3. Nay, some
think that the expression goes further, and that he could be content to be cut
off from all his share of happiness in Christ, if that might be a means of their
salvation. It is a common charity that begins at home; this is something
higher, and more noble and generous.
III. He gives us
the reason of this affection and concern.
1. Because of
their relation to them: My brethren, my kinsmen, according to the flesh.
Though they were very bitter against him upon all occasions, and gave him the
most unnatural and barbarous usage, yet thus respectfully does he speak of
them. It shows him to be a man of a forgiving spirit. Not that I had aught
to accuse my nation of, Act_28:19. My
kinsmen. Paul was a Hebrew of the Hebrews. We ought to be in a special
manner concerned for the spiritual good of our relations, our brethren and
kinsmen. To them we lie under special engagements, and we have more opportunity
of doing good to them; and concerning them, and our usefulness to them, we must
in a special manner give account.
2. Especially
because of their relation to God (Rom_9:4,
Rom_9:5): Who are Israelites,
the seed of Abraham, God's friend, and of Jacob his chosen, taken into the
covenant of peculiarity, dignified and distinguished by visible
church-privileges, many of which are here mentioned: - (1.) The adoption;
not that which is saving, and which entitled to eternal happiness, but that
which was external and typical, and entitled them to the land of Canaan. Israel
is my son, Exo_4:22. (2.) And
the glory; the ark with the mercy-seat, over which God dwelt between the
cherubim - this was the glory of Israel, 1Sa_4:21.
The many symbols and tokens of the divine presence and guidance, the cloud, the
Shechinah, the distinguishing favours conferred upon them - these were the
glory. (3.) And the covenants - the covenant made with Abraham, and
often renewed with his seed upon divers occasions. There was a covenant at
Sinai (Ex. 24), in the plains of Moab (Deu. 29), at Shechem (Jos. 24), and
often afterwards; and still these pertained to Israel. Or, the covenant of
peculiarity, and in that, as in the type, the covenant of grace. (4.) And
the giving of the law. It was to them that the ceremonial and judicial law
were given, and the moral law in writing pertained to them. It is a great
privilege to have the law of God among us, and it is to be accounted so, Psa_147:19, Psa_147:20.
This was the grandeur of Israel, Deu_4:7,
Deu_4:8. (5.) And the service of
God. They had the ordinances of God's worship among them - the temple, the
altars, the priests, the sacrifices, the feasts, and the institutions relating
to them. They were in this respect greatly honoured, that, while other nations
were worshipping and serving stocks, and stones, and devils, and they knew not
what other idols of their own invention, the Israelites were serving the true
God in the way of his own appointment. (6.) And the promises -
particular promises added to the general covenant, promises relating to the
Messiah and the gospel state. Observe, The promises accompany the giving of the
law, and the service of God; for the comfort of the promises is to be had in
obedience to that law and attendance upon that service. (7.) Whose are the
fathers (Rom_9:5), Abraham, Isaac,
and Jacob, those men of renown, that stood so high in the favour of God. The
Jews stand in relation to them, are their children, and proud enough they are
of it: We have Abraham to our father. It was for the father's sake that
they were taken into covenant, Rom_11:28.
(8.) But the greatest honour of all was that of them as concerning the flesh
(that is, as to his human nature) Christ came; for he took on him the
seed of Abraham, Heb_2:16. As to his
divine nature, he is the Lord from heaven; but, as to his human nature, he is
of the seed of Abraham. This was the great privilege of the Jews, that Christ
was of kin to them. Mentioning Christ, he interposes a very great word
concerning him, that he is over all, God blessed for ever. Lest the Jews
should think meanly of him, because he was of their alliance, he here speaks
thus honourably concerning him: and it is a very full proof of the Godhead of
Christ; he is not only over all, as Mediator, but he is God blessed for ever.
Therefore, how much sorer punishment were they worthy of that rejected him! It
was likewise the honour of the Jews, and one reason why Paul had a kindness for
them, that, seeing God blessed for ever would be a man, he would be a Jew; and,
considering the posture and character of that people at that time, it may well
be looked upon as a part of his humiliation.
Romans
9:6-13
The apostle,
having made his way to that which he had to say, concerning the rejection of
the body of his countrymen, with a protestation of his own affection for them
and a concession of their undoubted privileges, comes in these verses, and the
following part of the chapter, to prove that the rejection of the Jews, by the
establishment of the gospel dispensation, did not at all invalidate the word of
God's promise to the patriarchs: Not as though the word of God hath taken no
effect (Rom_9:6), which, considering
the present state of the Jews, which created to Paul so much heaviness and
continual sorrow (Rom_9:2), might
be suspected. We are not to ascribe inefficacy to any word of God: nothing that
he has spoken does or can fall to the ground; see Isa_55:10,
Isa_55:11. The promises and
threatenings shall have their accomplishment; and, one way or other, he will
magnify the law and make it honourable. This is to be understood especially of
the promise of God, which by subsequent providences may be to a wavering faith
very doubtful; but it is not, it cannot be, made of no effect; at the end it
will speak and not lie.
Now the
difficulty is to reconcile the rejection of the unbelieving Jews with the word
of God's promise, and the external tokens of the divine favour, which had been
conferred upon them. This he does in four ways: - 1. By explaining the true
meaning and intention of the promise, Rom_9:6-13.
2. By asserting and proving the absolute sovereignty of God, in disposing of
the children of men, Rom_9:14-24. 3. By
showing how this rejection of the Jews, and the taking in of the Gentiles, were
foretold in the Old Testament, Rom_9:25-29.
4. By fixing the true reason of the Jews' rejection, Rom_9:30, to the end.
In this
paragraph the apostle explains the true meaning and intention of the promise.
When we mistake the word, and misunderstand the promise, no marvel if we are
ready to quarrel with God about the accomplishment; and therefore the sense of
this must first be duly stated. Now he here makes it out that, when God said he
would be a God to Abraham, and to his seed (which was the famous promise
made unto the fathers), he did not mean it of all his seed according to the
flesh, as if it were a necessary concomitant of the blood of Abraham; but that
he intended it with a limitation only to such and such. And as from the
beginning it was appropriated to Isaac and not to Ishmael, to Jacob and not to
Esau, and yet for all this the word of God was not made of no effect; so now
the same promise is appropriated to believing Jews that embrace Christ and
Christianity, and, though it throws off multitudes that refuse Christ, yet the
promise is not therefore defeated and invalidated, any more than it was by the
typical rejection of Ishmael and Esau.
I. He lays down
this proposition - that they are not all Israel who are of Israel (Rom_9:6), neither because they are, etc.,
Rom_9:7. Many that descended from the
loins of Abraham and Jacob, and were of that people who were surnamed by the
name of Israel, yet were very far from being Israelites indeed, interested in
the saving benefits of the new covenant. They are not all really Israel that
are so in name and profession. It does not follow that, because they are the
seed of Abraham, therefore they must needs be the children of God, though they
themselves fancied so, boasted much of, and built much upon, their relation to
Abraham, Mat_3:9; Joh_8:38, Joh_8:39.
But it does not follow. Grace does not run in the blood; nor are saving
benefits inseparably annexed to external church privileges, though it is common
for people thus to stretch the meaning of God's promise, to bolster themselves
up in a vain hope.
II. He proves
this by instances; and therein shows not only that some of Abraham's seed were
chosen, and others not, but that God therein wrought according to the counsel
of his own will; and not with regard to that law of commandments to which the
present unbelieving Jews were so strangely wedded.
1. He specifies
the case of Isaac and Ishmael, both of them the seed of Abraham; and yet Isaac
only taken into covenant with God, and Ishmael rejected and cast out. For this
he quotes Gen_21:12, In Isaac shall
thy seed be called, which comes in there as a reason why Abraham must be
willing to cast out the bond-woman and her son, because the covenant was to be
established with Isaac, Gen_17:19. And
yet the word which God had spoken, that he would be a God to Abraham and to his
seed, did not therefore fall to the ground; for the blessings wrapt up in that
great word, being communicated by God as a benefactor, he was free to determine
on what head they should rest, and accordingly entailed them upon Isaac, and
rejected Ishmael. This he explains further (Rom_9:8,
Rom_9:9), and shows what God intended
to teach us by this dispensation. (1.) That the children of the flesh, as such,
by virtue of their relation to Abraham according to the flesh, are not
therefore the children of God, for then Ishmael had put in a good claim. This
remark comes home to the unbelieving Jews, who boasted of their relation to
Abraham according to the flesh, and looked for justification in a fleshly way,
by those carnal ordinances which Christ had abolished. They had confidence in
the flesh, and looked for justification in a fleshly way, by those carnal
ordinances which Christ had abolished. They had confidence in the flesh, Phi_3:3. Ishmael was a child of the flesh,
conceived by Hagar, who was young and fresh, and likely enough to have
children. There was nothing extraordinary or supernatural in his conception, as
there was in Isaac's; he was born after the flesh (Gal_4:29),
representing those that expect justification and salvation by their own
strength and righteousness. (2.) That the children of the promise are
counted for the seed. Those that have the honour and happiness of being
counted for the seed have it not for the sake of any merit or desert of their
own, but purely by virtue of the promise, in which God hath obliged himself of
his own good pleasure to grant the promised favour. Isaac was a child of
promise; this his proves, Rom_9:9,
quoted from Gen_18:10. he was a child
promised (so were many others), and he was also conceived and born by force and
virtue of the promise, and so a proper type and figure of those who are now
counted for the seed, even true believers, who are born, not of the will of the
flesh, nor of the will of man, but of God - of the incorruptible seed, even the
word of promise, by virtue of the special promise of a new heart: see Gal_4:28. It was through faith that Isaac was
conceived, Heb_11:11. Thus were the
great mysteries of salvation taught under the Old Testament, not in express
words, but by significant types and dispensations of providence, which to them
then were not so clear as they are to us now, when the veil is taken away, and
the types are expounded by the antitypes.
2. The case of
Jacob and Esau (Rom_9:10-13), which is
much stronger, to show that the carnal seed of Abraham were not, as such,
interested in the promise, but only such of them as God in sovereignty had
appointed. There was a previous difference between Ishmael and Isaac, before
Ishmael was cast out: Ishmael was the son of the bond-woman, born long before
Isaac, was of a fierce and rugged disposition, and had mocked or persecuted
Isaac, to all which it might be supposed God had regard when he appointed
Abraham to cast him out. But, in the case of Jacob and Esau, it was neither so
nor so, they were both the sons of Isaac by one mother; they were conceived hex henos - by one conception; hex
henos koitou, so some copies read it. The difference was made between them
by the divine counsel before they were born, or had done any good or evil. Both
lay struggling alike in their mother's womb, when it was said, The elder
shall serve the younger, without respect to good or bad works done or
foreseen, that the purpose of God according to election might stand - that
this great truth may be established, that God chooses some and refuses others
as a free agent, by his own absolute and sovereign will, dispensing his favours
or withholding them as he pleases. This difference that was put between Jacob
and Esau he further illustrates by a quotation from Mal_1:2,
Mal_1:3, where it is said, not of Jacob
and Esau the person, but the Edomites and Israelites their posterity, Jacob
have I loved, and Esau have I hated. The people of Israel were taken into
the covenant of peculiarity, had the land of Canaan given them, were blessed
with the more signal appearances of God for them in special protections,
supplies, and deliverances, while the Edomites were rejected, had no temple,
altar, priests, nor prophets - no such particular care taken of them nor
kindness shown to them. Such a difference did God put between those two
nations, that both descended from the loins of Abraham and Isaac, as at first
there was a difference put between Jacob and Esau, the distinguishing heads of
those two nations. So that all this choosing and refusing was typical, and
intended to shadow forth some other election and rejection. (1.) Some
understand it of the election and rejection of conditions or qualifications. As
God chose Isaac and Jacob, and rejected Ishmael and Esau, so he might and did
choose faith to be the condition of salvation and reject the works of the law.
Thus Arminius understands it, De rejectis et assumptis talibus, certa
qualitate notatis - Concerning such as are rejected and such as are chosen,
being distinguished by appropriate qualities; so John Goodwin. But this
very much strains the scripture; for the apostle speaks all along of persons,
he has mercy on whom (he does not say on what kind of people) he will have
mercy, besides that against this sense those two objections (Rom_9:14, Rom_9:19)
do not at all arise, and his answer to them concerning God's absolute
sovereignty over the children of men is not at all pertinent if no more be
meant than his appointing the conditions of salvation. (2.) Others understand
it of the election and rejection of particular person - some loved, and others
hated, from eternity. But the apostle speaks of Jacob and Esau, not in their
own persons, but as ancestors - Jacob the people, and Esau the people; nor does
God condemn any, or decree so to do, merely because he will do it, without any
reason taken from their own deserts. (3.) Others therefore understand it of the
election and rejection of people considered complexly. His design is to justify
God, and his mercy and truth, in calling the Gentiles, and taking them into the
church, and into covenant with himself, while he suffered the obstinate part of
the Jews to persist in unbelief, and so to unchurch themselves - thus hiding
from their eyes the things that belonged to their peace. The apostle's
reasoning for the explication and proof of this is, however, very applicable
to, and, no doubt (as is usual in scripture) was intended for the clearing of
the methods of God's grace towards particular person, for the communication of
saving benefits bears some analogy to the communication of church-privileges.
The choosing of Jacob the younger, and preferring him before Esau the elder (so
crossing hands), were to intimate that the Jews, though the natural seed of
Abraham, and the first-born of the church, should be laid aside; and the
Gentiles, who were as the younger brother, should be taken in in their stead,
and have the birthright and blessing. The Jews, considered as a body politic, a
nation and people, knit together by the bond and cement of the ceremonial law,
the temple and priesthood, the centre of their unity, had for many ages been
the darlings and favourites of heaven, a kingdom of priests, a holy nation,
dignified and distinguished by God's miraculous appearances among them and for
them. Now that the gospel was preached, and Christian churches were planted,
this national body was thereby abandoned, their church-polity dissolved; and
Christian churches (and in process of time Christian nations), embodied in like
manner, become their successors in the divine favour, and those special
privileges and protections which were the products of that favour. To clear up
the justice of God in this great dispensation is the scope of the apostle here.
Romans
9:14-24
The apostle,
having asserted the true meaning of the promise, comes here to maintain and
prove the absolute sovereignty of God, in disposing of the children of men,
with reference to their eternal state. And herein God is to be considered, not
as a rector and governor, distributing rewards and punishments according to his
revealed laws and covenants, but as an owner and benefactor, giving to the
children of men such grace and favour as he has determined in and by his secret
and eternal will and counsel: both the favour of visible church-membership and
privileges, which is given to some people and denied to others, and the favour
of effectual grace, which is given to some particular persons and denied to
others.
Now this part of
his discourse is in answer to two objections.
I. It might be
objected, Is there unrighteousness with God? If God, in dealing with the
children of men, do thus, in an arbitrary manner, choose some and refuse
others, may it not be suspected that there is unrighteousness with him? This
the apostle startles at the thought of: God forbid! Far be it from us to
think such a thing; shall not the judge of all the earth do right? Gen_18:25; Rom_3:5,
Rom_3:6. He denies the consequences,
and proves the denial.
1. In respect of
those to whom he shows mercy, Rom_9:15,
Rom_9:16. He quotes that scripture to
show God's sovereignty in dispensing his favours (Exo_33:19):
I will be gracious to whom I will be gracious. All God's reasons of
mercy are taken from within himself. All the children of men being plunged
alike into a state of sin and misery, equally under guilt and wrath, God, in a
way of sovereignty, picks out some from this fallen apostatized race, to be
vessels of grace and glory. He dispenses his gifts to whom he will, without
giving us any reason: according to his own good pleasure he pitches upon some
to be monuments of mercy and grace, preventing grace, effectual grace, while he
passes by others. The expression is very emphatic, and the repetition makes it
more so: I will have mercy on whom I will have mercy. It imports a
perfect absoluteness in God's will; he will do what he will, and giveth not
account of any of his matters, nor is it fit he should. As these great words, I
am that I am (Exo_3:14) do
abundantly express the absolute independency of his being, so these words, I
will have mercy on whom I will have mercy, do as fully express the absolute
prerogative and sovereignty of his will. To vindicate the righteousness of God,
in showing mercy to whom he will, the apostle appeals to that which God himself
had spoken, wherein he claims this sovereign power and liberty. God is a
competent judge, even in his own case. Whatsoever God does, or is resolved to
do, is both by the one and the other proved to be just. Eleēsō on han heleō - I will have mercy on whom
I will have mercy. When I begin, I will make an end. Therefore God's mercy
endures for ever, because the reason of it is fetched from within himself;
therefore his gifts and callings are without repentance. Hence he infers (Rom_9:16), It is not of him that willeth.
Whatever good comes from God to man, the glory of it is not to be ascribed to
the most generous desire, nor to the most industrious endeavour, of man, but
only and purely to the free grace and mercy of God. In Jacob's case it was not
of him that willeth, nor of him that runneth; it was not the earnest will
and desire of Rebecca that Jacob might have the blessing; it was not Jacob's
haste to get it (for he was compelled to run for it) that procured him the
blessing, but only the mercy and grace of God. Wherein the holy happy people of
God differ from other people, it is God and his grace that make them differ.
Applying this general rule to the particular case that Paul has before him, the
reason why the unworthy, undeserving, ill-deserving Gentiles are called, and
grafted into the church, while the greatest part of the Jews are left to perish
in unbelief, is not because those Gentiles were better deserving or better
disposed for such a favour, but because of God's free grace that made that
difference. The Gentiles did neither will it, nor run for it, for they sat
in darkness, Mat_4:16. In darkness,
therefore not willing what they knew not; sitting in darkness, a
contented posture, therefore not running to meet it, but anticipated with these
invaluable blessings of goodness. Such is the method of God's grace towards all
that partake of it, for he is found of those that sought him not (Isa_65:1); in this preventing, effectual,
distinguishing grace, he acts as a benefactor, whose grace is his own. Our eye
therefore must not be evil because his is good; but, of all the grace that we
or others have, he must have the glory: Not unto us, Psa_115:1.
2. In respect of those who perish, Rom_9:17. God's sovereignty, manifested in the
ruin of sinners, is here discovered in the instance of Pharaoh; it is quoted
from Exo_9:16. Observe,
(1.) What God did with Pharaoh. He raised him up,
brought him into the world, made him famous, gave him the kingdom and power, -
set him up as a beacon upon a hill, as the mark of all his plagues (compare Exo_9:14) - hardened his heart, as he had said
he would (Exo_4:21): I will harden
his heart, that is, withdraw softening grace, leave him to himself, let
Satan loose against him, and lay hardening providences before him. Or, by
raising him up may be meant the intermission of the plagues which gave Pharaoh
respite, and the reprieve of Pharaoh in those plagues. In the Hebrew, I have
made thee stand, continued thee yet in the land of the living. Thus doth
God raise up sinners, make them for himself, even for the day of evil (Pro_16:4), raise them up in outward prosperity,
external privileges (Mat_11:23),
sparing mercies.
(2.) What he designed in it: That I might show my
power in thee. God would, by all this, serve the honour of his name, and
manifest his power in baffling the pride and insolence of that great and daring
tyrant, who bade defiance to Heaven itself, and trampled upon all that was just
and sacred. If Pharaoh had not been so high and might, so bold and hardy, the
power of God had not been so illustrious in the ruining of him; but the taking
off of the spirit of such a prince, who hectored at that rate, did indeed
proclaim God glorious in holiness, fearful in praises, doing wonders, Exo_15:11. This is Pharaoh, and all his
multitude.
(3.) His conclusion concerning both these we have, Rom_9:18. He hath mercy on whom he will have
mercy, and whom he will he hardeneth. The various dealings of God, by which
he makes some to differ from others, must be resolved into his absolute
sovereignty. He is debtor to no man, his grace is his own, and he may give it
or withhold it as it pleaseth him; we have none of us deserved it, nay, we have
all justly forfeited it a thousand times, so that herein the work of our
salvation is admirably well ordered that those who are saved must thank God
only, and those who perish must thank themselves only, Hos_13:9. We are bound, as God hath bound us, to
do our utmost for the salvation of all we have to do with; but God is bound no
further than he has been pleased to bind himself by his own covenant and
promise, which is his revealed will; and that is that he will receive, and not
cast out, those that come to Christ; but the drawing of souls in order to that
coming is a preventing distinguishing favour to whom he will. Had he mercy on
the Gentiles? It was because he would have mercy on them. Were the Jews
hardened? It was because it was his own pleasure to deny them softening grace,
and to give them up to their chosen affected unbelief. Even so, Father,
because it seemed good unto thee. That scripture excellently explains this,
Luk_10:21, and, as this, shows the
sovereign will of God in giving or withholding both the means of grace and the
effectual blessing upon those means.
II. It might be objected, Why doth he yet find
fault? For who hath resisted his will? Rom_9:19.
Had the apostle been arguing only for God's sovereignty in appointing and
ordering the terms and conditions of acceptance and salvation, there had not
been the least colour for this objection; for he might well find fault if
people refused to come up to the terms on which such a salvation is offered;
the salvation being so great, the terms could not be hard. But there might be
colour for the objection against his arguing for the sovereignty of God in
giving and withholding differencing and preventing grace; and the objection is
commonly and readily advanced against the doctrine of distinguishing grace. If
God, while he gives effectual grace to some, denies it to others, why doth he
find fault with those to whom he denies it? If he hath rejected the Jews, and
hid from their eyes the things that belong to their peace, why doth he find
fault with them for their blindness? If it be his pleasure to discard them as
not a people, and not obtaining mercy, their knocking off themselves was no
resistance of his will. This objection he answers at large,
1. By reproving the objector (Rom_9:20): Nay but, O man. This is not an
objection fit to be made by the creature against his Creator, by man against
God. The truth, as it is in Jesus, is that which abases man as nothing, less
than nothing, and advances God as sovereign Lord of all. Observe how
contemptibly he speaks of man, when he comes to argue with God his Maker: “Who
art thou, thou that art so foolish, so feeble, so short-sighted, so
incompetent a judge of the divine counsels? Art thou able to fathom such a
depth, dispute such a case, to trace that way of God which is in the sea, his
path in the great waters?” That repliest against God. It becomes us to
submit to him, not to reply against him; to lie down under his hand, not to fly
in his face, nor to charge him with folly. Ho antapokrinomenos - That
answerest again. God is our master, and we are his servants; and it does
not become servants to answer again, Tit_2:9.
2. By resolving all into the divine sovereignty. We are
the thing formed, and he is the former; and it does not become us to challenge
or arraign his wisdom in ordering and disposing of us into this or that shape
of figure. The rude and unformed mass of matter hath no right to this or that
form, but is shaped at the pleasure of him that formeth it. God's sovereignty
over us is fitly illustrated by the power that the potter hath over the clay;
compare Jer_18:6, where, by a like
comparison, God asserts his dominion over the nation of the Jews, when he was
about to magnify his justice in their destruction by Nebuchadnezzar.
(1.) He gives us the comparison, Rom_9:21. The potter, out of the same lump, may
make either a fashionable vessel, and a vessel fit for creditable and
honourable uses, or a contemptible vessel, and a vessel in which is no
pleasure; and herein he acts arbitrarily, as he might have chosen whether he
would make any vessel of it at all, or whether he would leave it in the hole of
the pit, out of which it was dug.
(2.) The application of the comparison, Rom_9:22-24. Two sorts of vessels God forms out
of the great lump of fallen mankind: - [1.] Vessels of wrath - vessels
filled with wrath, as a vessel of wine is a vessel filled with wine; full of
the fury of the Lord, Isa_51:20. In
these God is willing to show his wrath, that is, his punishing justice, and his
enmity to sin. This must be shown to all the world, God will make it appear
that he hates sin. He will likewise make his power known, to dumaton autou.
It is a power of strength and energy, an inflicting power, which works and
effects the destruction of those that perish; it is a destruction that proceeds
from the glory of his power, 2Th_1:9.
The eternal damnation of sinners will be an abundant demonstration of the power
of God; for he will act in it himself immediately, his wrath preying as it were
upon guilty consciences, and his arm stretched out totally to destroy their
well-being, and yet at the same instant wonderfully to preserve the being of
the creature. In order to this, God endured them with much long-suffering
- exercised a great deal of patience towards them, let them alone to fill up
the measure of sin, to grow till they were ripe for ruin, and so they became fitted
for destruction, fitted by their own sin and self-hardening. The reigning
corruptions and wickedness of the soul are its preparedness and disposedness
for hell: a soul is hereby made combustible matter, fit for the flames of hell.
When Christ said to the Jews (Mat_23:32),
Fill you up then the measure of your father, that upon you may come all the
righteous blood (Mat_23:35), he
did, as it were, endure them with much long-suffering, that they might, by
their own obstinacy and wilfulness in sin, fit themselves for destruction. [2.]
Vessels of mercy - filled with mercy. The happiness bestowed upon the
saved remnant is the fruit, not of their merit, but of God's mercy. The spring
of all the joy and glory of heaven is that mercy of God which endures for ever.
Vessels of honour must to eternity own themselves vessels of mercy. Observe, First,
What he designs in them: To make known the riches of his glory, that is,
of his goodness; for God's goodness is his greatest glory, especially when it
is communicated with the greatest sovereignty. I beseech thee show me thy
glory, says Moses, Exo_33:18. I
will make all my goodness to pass before thee, says God (Exo_33:19), and that given out freely: I will
be gracious to whom I will be gracious. God makes known his glory, this
goodness of his, in the preservation and supply of all the creatures: the earth
is full of his goodness, and the year crowned with it; but when he would
demonstrate the riches of his goodness, unsearchable riches, he does it in the
salvation of the saints, that will be to eternity glorious monuments of divine
grace. Secondly, What he does for them he does before prepare them to
glory. Sanctification is the preparation of the soul for glory, making it
meet to partake of the inheritance of the saints in light. This is God's work.
We can destroy ourselves fast enough, but we cannot save ourselves. Sinners fit
themselves for hell, but it is God that prepares saints for heaven; and all
those that God designs for heaven hereafter he prepares and fits for heaven
now: he works them to the self-same thing, 2Co_5:5.
And would you know who these vessels of mercy are? Those whom he hath
called (Rom_9:24); for whom he did
predestinate those he also called with an effectual call: and these not of the
Jews only, but of the Gentiles; for, the partition-wall being taken down, the
world was laid in common, and not (as it had been) God's favour appropriated to
the Jews, and they put a degree nearer his acceptance than the rest of the
world. They now stood upon the same level with the Gentiles; and the question
is not now whether of the seed of Abraham or no, that is neither here nor
there, but whether or no called according to his purpose.
Romans
9:25-29
Having explained
the promise, and proved the divine sovereignty, the apostle here shows how the
rejection of the Jews, and the taking in of the Gentiles, were foretold in the
Old Testament, and therefore must needs be very well consistent with the
promise made to the fathers under the Old Testament. It tends very much to the
clearing of a truth to observe how the scripture is fulfilled in it. The Jews
would, no doubt, willingly refer it to the Old Testament, the scriptures of
which were committed to them. Now he shows how this, which was so uneasy to
them, was there spoken of.
I. By the
prophet Hosea, who speaks of the taking in of a great many of the Gentiles, Hos_2:23 and Hos_1:10.
The Gentiles had not been the people of God, not owning him, nor being owned by
him in that relation: “But,” says he, “I will call them my people, make
them such and own them as such, notwithstanding all their unworthiness.” A
blessed change! Former badness is no bar to God's present grace and mercy. - And
her beloved which was not beloved. Those whom God calls his people he calls
beloved: he loves those that are his own. And lest it might be supposed that
they should become God's people only by being proselyted to the Jewish
religion, and made members of that nation, he adds, from Hos_1:10, In the place where it was said,
etc., there shall they be called. They need not be embodied with the
Jews, nor go up to Jerusalem to worship; but, wherever they are scattered over
the face of the earth, there will God own them. Observe the great dignity and
honour of the saints, that they are called the children of the living God; and
his calling them so makes them so. Behold, what manner of love! This honour
have all his saints.
II. By the
prophet Isaiah, who speaks of the casting off of many of the Jews, in two
places.
1. One is Isa_10:22, Isa_10:23,
which speaks of the saving of a remnant, that is, but a remnant, which, though
in the prophecy it seems to refer to the preservation of a remnant from the
destruction and desolation that were coming upon them by Sennacherib and his
army, yet is to be understood as looking further, and sufficiently proves that
it is no strange thing for God to abandon to ruin a great many of the seed of
Abraham, and yet maintain his word of promise to Abraham in full force and
virtue. This is intimated in the supposition that the number of children of
Israel was as the sand of the sea, which was part of the promise made to
Abraham, Gen_22:17. And yet only a
remnant shall be saved; for many are called, but few are chosen. In this
salvation of the remnant we are told (Rom_9:28)
from the prophet, (1.) That he will complete the work: He will finish the
work. When God begins he will make an end, whether in ways of judgment or
of mercy. The rejection of the unbelieving Jews god would finish in their utter
ruin by the Romans, who soon after this quite took away their place and nation.
The assuming of Christian churches into the divine favour, and the spreading of
the gospel in other nations, was a work which God would likewise finish, and be
known by his name JEHOVAH. As for God, his work is perfect. Margin, He will
finish the account. God, in his eternal counsels, has taken an account of
the children of men, allotted them to such or such a condition, to such a share
of privileges; and, as they come into being, his dealings with them are
pursuant to these counsels: and he will finish the account, complete the
mystical body, call in as many as belong to the election of grace, and then the
account will be finished. (2.) That he will contract it; not only finish it,
but finish it quickly. Under the Old Testament he seemed to tarry, and to make
a longer and more tedious work of it. The wheels moved but slowly towards the
extent of the church; but now he will cut it short, and make a short
work upon the earth. Gentile converts were now flying as a cloud. But he will
cut it short in righteousness, both in wisdom and in justice. Men, when
they cut short, do amiss; they do indeed despatch causes; but, when God cuts
short, it is always in righteousness. So the fathers generally apply it. Some
understand it of the evangelical law and covenant, which Christ has introduced
and established in the world: he has in that finished the work, put an end to
the types and ceremonies of the Old Testament. Christ said, It is finished,
and then the veil was rent, echoing as it were to the word that Christ said
upon the cross. And he will cut it short. The work (it is logos - the word, the law)
was under the Old Testament very long; a long train of institutions,
ceremonies, conditions: but now it is cut short. Our duty is now, under the
gospel, summed up in much less room than it was under the law; the covenant was
abridged and contracted; religion is brought into a less compass. And it is in
righteousness, in favour to us, in justice to his own design and counsel. With
us contractions are apt to darken things: -
- Brevis esse laboro, Obscurus fio -
I
strive to be concise, but prove obscure.
but
it is not so in this case. Though it be cut short, it is clear and plain; and,
because short, the more easy.
2. Another is quoted from Isa_1:9,
where the prophet is showing how in a time of general calamity and destruction
God would preserve a seed. This is to the same purport with the former; and the
scope of it is to show that it was no strange thing for God to leave the
greatest part of the people of the Jews to ruin, and to reserve to himself only
a small remnant: so he had done formerly, as appears by their own prophets; and
they must not wonder if he did so now. Observe, (1.) What God is. He is the
Lord of sabaoth, that is, the Lord of hosts - a Hebrew word retained in the
Greek, as Jam_5:4. All the host of
heaven and earth are at his beck and disposal. When God secures a seed to
himself out of a degenerate apostate world, he acts as Lord of sabaoth. It is
an act of almighty power and infinite sovereignty. (2.) What his people are;
they are a seed, a small number. The corn reserved for next year's
seedings is but little, compared with that which is spent and eaten. But they
are a useful number - the seed, the substance, of the next generation, Isa_6:13. It is so far from being an impeachment
of the justice and righteousness of God that so many perish and are destroyed,
that it is a wonder of divine power and mercy that all are not destroyed, that
there are any saved; for even those that are left to be a seed, if God had
dealt with them according to their sins, had perished with the rest. This is
the great truth which this scripture teacheth us.
Romans
9:30-33
The apostle
comes here at last to fix the true reason of the reception of the Gentiles, and
the rejection of the Jews. There was a difference in the way of their seeking,
and therefore there was that different success, though still it was the free
grace of God that made them differ. He concludes like an orator, What shall
we say then? What is the conclusion of the whole dispute?
I. Concerning
the Gentiles observe, 1. How they had been alienated from righteousness: the
followed not after it; they knew not their guilt and misery, and therefore were
not at all solicitous to procure a remedy. In their conversion preventing grace
was greatly magnified: God was found of those that sought him not, Isa_65:1. There was nothing in them to dispose
them for such a favour more than what free grace wrought in them. Thus doth God
delight to dispense grace in a way of sovereignty and absolute dominion. 2. How
they attained to righteousness, notwithstanding: By faith; not by being
proselyted to the Jewish religion, and submitting to the ceremonial law, but by
embracing Christ, and believing in Christ, and submitting to the gospel. They
attained to that by the short cut of believing sincerely in Christ for which
the Jews had been long in vain beating about the bush.
II.
Concerning the Jews observe, 1. How they missed their end: they followed
after the law of righteousness (Rom_9:31)
- they talked much of justification and holiness, seemed very ambitious of
being the people of God and the favourites of heaven, but they did not attain
to it, that is, the greatest part of them did not; as many as stuck to their
old Jewish principles and ceremonies, and pursued a happiness in those
observances, embracing the shadows now that the substance was come, these fell
short of acceptance with God, were not owned as his people, nor went to their
house justified. 2. How they mistook their way, which was the cause of their
missing the end, Rom_9:32, Rom_9:33. They sought, but not in the right way,
not in the humbling way, not in the instituted appointed way. Not by faith,
not by embracing the Christian religion, and depending upon the merit of
Christ, and submitting to the terms of the gospel, which were the very life and
end of the law. But they sought by the works of the law; as if they were
to expect justification by their observance of the precepts and ceremonies of
the law of Moses. This was the stumbling-stone at which they stumbled.
They could not get over this corrupt principle which they had espoused, That
the law was given them for no end but that merely by their observance of it,
and obedience to it, they might be justified before God: and so they could by
no means be reconciled to the doctrine of Christ, which brought them off from
that to expect justification through the merit and satisfaction of another.
Christ himself is to some a stone of stumbling, for which he quotes Isa_8:14; Isa_28:16.
It is sad that Christ should be set for the fall of any, and yet it is so (Luk_2:34), that ever poison should be sucked out
of the balm of Gilead, that the foundation-stone should be to any a stone of
stumbling, and the rock of salvation a rock of offence; so he is to multitudes;
so he was to the unbelieving Jews, who rejected him, because he put an end to
the ceremonial law. But still there is a remnant that do believe on him; and
they shall not be ashamed, that is, their hopes and expectations of
justification by him shall not be disappointed, as theirs are who expect it by
the law. So that, upon the whole, the unbelieving Jews have no reason to
quarrel with God for rejecting them; they had a fair offer of righteousness,
and life, and salvation, made to them upon gospel terms, which they did not
like, and would not come up to; and therefore, if they perish, they may thank
themselves - their blood is upon their own heads.
Romans
10:1-11
The scope of the
apostle in this part of the chapter is to show the vast difference between the
righteousness of the law and the righteousness of faith, and the great
pre-eminence of the righteousness of faith above that of the law; that he might
induce and persuade the Jews to believe in Christ, aggravate the folly and sin
of those that refused, and justify God in the rejection of such refusers.
I. Paul here
professes his good affection to the Jews, with the reason of it (Rom_10:1, Rom_10:2),
where he gives them a good wish, and a good witness.
1. A good wish (Rom_10:1), a wish that they might be saved -
saved from the temporal ruin and destruction that were coming upon them - saved
from the wrath to come, eternal wrath, which was hanging over their heads. It
is implied in this wish that they might be convinced and converted; he could
not pray in faith that they might be saved in their unbelief. Though Paul
preached against them, yet he prayed for them. Herein he was merciful, as God
is, who is not willing that any should perish (2Pe_3:9), desires not the death of sinners. It
is our duty truly and earnestly to desire the salvation of our own. This, he
says, was his heart's desire and prayer, which intimates, (1.) The
strength and sincerity of his desire. It was his heart's desire; it was
not a formal compliment, as good wishes are with many from the teeth outward,
but a real desire. This it was before it was his prayer. The soul of prayer is
the heart's desire. Cold desires do but beg denials; we must even breathe out
our souls in every prayer. (2.) The offering up of this desire to God. It was
not only his heart's desire, but it was his prayer. There may be desires in the
heart, and yet no prayer, unless those desires be presented to God. Wishing and
woulding, if that be all, are not praying.
2. A good
witness, as a reason of his good wish (Rom_10:2):
I bear them record that they have a zeal of God. The unbelieving Jews
were the most bitter enemies Paul had in the world, and yet Paul gives them as
good a character as the truth would bear. We should say the best we can even of
our worst enemies; this is blessing those that curse us. Charity teaches us to
have the best opinion of persons, and to put the best construction upon words
and actions, that they will bear. We should take notice of that which is
commendable even in bad people. They have a zeal of God. Their
opposition to the gospel is from a principle of respect to the law, which they
know to have come from God. There is such a thing as a blind misguided zeal:
such was that of the Jews, who, when they hated Christ's people and ministers,
and cast them out, said, Let the Lord be glorified (Isa_66:5); nay, they killed them, and thought
they did God good service, Joh_16:2.
II. He here
shows the fatal mistake that the unbelieving Jews were guilty of, which was
their ruin. Their zeal was not according to knowledge. It is true God
gave them that law for which they were so zealous; but they might have known
that, by the appearance of the promised Messiah, an end was put to it. He
introduced a new religion and way of worship, to which the former must give
place. He proved himself the Son of God, gave the most convincing evidence that
could be of his being the Messiah; and yet they did not know and would not own
him, but shut their eyes against the clear light, so that their zeal for the
law was blind. This he shows further, Rom_10:3,
where we may observe,
1. The nature of
their unbelief. They have not submitted themselves to the righteousness of
God, that is, they have not yielded to gospel-terms, nor accepted the
tender of justification by faith in Christ, which is made in the gospel.
Unbelief is a non-submission to the righteousness of God, standing it out
against the gospel proclamation of indemnity. Have not submitted. In
true faith, there is need of a great deal of submission; therefore the first
lesson Christ teaches is to deny ourselves. It is a great piece of
condescension for a proud heart to be content to be beholden to free grace; we
are loth to sue sub forma pauperis - as paupers.
2. The causes of
their unbelief, and these are two: - (1.) Ignorance of God's righteousness.
They did not understand, and believe, and consider, the strict justice of God,
in hating and punishing sin, and demanding satisfaction, did not consider what
need we have of a righteousness wherein to appear before him; if they had, they
would never have stood out against the gospel offer, nor expected justification
by their own works, as if they could satisfy God's justice. Or, being ignorant
of God's way of justification, which he has now appointed and revealed by Jesus
Christ. They did not know it, because they would not; they shut their eyes
against the discoveries of it, and love darkness rather. (2.) A proud conceit
of their own righteousness: Going about to establish their own - a
righteousness of their own devising, and of their own working out, by the merit
of their works, and by their observance of the ceremonial law. They thought
they needed not to be beholden to the merit of Christ, and therefore depended
upon their own performances as sufficient to make up a righteousness wherein to
appear before God. They could not with Paul disclaim a dependence upon this (Phi_3:9), Not having my own righteousness.
See an instance of this pride in the Pharisee, Luk_18:10,
Luk_18:11. Compare Rom_10:14.
III. He here
shows the folly of that mistake, and what an unreasonable thing it was for them
to be seeking justification by the works of the law, now that Christ had come,
and had brought in an everlasting righteousness; considering,
1. The
subserviency of the law to the gospel (Rom_10:4):
Christ is the end of the law for righteousness. The design of the law
was to lead people to Christ. The moral law was but for the searching of the
wound, the ceremonial law for the shadowing forth of the remedy; but Christ is
the end of both. See 2Co_3:7, and
compare Gal_3:23, Gal_3:24. The use of the law was to direct
people for righteousness to Christ. (1.) Christ is the end of the ceremonial
law; he is the period of it, because he is the perfection of it. When the
substance comes, the shadow is gone. The sacrifices, and offerings, and
purifications appointed under the Old Testament, prefigured Christ, and pointed
at him; and their inability to take away sin discovered the necessity of a
sacrifice that should, by being once offered, take away sin. (2.) Christ is the
end of the moral law in that he did what the law could not do (Rom_8:3), and secured the great end of it. The
end of the law was to bring men to perfect obedience, and so to obtain
justification. This is now become impossible, by reason of the power of sin and
the corruption of nature; but Christ is the end of the law. The law is not
destroyed, nor the intention of the lawgiver frustrated, but, full satisfaction
being made by the death of Christ for our breach of the law, the end is
attained, and we are put in another way of justification. Christ is thus the
end of the law for righteousness, that is, for justification; but it is only to
every one that believeth. Upon our believing, that is, our humble
consent to the terms of the gospel, we become interested in Christ's
satisfaction, and so are justified through the redemption that is in Jesus.
2. The
excellency of the gospel above the law. This he proves by showing the different
constitution of these two.
(1.) What is the
righteousness which is of the law? This he shows, Rom_10:5.
The tenour of it is, Do, and live. Though it directs us to a better and
more effectual righteousness in Christ, yet in itself, considered as a law
abstracted from its respect to Christ and the gospel (for so the unbelieving
Jews embraced and retained it), it owneth nothing as a righteousness sufficient
to justify a man but that of perfect obedience. For this he quotes that
scripture (Lev_18:5), You shall
therefore keep my statutes and my judgments, which if a man do, he shall live
in them. To this he refers likewise, Gal_3:12,
The man that doeth them, shall live in them. Live, that is, be happy,
not only in the land of Canaan, but in heaven, of which Canaan was a type and
figure. The doing supposed must be perfect and sinless, without the least
breach or violation. The law which was given upon Mount Sinai, though it was
not a pure covenant of works (for who then could be saved under that
dispensation?) yet, that is might be the more effectual to drive people to
Christ and to make the covenant of grace welcome, it had a very great mixture
of the strictness and terror of the covenant of works. Now, was it not extreme
folly in the Jews to adhere so closely to this way of justification and
salvation, which was in itself so hard, and by the corruption of nature now
become impossible, when there was a new and a living way opened?
(2.) What is
that righteousness which is of faith, Rom_10:6,
etc. This he describes in the words of Moses, in Deuteronomy, in the second
law (so Deuteronomy signifies), where there was a much clearer revelation
of Christ and the gospel than there was in the first giving of the law: he
quotes it from Deu_30:11-14, and shows,
[1.] That it is
not at all hard or difficult. The way of justification and salvation has in it
no such depths or knots as may discourage us, no insuperable difficulties
attending it; but, as was foretold, it is a high-way, Isa_35:8. We are not put to climb for it - it is
not in heaven; we are not put to dive for it - it is not in the deep. First,
We need not go to heaven, to search the records there, or to enquire into the
secrets of the divine counsel. It is true Christ is in heaven; but we may be
justified and saved without going thither, to fetch him thence, or sending a
special messenger to him. Secondly, We need not go to the deep, to fetch
Christ out of the grave, or from the state of the dead: Into the deep, to
bring up Christ from the dead. This plainly shows that Christ's descent
into the deep, or into hadēs, was no more than his going into the state of the
dead, in allusion to Jonah. It is true that Christ was in the grave, and it is
as true that he is now in heaven; but we need not perplex and puzzle ourselves
with fancied difficulties, nor must we create to ourselves such gross and
carnal ideas of these things as if the method of salvation were impracticable,
and the design of the revelation were only to amuse us. No, salvation is not
put at so vast a distance from us.
[2.] But it is very plain and easy: The word is nigh
thee. When we speak of looking upon Christ, and receiving Christ, and
feeding upon Christ, it is not Christ in heaven, nor Christ in the deep, that
we mean; but Christ in the promise, Christ exhibited to us, and offered, in the
word. Christ is nigh thee, for the word is nigh thee: nigh thee indeed: it is in
thy mouth, and in thy heart; there is no difficulty in understanding,
believing, and owning it. The work thou hast to do lies within thee: the
kingdom of God is within you, Luk_17:21.
Thence thou must fetch thy evidences, not out of the records of heaven. It
is, that is, it is promised that it shall be, in thy mouth (Isa_59:21), and in thy heart, Jer_31:33. All that which is done for us is
already done to our hands. Christ is come down from heaven; we need not go to
fetch him. He is come up from the deep; we need not perplex ourselves how to
bring him up. There is nothing now to be done, but a work in us; this must be
our care, to look to our heart and mouth. Those that were under the law were to
do all themselves, Do this, and live; but the gospel discovers the
greatest part of the work done already, and what remains cut short in
righteousness, salvation offered upon very plain and easy terms, brought to our
door, as it were, in the word which is nigh us. It is in our mouth - we are
reading it daily; it is in our heart - we are, or should be, thinking of it
daily. Even the word of faith; the gospel and the promise of it, called
the word of faith because it is the object of faith about which it is
conversant, the word which we believe; - because it is the precept of faith,
commanding it, and making it the great condition of justification; - and
because it is the ordinary means by which faith is wrought and conveyed. Now
what is this word of faith? We have the tenour of it, Rom_10:9, Rom_10:10,
the sum of the gospel, which is plain and easy enough. Observe,
First, What is promised to us: Thou shalt be saved. It
is salvation that the gospel exhibits and tenders - saved from guilt and wrath,
with the salvation of the soul, an eternal salvation, which Christ is the
author of, a Saviour to the uttermost.
Secondly, Upon what terms.
a.
Two things are required as conditions of salvation: - (a.) Confessing
the Lord Jesus - openly professing relation to him and dependence on him,
as our prince and Saviour, owning Christianity in the face of all the
allurements and affrightments of this world, standing by him in all weathers.
Our Lord Jesus lays a great stress upon this confessing of him before men; see Mat_10:32, Mat_10:33.
It is the product of many graces, evinces a great deal of self-denial, love to
Christ, contempt of the world, a mighty courage and resolution. It was a very
great thing, especially, when the profession of Christ or Christianity hazarded
estate, honour, preferment, liberty, life, and all that is dear in this world,
which was the case in the primitive times. (b.) Believing in the
heart that God raised him from the dead. The profession of faith with the
mouth, if there be not the power of it in the heart, is but a mockery; the root
of it must be laid in an unfeigned assent to the revelation of the gospel
concerning Christ, especially concerning his resurrection, which is the
fundamental article of the Christian faith, for thereby he was declared to be
the Son of God with power, and full evidence was given that God accepted his
satisfaction.
b.
This is further illustrated (Rom_10:10),
and the order inverted, because there must first be faith in the heart before
there can be an acceptable confession with the mouth. (a.) Concerning
faith: It is with the heart that man believeth, which implies more than
an assent of the understanding, and takes in the consent of the will, an
inward, hearty, sincere, and strong consent. It is not believing (not to be
reckoned so) if it be not with the heart. This is unto righteousness.
There is the righteousness of justification and the righteousness of
sanctification. Faith is to both; it is the condition of our justification (Rom_5:1), and it is the root and spring of our
sanctification; in it it is begun; by it it is carried on, Act_15:9. (b.) Concerning profession: It
is with the mouth that confession is made - confession to God in prayer
and praise (Rom_15:6), confession to
men by owning the ways of God before others, especially when we are called to
it in a day of persecution. It is fit that God should be honoured with the
mouth, for he made man's mouth (Exo_4:11),
and at such a time has promised to give his faithful people a mouth and
wisdom, Luk_21:15. It is part of
the honour of Christ that every tongue shall confess, Phi_2:11. And this is said to be unto
salvation, because it is the performance of the condition of that promise, Mat_10:32. Justification by faith lays the
foundation of our title to salvation; but by confession we build upon that
foundation, and come at last to the full possession of that to which we were
entitled. So that we have here a brief summary of the terms of salvation, and
they are very reasonable; in short this, that we must devote, dedicate, and
give up, to God, our souls and our bodies - our souls in believing with the
heart, and our bodies in confessing with the mouth. This do, and thou shalt
live. For this (Rom_10:11) he quotes Isa_28:16, Whosoever believeth on him shall
not be ashamed; ou kataischunthēsetai. That is, [a.] He will
not be ashamed to own that Christ in whom he trusts; he that believes in the
heart will not be ashamed to confess with the mouth. It is sinful shame that
makes people deny Christ, Mar_8:38. He
that believeth will not make haste (so the prophet has it) - will not make
haste to run away from the sufferings he meets with in the way of his duty,
will not be ashamed of a despised religion. [b.] He shall not be ashamed
of his hope in Christ; he shall not be disappointed of his end. It is our duty
that we must not, it is our privilege that we shall not, be ashamed of our
faith in Christ. He shall never have cause to repent his confidence in reposing
such a trust in the Lord Jesus.
Romans
10:12-21
The first words
express the design of the apostle through these verses, that there is no
difference between Jews and Gentiles, but they stand upon the same level in
point of acceptance with God. In Jesus Christ there is neither Greek nor Jews, Col_3:11. God doth not save any nor reject any
because they are Jews, nor because they are Greeks, but doth equally accept
both upon gospel terms: There is no difference. For the proof of this he
urges two arguments: -
I. That God is
the same to all: The same Lord over all is rich unto all. There is not
one God to the Jews who is more kind, and another to the Gentiles who is less
kind; but he is the same to all, a common father to all mankind. When he
proclaimed his name, The Lord, the Lord god, gracious and merciful, he
thereby signified not only what he was to the Jews, but what he is and will be
to all his creatures that seek unto him: not only good, but rich, plenteous in
goodness: he hath wherewith to supply them all, and he is free and ready to give
out to them; he is both able and willing: not only rich, but rich unto us,
liberal and bountiful in dispensing his favours to all that call upon him.
Something must be done by us, that we may reap of this bounty; and it is as
little as can be, we must call upon him. He will for this be enquired of (Eze_36:37), and surely that which is not worth
the asking is not worth the having. We have nothing to do but to draw out by
prayer, as there is occasion.
II. That the
promise is the same to all (Rom_10:13):
Whoever shall call - one as well as another, without exception. This
extent, this undifferencing extent, of the promise both to Jews and Gentiles he
thinks should not be surprising, for it was foretold by the prophet, Joe_2:32. Calling upon the name of the Lord is
here put for all practical religion. What is the life of a Christian but a life
of prayer? It implies a sense of our dependence on him, an entire dedication of
ourselves to him, and a believing expectation of our all from him. He that thus
calls upon him shall be saved. It is but ask and have; what would we have more?
for the further illustration of this he observes,
1. How necessary
it was that the gospel should be preached to the Gentiles, Rom_10:14, Rom_10:15.
This was what the Jews were so angry with Paul for, that he was the apostle of
the Gentiles, and preached the gospel to them. Now he shows how needful it was
to bring them within the reach of the forementioned promise, an interest in
which they should not envy to any of their fellow-creatures. (1.) They
cannot call on him in whom they have not believed. Except they believe that
he is God, they will not call upon him by prayer; to what purpose should they?
The grace of faith is absolutely necessary to the duty of prayer; we cannot
pray aright, nor pray to acceptation, without it. He that comes to God by
prayer must believe, Heb_11:6. Till
they believed the true God, they were calling upon idols, O Baal, hear us. (2.)
They cannot believe in him of whom they have not heard. some way or
other the divine revelation must be made known to us, before we can receive it
and assent to it; it is not born with us. In hearing is included reading, which
is tantamount, and by which many are brought to believe (Joh_20:31): These things are written that you
may believe. But hearing only is mentioned, as the more ordinary and
natural way of receiving information. (3.) They cannot hear without a
preacher; how should they? Somebody must tell them what they are to
believe. Preachers and hearers are correlates; it is a blessed thing when they
mutually rejoice in each other - the hearers in the skill and faithfulness of
the preacher, and the preacher in the willingness and obedience of the hearers.
(4.) They cannot preach except they be sent, except they be both
commissioned and in some measure qualified for their preaching work. How shall
a man act as an ambassador, unless he have both his credentials and his
instructions from the prince that sends him? This proves that to the regular
ministry there must be a regular mission and ordination. It is God's
prerogative to send ministers; he is the Lord of the harvest, and therefore to
him we must pray that he would send forth labourers, Mat_9:38. He only can qualify men for, and
incline them to, the work of the ministry. But the competency of that
qualification, and the sincerity of that inclination, must not be left to the
judgment of every man for himself: the nature of the thing will by no means
admit this; but, for the preservation of due order in the church, this must needs
be referred and submitted to the judgment of a competent number of those who
are themselves in that office and of approved wisdom and experience in it, who,
as in all other callings, are presumed the most able judges, and who are
empowered to set apart such as they find so qualified and inclined to this work
of the ministry, that by this preservation of the succession the name of Christ
may endure for ever and his throne as the days of heaven. And those that are
thus set apart, not only may, but must preach, as those that are sent.
2. How welcome
the gospel ought to be to those to whom it was preached, because it showed the
way to salvation, Rom_10:15. For this
he quotes Isa_52:7. The like passage we
have, Nah_1:15, which, if it point at
the glad tidings of the deliverance of Israel out of Babylon in the type, yet
looks further to the gospel, the good news of our salvation by Jesus Christ.
Observe, (1.) What the gospel is: It is the gospel of peace; it is the
word of reconciliation between God and man. On earth peace, Luk_2:14. Or, peace is put in general for all
good; so it is explained here; it is glad tidings of good things. The
things of the gospel are good things indeed, the best things; tidings
concerning them are the most joyful tidings, the best news that ever came from
heaven to earth. (2.) What the work of ministers is: To preach this gospel, to bring
these glad tidings; to evangelize peace (so the original is), to
evangelize good things. Every good preacher is in this sense an evangelist: he
is not only a messenger to carry the news, but an ambassador to treat; and the
first gospel preachers were angels, Luk_2:13,
etc. (3.) How acceptable they should therefore be to the children of men for
their work's sake: How beautiful are the feet, that is, how welcome are
they! Mary Magdalene expressed her love to Christ by kissing his feet, and
afterwards by holding him by the feet, Mat_28:9.
And, when Christ was sending forth his disciples, he washed their feet. Those
that preach the gospel of peace should see to it that their feet (their life
and conversation) be beautiful: the holiness of ministers' lives is the beauty
of their feet. How beautiful! namely, in the eyes of those that hear
them. Those that welcome the message cannot but love the messengers. See 1Th_5:12, 1Th_5:13.
3. He answers an
objection against all this, which might be taken from the little success which
the gospel had in many places (Rom_10:16):
But they have not all obeyed the gospel. All the Jews have not, all the
Gentiles have not; far the greater part of both remain in unbelief and
disobedience. Observe, The gospel is given us not only to be known and
believed, but to be obeyed. It is not a system of notions, but a rule of
practice. This little success of the word was likewise foretold by the prophet
(Isa_53:1): Who hath believed our
report? Very few have, few to what one would think should have believed it,
considering how faithful a report it is and how well worthy of all acceptation,
- very few to the many that persist in unbelief. It is no strange thing, but it
is a very sad and uncomfortable thing, for the ministers of Christ to bring the
report of the gospel, and not to be believed in it. Under such a melancholy
consideration it is good for us to go to God and make our complaint to him. Lord,
who hath believed, etc. In answer to this,
(1.) He shows
that the word preached is the ordinary means of working faith (Rom_10:17): So then, ara - however; though many
that hear do not believe, yet those that believe have first heard. Faith
cometh by hearing. It is the summary of what he had said before, Rom_10:14. The beginning, progress, and strength
of faith, are by hearing. The word of God is therefore called the word of
faith: it begets and nourishes faith. God gives faith, but it is by the word
as the instrument. Hearing (that hearing which works faith) is by the
word of God. It is not hearing the enticing words of man's wisdom, but
hearing the word of God, that will befriend faith, and hearing it as the word
of God. See 1Th_2:13.
(2.) That those who would not believe the report of the
gospel, yet, having heard it, were thereby left inexcusable, and may thank
themselves for their own ruin, Rom_10:18,
to the end.
[1.] The Gentiles have heard it (Rom_10:18): Have they not heard? Yes,
more or less, they have either heard the gospel, or at least heard of it. Their
sound went into all the earth; not only a confused sound, but their words
(more distinct and intelligible notices of these things) are gone unto the
ends of the world. The commission which the apostles received runs thus: Go
you into all the world - preach to every creature - disciple all nations;
and they did with indefatigable industry and wonderful success pursue that
commission. See the extent of Paul's province, Rom_15:19.
To this remote island of Britain, one of the utmost corners of the world, not
only the sound, but the words, of the gospel came within a few years after
Christ's ascension. It was in order to this that the gift of tongues was at the
very first poured so plentifully upon the apostles, Acts 2. In the expression
here he plainly alludes to Psa_19:4,
which speaks of the notices which the visible works of God in the creation give
to all the world of the power and Godhead of the Creator. As under the Old
Testament God provided for the publishing of the work of creation by the sun,
moon, and stars, so now for the publishing of the work of redemption to all the
world by the preaching of gospel ministers, who are therefore called stars.
[2.] The Jews have heard it too, Rom_10:19-21. For this he appeals to two
passages of the Old Testament, to show how inexcusable they are too. Did not
Israel know that the Gentiles were to be called in? They might have known
it from Moses and Isaiah.
First, One is taken from Deu_32:21,
I will provoke you to jealousy. The Jews not only had the offer, but saw
the Gentiles accepting it and benefitted by that acceptance, witness their
vexation at the event. They had the refusal: To you first, Act_3:26. In all places where the apostles came
still the Jews had the first offer, and the Gentiles had but their leavings. If
one would not, another would. Now this provoked them to jealousy. They, as the
elder brother in the parable (Lu. 15) envied the reception and entertainment of
the prodigal Gentiles upon their repentance. The Gentiles are here called no
people, and a foolish nation, that is, not the professing people of
God. How much soever there be of the wit and wisdom of the world, those that
are not the people of God are, and in the end will be found to be, a foolish
people. Such was the state of the Gentile world, who yet were made the people
of God, and Christ to them the wisdom of God. What a provocation it was to the
Jews to see the Gentiles taken into favour we may see, Act_13:45; Act_17:5,
Act_17:13, and especially Act_22:22. It was an instance of the great
wickedness of the Jews that they were thus enraged; and this in Deuteronomy is
the matter of a threatening. God often makes people's sin their punishment. A
man needs no greater plague than to be left to the impetuous rage of his own
lusts.
Secondly, Another is taken from Isa_65:1,
Isa_65:2, which is very full, and in it
Esaias is very bold - bold indeed, to speak so plainly of the rejection of his
own countrymen. Those that will be found faithful have need to be very bold.
Those that are resolved to please God must not be afraid to displease any man.
Now Esaias speaks boldly and plainly,
a.
Of the preventing grace and favour of God in the reception and entertainment of
the Gentiles (Rom_10:20): I was
found of those that sought me not. The prescribed method is, Seek and find;
this is a rule for us, not a rule for God, who is often found of those that do
not seek. His grace is his own, distinguishing grace his own, and he dispenses
it in a way of sovereignty, gives of withholds it at pleasure - anticipates us
with the blessings, the riches choicest blessings, of his goodness. Thus he
manifested himself to the Gentiles, by sending the light of the gospel among
them, when they were so far from seeking him and asking after him that they
were following after lying vanities, and serving dumb idols. Was not this our
own particular case? Did not God begin in love, and manifest himself to us when
we did not ask after him? And was not that a time of love indeed, to be often
remembered with a great deal of thankfulness?
b.
Of the obstinacy and perverseness of Israel, notwithstanding the fair offers
and affectionate invitations they had, Rom_10:21.
Observe,
(a.) God's great goodness to them: All day
long I have stretched forth my hands. [a.] His offers: I have
stretched forth my hands, offering them life and salvation with the
greatest sincerity and seriousness that can be, with all possible expressions
of earnestness and importunity, showing them the happiness tendered, setting it
before them with the greatest evidence, reasoning the case with them.
Stretching forth the hands is the gesture of those that require audience (Act_26:1), or desire acceptance, Pro_1:24. Christ was crucified with his hands
stretched out. Stretched forth my hands as offering reconciliation -
come let us shake hands and be friends; and our duty is to give the hand to
him, 2Ch_30:8. [b.] His patience
in making these offers: All day long. The patience of God towards
provoking sinners is admirable. He waits to be gracious. The time of God's
patience is here called a day, lightsome as a day and fit for work and
business, but limited as a day, and a night at the end of it. he bears long,
but he will not bear always.
(b.) Their great badness
to him. They were a disobedient gainsaying people. One word in the
Hebrew, in Isaiah, is here well explained by two; not only disobedient to the
call, not yielding to it, but gainsaying, and quarrelling with it, which is
much worse. Many that will not accept of a good proposal will yet acknowledge
that they have nothing to say against it: but the Jews who believed not rested
not there, but contradicted and blasphemed. God's patience with them was a very
great aggravation of their disobedience, and rendered it the more exceedingly
sinful; as their disobedience advanced the honour of God's patience and
rendered it the more exceedingly gracious. It is a wonder of mercy in God that
his goodness is not overcome by man's badness; and it is a wonder of wickedness
in man that his badness is not overcome by God's goodness.
Romans
11:1-32
The apostle
proposes here a plausible objection, which might be urged against the divine
conduct in casting off the Jewish nation (Rom_11:1):
“Hath God cast away his people? Is the rejection total and final? Are
they all abandoned to wrath and ruin, and that eternal? Is the extent of the
sentence so large as to be without reserve, or the continuance of it so long as
to be without repeal? Will he have no more a peculiar people to himself?” In
opposition to this, he shows that there was a great deal of goodness and mercy
expressed along with this seeming severity, particularly he insists upon three
things: - 1. That, though some of the Jews were cast off, yet they were not all
so. 2. That, though the body of the Jews were cast off, yet the Gentiles were
taken in. And, 3. That, though the Jews were cast off at present, yet in God's
due time they should be taken into his church again.
I. The Jews, it
is true, were many of them cast off, but not all. The supposition of this he
introduces with a God forbid. He will by no means endure such a
suggestions. God had made a distinction between some of them and others.
1. There was a
chosen remnant of believing Jews, that obtained righteousness and life by faith
in Jesus Christ, Rom_11:1-7. These are
said to be such as he foreknew (Rom_11:2),
that is, had thoughts of love to, before the world was; for whom he thus
foreknew he did predestinate. her lies the ground of the difference. They are called
the election (Rom_11:7), that
is, the elect, God's chosen ones, whom he calls the election, because that
which first distinguished them from the dignified them above others was God's
electing love. Believers are the election, all those and those only whom
God hath chosen. Now,
(1.) He shows
that he himself was one of them: For I also am an Israelite; as if he
had said, “Should I say that all the Jews are rejected, I should cut off my own
claims, and see myself abandoned.” Paul was a chosen vessel (Act_9:15), and yet he was of the seed of
Abraham, and particularly of the tribe of Benjamin, the least and youngest
of all the tribes of Israel.
(2.) He suggests
that as in Elias's time, so now, this chosen remnant was really more and
greater than one would think it was, which intimates likewise that it is no new
nor unusual thing for God's grace and favour to Israel to be limited and
confined to a remnant of that people; for so it was in Elijah's time. The
scripture saith it of Elias, en Hēlia - in the story of Elias, the great reformer of
the Old Testament. Observe, [1.] His mistake concerning Israel; as if their
apostasy in the days of Ahab was so general that he himself was the only
faithful servant God had in the world. He refers to 1Ki_19:14,
where (it is here said) he maketh intercession to God against Israel. A
strange kind of intercession: entunchanei tō Theō kata tou Israēl - He
deals with God against Israel; so it may be read; so entunchanō is
translated, Act_25:24. The Jews enetuchon
moi - have dealt with me. In prayer we deal with God, commune with
him, discourse with him: it is said of Elijah (Jam_5:17)
that he prayed in praying. We are then likely to pray in praying, to
make a business of that duty, when we pray as those that are dealing with God
in the duty. Now Elijah in this prayer spoke as if there were one left faithful
in Israel but himself. See to what a low ebb the profession of religion may
sometimes be brought, and how much the face of it may be eclipsed, that the
most wise and observing men may give it up for gone. So it was in Elijah's
time. That which makes the show of a nation is the powers and the multitude.
The powers of Israel were then persecuting powers: They have killed thy
prophets, and digged down thine altars, and they seek my life. The
multitude of Israel were then idolatrous: I am left alone. Thus those
few that were faithful to God were not only lost in the crowd of idolaters, but
crushed and driven into corners by the rage of persecutors. When the wicked
rise, a man is hidden, Pro_28:12. -
Digged down thine altars; not only neglected them, and let them go out
of repair, but digged them down. When altars were set up for Baal, it is no
wonder if God's altars were pulled down; they could not endure that standing
testimony against their idolatry. This was his intercession against Israel;
as if he had said, “Lord, is not this a people ripe for ruin, worthy to be cast
off? What else canst thou do for thy great name?” It is a very sad thing for
any person or people to have the prayers of God's people against them,
especially of God's prophets, for God espouses, and sooner or later will
visibly own, the cause of his praying people. [2.] The rectifying of this
mistake by the answer of God (Rom_11:4):
I have reserved. Note, First, Things are often much better with
the church of God than wise and good men think they are. They are ready to
conclude hardly, and to give up all for gone, when it is not so. Secondly,
In times of general apostasy, there is usually a remnant that keep their integrity
- some, though but a few; all do not go one way. Thirdly, That when
there is a remnant who keep their integrity in times of general apostasy it is
God that reserves to himself that remnant. If he had left them to themselves,
they had gone down the stream with the rest. It is his free and almighty grace
that makes the difference between them and others. - Seven thousand: a
competent number to bear their testimony against the idolatry of Israel, and
yet, compared with the many thousands of Israel, a very small number, one of a
city, and two of a tribe, like the grape-gleanings of the vintage. Christ's
flock is but a little flock; and yet, when they come all together at last, they
will be a great and innumerable multitude, Rev_7:9.
Now the description of this remnant is that they had not bowed the knee to
the image of Baal, which was then the reigning sin of Israel. In court,
city, and country, Baal had the ascendant; and the generality of people, more
or less, paid their respect to Baal. The best evidence of integrity is a
freedom from the present prevailing corruptions of the times and places that we
live in, to swim against the stream when it is strong. Those God will own for
his faithful witnesses that are bold in bearing their testimony to the present
truth, 2Pe_1:12. This is thank-worthy,
not to bow to Baal when every body bows. Sober singularity is commonly the
badge of true sincerity. [3.] The application of this instance to the case in
hand: Even so at this present time, Rom_11:5-7.
God's methods of dispensation towards his church are as they used to be. As it
has been, so it is. In Elijah's time there was a remnant, and so there is now.
If then there was a remnant left under the Old Testament, when the displays of
grace were less clear and the pourings out of the Spirit less plentiful, much
more now under the gospel, when the grace of God, which bringeth salvation,
appears more illustrious. - A remnant, a few of many, a remnant of
believing Jews when the rest were obstinate in their unbelief. This is called a
remnant according to the election of grace; they are such as were chosen
from eternity in the counsels of divine love to be vessels of grace and glory.
Whom he did predestinate those he called. If the difference between them and
others be made purely by the grace of God, as certainly it is (I have
reserved them, saith he, to myself), then it must needs be according
to the election; for we are sure that whatever God does he does it according to
the counsel of his own will. Now concerning this remnant we may observe, First,
Whence it takes its rise, from the free grace of God (Rom_11:6), that grace which excludes works. The
eternal election, in which the difference between some and others is first
founded, is purely of grace, free grace; not for the sake of works done or
foreseen; if so, it would not be grace. Gratia non est ullo modo gratia, si
non sit omni modo gratuita - It is not grace, properly so called, if it be not
perfectly free. Election is purely according to the good pleasure of his will,
Eph_1:5. Paul's heart was so full of
the freeness of God's grace that in the midst of his discourse he turns aside,
as it were, to make this remark, If of grace, then not of works. And
some observe that faith itself, which in the matter of justification if opposed
to works, is here included in them; for faith has a peculiar fitness to receive
the free grace of God for our justification, but not to receive that grace for
our election. Secondly, What it obtains: that which Israel, that is, the
body of that people, in van sought for (Rom_11:7):
Israel hath not obtained that which he seeketh for, that is,
justification, and acceptance with God (see Rom_9:31),
but the election have obtained it. In them the promise of God has its
accomplishment, and God's ancient kindness for that people is remembered. He
calls the remnant of believers, not the elect, but the election, to show
that the sole foundation of all their hopes and happiness is laid in election.
They were the persons whom God had in his eye in the counsels of his love; they
are the election; they are God's choice. Such was the favour of God to the
chosen remnant. But,
2. The rest were blinded, Rom_11:7. Some are chosen and called, and the
call is made effectual. But others are left to perish in their unbelief; nay,
they are made worse by that which should have made them better. The gospel,
which to those that believed was the savour of life unto life, to the
unbelieving was the savour of death unto death. The same sun softens wax and
hardens clay. Good old Simeon foresaw that the child Jesus was set for the
fall, as well as for the rising again, of many in Israel, Luk_2:34. - Were blinded; epōrōthēsan
- they were hardened; so some. They were seared, and made brawny and
insensible. They could neither see the light, nor feel the touch, of gospel
grace. Blindness and hardness are expressive of the same senselessness and
stupidity of spirit. They shut their eyes, and would not see; this was their
sin: and then God, in a way of righteous judgment, blinded their eyes, that
they could not see; this was their punishment. This seemed harsh doctrine: to
qualify it, therefore, he vouches two witnesses out of the Old Testament, who
speak of such a thing.
(1.) Isaiah, who spoke of such a judgment in his day, Isa_29:10; Isa_6:9.
The spirit of slumber, that is, an indisposedness to mind either their
duty or interest. They are under the power of a prevailing unconcernedness,
like people that are slumbering and sleeping; not affected with any thing that
is said or done. They were resolved to continue as they were, and would not
stir. The following words explain what is meant by the spirit of slumber: Eyes,
that they should not see, and ears, that they should not hear. They had the
faculties, but in the things that belonged to their peace they had not the use
of those faculties; they were quite infatuated, they saw Christ, but they did
not believe in him; they heard his word, but they did not receive it; and so
both their hearing and their seeing were in vain. It was all one as if they had
neither seen nor heard. Of all judgments spiritual judgments are the sorest,
and most to be dreaded, though they make the least noise. - Unto this day.
Ever since Esaias prophesied, this hardening work has been in the doing; some
among them have been blind and senseless. Or, rather, ever since the first
preaching of the gospel: though they have had the most convincing evidences
that could be of the truth of it, the most powerful preaching, the fairest
offers, the clearest calls from Christ himself, and from his apostles, yet to
this day they are blinded. It is still true concerning multitudes of them, even
to this day in which we live; they are hardened and blinded, the obstinacy and
unbelief go by succession from generation to generation, according to their own
fearful imprecation, which entailed the curse: His blood be upon us and upon
our children.
(2.) David (Rom_11:9,
Rom_11:10), quoted from Psa_69:22, Psa_69:23,
where David having in the Spirit foretold the sufferings of Christ from his own
people the Jews, particularly that of their giving him vinegar to drink
(Rom_11:21, which was literally
fulfilled, Mat_27:48), an expression of
the greatest contempt and malice that could be, in the next words, under the
form of an imprecation, he foretels the dreadful judgments of God upon them for
it: Let their table become a snare, which the apostle here applies to
the present blindness of the Jews, and the offence they took at the gospel,
which increased their hardness. This teaches us how to understand other prayers
of David against his enemies; they are to be looked upon as prophetic of the
judgments of God upon the public and obstinate enemies of Christ and his
kingdom. His prayer that it might be so was a prophecy that it should be so,
and not the private expression of his own angry resentments. It was likewise
intended to justify God, and to clear his righteousness in such judgments. He
speaks here, [1.] Of the ruin of their comforts: Let their table be made a
snare, that is, as the psalmist explains it, Let that which should be for
their welfare be a trap to them. The curse of God will turn meat into poison.
It is a threatening like that in Mal_2:2,
I will curse your blessings. Their table a snare, that is, an occasion
of sin and an occasion of misery. Their very food, that should nourish them,
shall choke them. [2.] Of the ruin of their powers and faculties (Rom_11:10), their eyes darkened, their backs
bowed down, that they can neither find the right way, nor, if they could, are
they able to walk in it. The Jews, after their national rejection of Christ and
his gospel, became infatuated in their politics, so that their very counsels
turned against them, and hastened their ruin by the Romans. They looked like a
people designed for slavery and contempt, their backs bowed down, to be ridden
and trampled upon by all the nations about them. Or, it may be understood
spiritually; their backs are bowed down in carnality and worldly-mindedness. Curvae
in terris animae - They mind earthly things. This is an exact description
of the state and temper of the present remainder of that people, than whom, if
the accounts we have of them be true, there is not a more worldly, wilful,
blind, selfish, ill-natured, people in the world. They are manifestly to this
day under the power of this curse. Divine curses will work long. It is a sign
we have our eyes darkened if we are bowed down in worldly-mindedness.
II. Another thing which qualified this doctrine of the
rejection of the Jews was that though they were cast off and unchurched, yet
the Gentiles were taken in (Rom_11:11-14),
which he applies by way of caution to the Gentiles, Rom_11:17-22.
1. The rejection of the Jews made room for the
reception of the Gentiles. The Jews' leavings were a feast for the poor
Gentiles (Rom_11:11): “Have they
stumbled that they should fall? Had God no other end in forsaking and
rejecting them than their destruction?” He startles at this, rejecting the
thought with abhorrence, as usually he does when any thing is suggested which
seems to reflect upon the wisdom, or righteousness, or goodness of God: God
forbid! no, through their fall salvation is come to the Gentiles.
Not but that salvation might have come to the Gentiles if they had stood; but
by the divine appointment it was so ordered that the gospel should be preached
to the Gentiles upon the Jews' refusal of it. Thus in the parable (Mat_22:8, Mat_22:9),
Those that were first bidden were not worthy - Go ye therefore into
the highways, Luk_14:21. And so it
was in the history (Act_13:46): It
was necessary that the word of God should first have been spoken to you; but,
seeing you put it from you, lo, we turn to the Gentiles; so Act_18:6. God will have a church in the world,
will have the wedding furnished with guests; and, if one will not come, another
will, or why was the offer made? The Jews had the refusal, and so the tender
came to the Gentiles. See how Infinite Wisdom brings light out of darkness,
good out of evil, meat out of the eater, and sweetness out of the strong. To
the same purport he says (Rom_11:12), The
fall of them was the riches of the world, that is, it hastened the gospel
so much the sooner into the Gentile world. The gospel is the greatest riches of
the place where it is; it is better than thousands of gold and silver. Or, The
riches of the Gentiles was the multitude of converts among them. True believers
are God's jewels. To the same purport (Rom_11:15):
The casting away of them is the reconciling of the world. God's
displeasure towards them made way for his favour towards the Gentiles. God was
in Christ reconciling the world, 2Co_5:19.
And therefore he took occasion from the unbelief of the Jews openly to disavow
and disown them, though they had been his peculiar favourites, to show that in
dispensing his favours he would now no longer act in such a way of peculiarity
and restriction, but that in every nation he that feared God and wrought
righteousness should be accepted of him, Act_10:34,
Act_10:35.
2. The use that the apostle makes of this doctrine
concerning the substitution of the Gentiles in the room of the Jews.
(1.) As a kinsman to the Jews, here is a word of
excitement and exhortation to them, to stir them up to receive and embrace the
gospel-offer. This God intended in his favour to the Gentiles, to provoke the
Jews to jealousy (Rom_11:11), and Paul
endeavours to enforce it accordingly (Rom_11:14):
If by any means I might provoke to emulation those who are my flesh.
“Shall the despised Gentiles run away with all the comforts and privileges of
the gospel, and shall not we repent of our refusal, and now at last put in for
a share? Shall not we believe and obey, and be pardoned and saved, as well as
the Gentiles?” See an instance of such an emulation in Esau, Gen_28:6-9. There is a commendable emulation in
the affairs of our souls: why should not we be as holy and happy as any of our
neighbours? In this emulation there needs no suspicion, undermining or
countermining; for the church has room enough, and the new covenant grace and
comfort enough, for us all. The blessings are not lessened by the multitudes of
the sharers. - And might save some of them. See what was Paul's
business, to save souls; and yet the utmost he promises himself is but to save
some. Though he was such a powerful preacher, spoke and wrote with such
evidence and demonstration of the Spirit, yet of the many he dealt with he
could but save some. Ministers must think their pains well bestowed if they can
but be instrumental to save some.
(2.) As an apostle to the Gentiles, here is a word of
caution for them: “I speak to you Gentiles. You believing Romans, you
hear what riches of salvation are come to you by the fall of the Jews, but take
heed lest you do any thing to forfeit it.” Paul takes this, as other occasions,
to apply his discourse to the Gentiles, because he was the apostle of the
Gentiles, appointed for the service of their faith, to plant and water churches
in the Gentile nations. This was the purport of his extraordinary mission, Act_22:21, I will send thee far hence unto
the Gentiles; compare Act_9:15. It
was likewise the intention of his ordination, Gal_2:9.
Compare Act_13:2. It ought to be our
great and special care to do good to those that are under our charge: we must
particularly mind that which is our own work. It was an instance of God's great
love to the poor Gentiles that he appointed Paul, who in gifts and graces
excelled all the apostles, to be the apostle of the Gentiles. The Gentile world
was a wider province; and the work to be done in it required a very able,
skilful, zealous, courageous workman: such a one was Paul. God calls those to
special work whom he either sees or makes fit for it. - I magnify my office.
There were those that vilified it, and him because of it. It was because he was
the apostle of the Gentiles that the Jews were so outrageous against him (Act_22:21, Act_22:22),
and yet he thought never the worse of it, though it set him up as the butt of all
the Jewish rage and malice. It is a sign of true love to Jesus Christ to reckon
that service and work for him truly honourable which the world looks upon with
scorn, as mean and contemptible. The office of the ministry is an office to be magnified.
Ministers are ambassadors for Christ, and stewards of the mysteries of God, and
for their work's sake are to be esteemed highly in love. - My office; tēn
diakonian mou - my ministry, my service, not my lordship and
dominion. It was not the dignity and power, but the duty and work, of an
apostle, that Paul was so much in love with. Now two things he exhorts the
Gentiles to, with reference to the rejected Jews: -
[1.] To have a respect for the Jews, notwithstanding,
and to desire their conversion. This is intimated in the prospect he gives them
of the advantage that would accrue to the church by their conversion, Rom_11:12, Rom_11:15.
It would be as life from the dead; and therefore they must not insult and
triumph over those poor Jews, but rather pity them, and desire their welfare,
and long for the receiving of them in again.
[2.] To take heed to themselves, lest they should
stumble and fall, as they Jews had done, Rom_11:17-22.
Here observe,
First, The privilege which the Gentiles had by being taken
into the church. They were grafted in (Rom_11:17),
as a branch of a wild olive into a good olive, which is contrary to the way and
custom of the husbandman, who grafts the good olive into the bad; but those
that God grafts into the church he finds wild and barren, and good for nothing.
Men graft to mend the tree; but God grafts to mend the branch. 1. The church of
God is an olive-tree, flourishing and fruitful as an olive (Psa_52:8; Hos_14:6),
the fruit useful for the honour both of God and man, Jdg_9:9. 2. Those that are out of the church are as wild
olive-trees, not only useless, but what they do produce is sour and unsavoury: Wild
by nature, Rom_11:24. This was the
state of the poor Gentiles, that wanted church privileges, and in respect of
real sanctification; and it is the natural state of every one of us, to be wild
by nature. 3. Conversion is the grafting in of wild branches into the good
olive. We must be cut off from the old stock, and be brought into union with a
new root. 4. Those that are grafted into the good olive-tree partake of the
root and fatness of the olive. It is applicable to a saving union with Christ;
all that are by a lively faith grafted into Christ partake of him as the
branches of the root - receive from his fulness. But it is here spoken of a
visible church-membership, from which the Jews were as branches broken off; and
so the Gentiles were grafted in, autois - among those that
continued, or in the room of those that were broken off. The Gentiles, being
grafted into the church, partake of the same privileges that the Jews did, the
root and fatness. The olive-tree is the visible church (called so Jer_11:16); the root of this tree was Abraham,
not the root of communication, so Christ only is the root, but the root of
administration, he being the first with whom the covenant was so solemnly made.
Now the believing Gentiles partake of this root: he also is a son of Abraham
(Luk_19:9), the blessing of Abraham
comes upon the Gentiles (Gal_3:14),
the same fatness of the olive-tree, the same for substance, special protection,
lively oracles, means of salvation, a standing ministry, instituted ordinances;
and, among the rest, the visible church-membership of their infant seed, which
was part of the fatness of the olive-tree that the Jews had, and cannot be
imagined to be denied to the Gentiles.
Secondly, A caution not to abuse these privileges. 1. “Be not
proud (Rom_11:18): Boast not against
the branches. Do not therefore trample upon the Jews as a reprobate people,
nor insult over those that are broken off, much less over those that do
continue.” Grace is given, not to make us proud, but to make us thankful. The
law of faith excludes all boasting either of ourselves or against others. “Do
not say (Rom_11:19): They were
broken off that I might be grafted in; that is, do not think that thou
didst merit more at the hand of God than they, or didst stand higher in his
favour.” “But remember, thou bearest not the root, but the root thee.
Though thou art grafted in, thou art still but a branch borne by the root; nay,
and an engrafted branch, brought into the good olive contrary to nature
(Rom_11:24), not free-born, but by an
act of grace enfranchised and naturalized. Abraham, the root of the Jewish
church, is not beholden to thee; but thou art greatly obliged to him, as the
trustee of the covenant and the father of many nations. Therefore, if thou
boast, know (this word must be supplied to clear the sense) thou bearest
not the root but the root thee.” 2. “Be not secure (Rom_11:20): Be not high-minded, but fear.
Be not too confident of your own strength and standing.” A holy fear is an
excellent preservative against high-mindedness: happy is the man that thus
feareth always. We need not fear but God will be true to his word; all the
danger is lest we be false to ours. Let us therefore fear, Heb_4:1. The church of Rome now boasts of a
patent of perpetual preservation; but the apostle here, in his epistle to that
church when she was in her infancy and integrity, enters an express caveat
against that boast, and all claims of that kind. - Fear what? “Why fear
lest thou commit a forfeiture as they have done, lest thou lose the privileges
thou now enjoyest, as they have lost theirs.” The evils that befall others
should be warnings to us. Go (saith God to Jerusalem Jer_7:12), and see what I did to Shiloh;
so now, let all the churches of God go and see what he did to Jerusalem, and
what is become of the day of their visitation, that we may hear and fear, and
take heed of Jerusalem's sin. The patent which churches have of their
privileges is not for a certain term, nor entailed upon them and their heirs;
but it runs as long as they carry themselves well, and no longer. Consider,
(1.) “How they were broken off. It was not undeservedly, by an act of absolute
sovereignty and prerogative, but because of unbelief.” It seems, then,
it is possible for churches that have long stood by faith to fall into such a
state of infidelity as may be their ruin. Their unbelief did not only provoke
God to cut them off, but they did by this cut themselves off; it was not only
the meritorious, but the formal cause of their separation. “Now, thou art
liable to the same infirmity and corruption that they fell by.” Further
observe, They were natural branches (Rom_11:21),
not only interested in Abraham's covenant, but descending from Abraham's loins,
and so born upon the premises, and thence had a kind of tenant-right: yet, when
they sunk into unbelief, God did not spare them. Prescription, long usage, the
faithfulness of their ancestors, would not secure them. It was in vain to
plead, though they insisted much upon it, that they were Abraham's seed, Mat_3:9; Joh_8:33.
It is true they were the husbandmen to whom the vineyard was first let out;
but, when they forfeited it, it was justly taken from them, Mat_21:41, Mat_21:43.
This is called here severity, Rom_11:22.
God laid righteousness to the line and judgment to the plummet, and dealt with
them according to their sins. Severity is a word that sounds harshly; and I do
not remember that it is any where else in scripture ascribed to God; and it is
here applied to the unchurching of the Jews. God is most severe towards those
that have been in profession nearest to him, if they rebel against him, Amo_3:2. Patience and privileges abused turn to
the greatest wrath. Of all judgments, spiritual judgments are the sorest; for
of these he is here speaking, Rom_11:8.
(2.) “How thou standest, thou that art engrafted in.” He speaks to the Gentile
churches in general, though perhaps tacitly reflecting on some particular
person, who might have expressed some such pride and triumph in the Jews'
rejection. “Consider then,” [1.] “By what means thou standest: By faith,
which is a depending grace, and fetches in strength from heaven. Thou dost not
stand in any strength of thy own, of which thou mightest be confident: thou art
no more than the free grace of God makes thee, and his grace is his own, which
he gives or withholds at pleasure. That which ruined them was unbelief, and by
faith thou standest; therefore thou hast no faster hold than they had, thou
standest on no firmer foundation than they did.” [2.] “On what terms (Rom_11:22): Towards thee goodness, if thou
continue in his goodness, that is, continue in a dependence upon and
compliance with the free grace of God, the want of which it was that ruined the
Jews - if thou be careful to keep up thine interest in the divine favour, by
being continually careful to please God and fearful of offending him.” The sum
of our duty, the condition of our happiness, is to keep ourselves in the love
of God. Fear the Lord and his goodness. Hos_3:5.
III. Another thing that qualified this doctrine of the
Jews' rejection is that, though for the present they are cast off, yet the
rejection is not final; but, when the fulness of time is come, they will be
taken in again. They are not cast off for ever, but mercy is remembered in the
midst of wrath. Let us observe,
1. How this conversion of the Jews is here described.
(1.) It is said to be their fulness (Rom_11:12),
that is, the addition of them to the church, the filling up again of that place
which became vacant by their rejection. This would be the enriching of the
world (that is, the church in the world) with a great deal of light and
strength and beauty. (2.) It is called the receiving of them. The conversion of
a soul is the receiving of that soul, so the conversion of a nation. They shall
be received into favour, into the church, into the love of Christ, whose arms
are stretched out for the receiving of all those that will come to him. And this
will be as life from the dead - so strange and surprising, and yet
withal so welcome and acceptable. The conversion of the Jews will bring great
joy to the church. See Luk_15:32, He
was dead, and is alive; and therefore it was meet we should make merry
and be glad. (3.) It is called the grafting of them in again (Rom_11:23), into the church, from which they had
been broken off. That which is grafted in receives sap and virtue from the
root; so does a soul that is truly grafted into the church receive life, and
strength, and grace from Christ the quickening root. They shall be grafted
into their own olive-tree (Rom_11:24);
that is, into the church of which they had formerly been the most eminent and
conspicuous members, to retrieve those privileges of visible church-membership
which they had so long enjoyed, but have now sinned away and forfeited by their
unbelief. (4.) It is called the saving of all Israel, Rom_11:26. True conversion may well be called
salvation; it is salvation begun. See Act_2:47.
The adding of them to the church is the saving of them: tous sōzōmenous,
in the present tense, are saved. When conversion-work goes on,
salvation-work goes on.
2. What it is grounded upon, and what reason we have to
look for it.
(1.) Because of the holiness of the first-fruits and
the root, Rom_11:16. Some by the
first-fruits understand those of the Jews that were already converted to the
faith of Christ and received into the church, who were as the first-fruits
dedicated to God, as earnests of a more plentiful and sanctified harvest. A
good beginning promises a good ending. Why may we not suppose that others may
be savingly wrought upon as well as those who are already brought in? Others by
the first-fruits understand the same with the root, namely, the patriarchs,
Abraham, Isaac, and Jacob, from whom the Jews descended, and with whom, as the
prime trustees, the covenant was deposited: and so they were the root of the
Jews, not only as a people, but as a church. Now, if they were holy, which is
not meant so much of inherent as of federal holiness - if they were in the
church and in the covenant - then we have reason to conclude that God hath a
kindness for the lump - the body of that people; and for the branches
- the particular members of it. The Jews are in a sense a holy nation (Exo_19:6), being descended from holy parents.
Now it cannot be imagined that such a holy nation should be totally and finally
cast off. This proves that the seed of believers, as such, are within the pale
of the visible church, and within the verge of the covenant, till they do, by
their unbelief, throw themselves out; for, if the root be holy, so are the
branches. Though real qualifications are not propagated, yet relative
privileges are. Though a wise man does not beget a wise man, yet a free man
begets a free man. Though grace does not run in the blood, yet external
privileges do (till they are forfeited), even to a thousand generations. Look
how they will answer it another day that cut off the entail, by turning the
seed of the faithful out of the church, and so not allowing the blessing of
Abraham to come upon the Gentiles. The Jewish branches are reckoned holy,
because the root was so. This is expressed more plainly (Rom_11:28): They are beloved for the fathers'
sakes. In this love to the fathers the first foundation of their
church-state was laid (Deu_4:37): Because
he loved they fathers, therefore he chose their seed after them. And the
same love would revive their privileges, for still the ancient loving-kindness
is remembered; they are beloved for the fathers' sakes. It is God's
usual method of grace. Kindness to the children for the father's sake is
therefore called the kindness of God, 2Sa_9:3,
2Sa_9:7. Though, as concerning the
gospel (namely, in the present dispensation of it), they are enemies to it for
your sakes, that is, for the sake of the Gentiles, against whom they have
such an antipathy; yet, when God's time shall come, this will wear off, and
God's love to their fathers will be remembered. See a promise that points at
this, Lev_26:42. The iniquity of the
fathers is visited but to the third and fourth generation; but there is mercy
kept for thousands. Many fare the better for the sake of their godly ancestors.
It is upon this account that the church is called their own olive-tree.
Long it had been their own peculiar, which is some encouragement to us to hope
that there may be room for them in it again, for old acquaintance-sake. That
which hath been may be again. Though particular persons and generations wear
off in unbelief, yet there having been a national church-membership, though for
the present suspended, we may expect that it will be revived.
(2.) Because of the power of God (Rom_11:23): God is able to graft them in
again. The conversion of souls is a work of almighty power; and when they
seem most hardened, and blinded, and obstinate, our comfort is that God is able
to work a change, able to graft those in that have been long cast out and withered.
When the house is kept by the strong man armed, with all his force, yet God is
stronger than he, and is able to dispossess him. The condition of their
restoration is faith: If they abide not still in unbelief. So that
nothing is to be done but to remove that unbelief that is the great obstacle;
and God is able to take that away, though nothing less than an almighty power
will do it, the same power that raised up Christ from the dead, Eph_1:19, Eph_1:20.
Otherwise, can these dry bones live?
(3.) Because of the grace of God manifested to the
Gentiles. Those that have themselves experienced the grace of God, preventing,
distinguishing grace, may thence take encouragement to hope well concerning
others. This is his argument (Rom_11:24):
“If thou wast grafted into a good olive, that was wild by nature, much more
shall these that were the natural branches, and may therefore be presumed
somewhat nearer to the divine acceptance.” This is a suggestion very proper to
check the insolence of those Gentile Christians that looked with disdain and
triumph upon the condition of the rejected Jews, and trampled upon them; as if
he had said, “Their condition, bad as it is, is not so bad as yours was before
your conversion; and therefore why may it not be made as good as yours is?”
This is his argument (Rom_11:30, Rom_11:31): As you in times past have not,
etc. It is good for those that have found mercy with God to be often thinking
what they were in time past, and how they obtained that mercy. This would help
to soften our censures of those that still continue in unbelief, and quicken
our prayers for them. He argues further from the occasion of the Gentiles'
call, that is, the unbelief of the Jews; thence it took rise: “You have
obtained mercy through their unbelief; much more shall they obtain mercy
through your mercy. If the putting out of their candle was the lighting of
yours, by that power of God which brings good out of evil, much more shall the
continued light of your candle, when God's time shall come, be a means of
lighting theirs again.” “That through your mercy they might obtain mercy,
that is, that they may be beholden to you, as you have been to them.” He takes
it for granted that the believing Gentiles would do their utmost endeavour to
work upon the Jews - that, when God had persuaded Japhet, Japhet would be
labouring to persuade Shem. True grace hates monopolies. Those that have found
mercy themselves should endeavour that through their mercy others also may
obtain mercy.
(4.) Because of the promises and prophecies of the Old
Testament, which point at this. He quotes a very remarkable one, Rom_11:26, from Isa_59:20,
Isa_59:21. Where we may observe, [1.]
The coming of Christ promised: There shall come out of Zion the deliverer.
Jesus Christ is the great deliverer, which supposes mankind in a state of
misery and danger. In Isaiah it is, the Redeemer shall come to Zion.
There he is called the Redeemer; here the deliverer; he delivers in a way of
redemption, by a price. There he is said to come to Zion, because when the
prophet prophesied he was yet to come into the world, and Zion was his first
head-quarters. Thither he came, there he took up his residence: but, when the
apostle wrote this, he had come, he had been in Zion; and he is speaking of the
fruits of his appearing, which shall come out of Zion; thence, as from
the spring, issued forth those streams of living water which in the everlasting
gospel watered the nations. Out of Zion went forth the law, Isa_2:3. Compare Luk_24:47.
[2.] The end and purpose of this coming: He shall turn away ungodliness from
Jacob. Christ's errand into the world was to turn away ungodliness, to turn
away the guilt by the purchase of pardoning mercy, and to turn away the power
by the pouring out of renewing grace, to save his people from their sins (Mat_1:21), to separate between us and our sins,
that iniquity might not be our ruin, and that it might not be our ruler.
Especially to turn it away from Jacob, which is that for the sake of which he
quotes the text, as a proof of the great kindness God intended for the seed of
Jacob. What greater kindness could he do them than to turn away ungodliness
from them, to take away that which comes between them and all happiness, take
away sin, and then make way for all good? This is the blessing that Christ was
sent to bestow upon the world, and to tender it to the Jews in the first place
(Act_3:26), to turn people from their
iniquities. In Isaiah it is, The Redeemer shall come to Zion, and unto those
that turn from transgression in Jacob, which shown who in Zion were to have
a share in and to reap benefit by the deliverance promised, those and those
only that leave their sins and turn to God; to them Christ comes as a Redeemer,
but as an avenger to those that persist in impenitence. See Deu_30:2, Deu_30:3.
Those that turn from sin will be owned as the true citizens of Zion (Eph_2:19), the right Jacob, Psa_24:4, Psa_24:6.
Putting both these readings together, we learn that none have an interest in
Christ but those that turn from their sins, nor can any turn from their sins
but by the strength of the grace of Christ. - For this is my covenant with
them - this, that the deliverer shall come to them - this, that my Spirit
shall not depart from them, as it follows, Isa_59:21.
God's gracious intentions concerning Israel were made the matter of a covenant,
which the God that cannot lie could not but be true and faithful to. They were
the children of the covenant, Act_3:25.
The apostle adds, When I shall take away their sins, which some think
refers to Isa_27:9, or only to the
foregoing words, to turn away ungodliness. Pardon of sin is laid as the
foundation of all the blessings of the new covenant (Heb_8:12): For I will be merciful. Now from all this
he infers that certainly God had great mercy in store for that people,
something answerable to the extent of these rich promises: and he proves his
inference (Rom_11:29) by this truth: For
the gifts and callings of God are without repentance. Repentance is
sometimes taken for a change of mind, and so God never repents, for he is in
one mind and who can turn him? Sometimes for a change of way, and that is here
understood, intimating the constancy and unchangeableness of that love of God
which is founded in election. Those gifts and callings are immutable; whom he
so loves, he loves to the end. We find God repenting that he had given man a
being (Gen_6:6, It repented the Lord
that he had made man), and repenting that he had given a man honour and
power (1Sa_15:11, It repenteth me
that I have set up Saul to be king); but we never find God repenting that
he had given a man grace, or effectually called him; those gifts and callings
are without repentance.
Romans
11:33-36
The apostle
having insisted so largely, through the greatest part of this chapter, upon
reconciling the rejection of the Jews with the divine goodness, he concludes
here with the acknowledgment and admiration of the divine wisdom and
sovereignty in all this. Here the apostle does with great affection and awe
adore,
I. The secrecy
of the divine counsels: O the depth! in these proceedings towards the
Jews and Gentiles; or, in general, the whole mystery of the gospel, which we
cannot fully comprehend. - The riches of the wisdom and knowledge of God,
the abundant instances of his wisdom and knowledge in contriving and carrying
on the work of our redemption by Christ, a depth which the angels pry into, 1Pe_1:12. Much more may it puzzle any human
understanding to give an account of the methods, and reasons, and designs, and
compass of it. Paul was as well acquainted with the mysteries of the kingdom of
God as ever any mere man was; and yet he confesses himself at a loss in the
contemplation, and, despairing to find the bottom, he humbly sits down at the
brink, and adores the depth. Those that know most in this state of imperfection
cannot but be most sensible of their own weakness and short-sightedness, and
that after all their researches, and all their attainments in those researches,
while they are here they cannot order their speech by reason of darkness.
Praise is silent to thee, Psa_65:1. - The
depth of the riches. Men's riches of all kinds are shallow, you may soon
see the bottom; but God's riches are deep (Psa_36:6):
Thy judgments are a great deep. There is not only depth in the divine
counsels, but riches too, which denotes an abundance of that which is precious
and valuable, so complete are the dimensions of the divine counsels; they have
not only depth and height, but breadth and length (Eph_3:18), and that passing knowledge, v. 19. - Riches
of the wisdom and knowledge of God. His seeing all things by one clear, and
certain, and infallible view - all things that are, or ever were, or ever shall
be, - that all is naked and open before him: there is his knowledge. His ruling
and ordering all things, directing and disposing them to his own glory, and
bringing about his own purposes and counsels in all; this is his wisdom.
And the vast extent of both these is such a depth as is past our fathoming, and
we may soon lose ourselves in the contemplation of them. Such knowledge is
too wonderful for me, Psa_139:6.
Compare Psa_139:17, Psa_139:18. - How unsearchable are his
judgments! that is, his counsels and purposes: and his ways, that
is, the execution of these counsels and purposes. We know not what he designs.
When the wheels are set in motion, and Providence has begun to work, yet we
know not what he has in view; it is past finding out. This does not only
overturn all our positive conclusions about the divine counsels, but it also
checks all our curious enquiries. Secret things belong not to us, Deu_29:29. God's way is in the sea, Psa_77:19. Compare Job_23:8,
Job_23:9; Psa_97:2.
What he does we know not now, Joh_13:7.
We cannot give a reason of God's proceedings, nor by searching find out God.
See Job_5:9; Job_9:10. The judgments of his mouth, and the way of our
duty, blessed be God, are plain and easy, it is a high-way; but the judgments
of his hands, and the ways of his providence, are dark and mysterious, which
therefore we must not pry into, but silently adore and acquiesce in. The
apostle speaks this especially with reference to that strange turn, the casting
off of the Jews and the entertainment of the Gentiles, with a purpose to take
in the Jews again in due time; these were strange proceedings, the choosing of
some, the refusing of others, and neither according to the probabilities of
human conjecture. Even so, Father, because it seemed good in thing eyes. These
are methods unaccountable, concerning which we must say, O the depth! - Past
finding out, anexichniastoi - cannot be traced. God
leaves no prints nor footsteps behind him, does not make a path to shine after
him; but his paths of providence are new every morning. He does not go the same
way so often as to make a track of it. How little a portion is heard of him!
Job_26:14. It follows (Rom_11:34), For who hath known the mind of
the Lord? Is there any creature made of his cabinet-council, or laid, as
Christ was, in the bosom of the Father? Is there any to whom he has imparted
his counsels, or that is able, upon the view of his providences, to know the
way that he takes? There is so vast a distance and disproportion between God
and man, between the Creator and the creature, as for ever excludes the thought
of such an intimacy and familiarity. The apostle makes the same challenge (1Co_2:16): For who hath known the mind of the
Lord? And yet there he adds, But we have the mind of Christ, which
intimates that through Christ true believers, who have his Spirit, know so much
of the mind of God as is necessary to their happiness. He that knew the mind of
the Lord has declared him, Joh_1:18.
And so, though we know not the mind of the Lord, yet, if we have the mind of
Christ, we have enough. The secret of the Lord is with those that fear him,
Psa_25:14. Shall I hide from Abraham
the thing which I do? See Joh_15:15.
- Or who has been his counsellor? He needs no counsellor, for he is
infinitely wise; nor is any creature capable of being his counsellor; this
would be like lighting a candle to the sun. This seems to refer to that
scripture (Isa_40:13, Isa_40:14), Who hath directed the Spirit of
the Lord, or, being his counsellor, hath taught him? With whom took he counsel?
etc. It is the substance of God's challenge to Job concerning the work of
creation (Job 38), and is applicable to all the methods of his providence. It
is nonsense for any man to prescribe to God, or to teach him how to govern the
world.
II. The sovereignty of the divine counsels. In all
these things God acts as a free agent, does what he will, because he will, and
gives not account of any of his matters (Job_23:13;
Job_33:13), and yet there is no
unrighteousness with him. To clear which,
1. He challenges any to prove God a debtor to him (Rom_11:35): Who hath first given to him?
Who is there of all the creatures that can prove God is beholden to him?
Whatever we do for him, or devote to him, it must be with that acknowledgment,
which is for ever a bar to such demands (1Ch_29:14):
Of thine own we have given thee. All the duties we can perform are not
requitals, but rather restitutions. If any can prove that God is his debtor,
the apostle here stands bound for the payment, and proclaims, in God's name,
that payment is ready: It shall be recompensed to him again. It is
certain God will let nobody lose by him; but never any one yet durst make a
demand of this kind, or attempt to prove it. This is here suggested, (1.) To
silence the clamours of the Jews. When God took away their visible
church-privileges from them, he did but take his own: and may he not do what he
will with his own - give or withhold his grace where and when he pleases? (2.)
To silence the insultings of the Gentiles. When God sent the gospel among them,
and gave so many of them grace and wisdom to accept of it, it was not because
he owed them so much favour, or that they could challenge it as a debt, but of
his own good pleasure.
2. He resolves all into the sovereignty of God (Rom_11:36): For of him, and through him, and
to him, are all things, that is, God is all in all. All things in heaven
and earth (especially those things which relate to our salvation, the things
which belong to our peace) are of him by way of creation, through him by way of
providential influence, that they may be to him in their final tendency and
result. Of God as the spring and fountain of all, through Christ, God - man, as
the conveyance, to God as the ultimate end. These three include, in general,
all God's causal relations to his creatures: of him as the first efficient
cause, through him as the supreme directing cause, to him as the ultimate final
cause; for the Lord hath made all for himself, Rev_4:11.
If all be of him and through him, there is all the reason in the world that all
should be to him and for him. It is a necessary circulation; if the rivers
received their waters from the sea, they return them to the sea again, Ecc_1:7. To do all to the glory of God is to
make a virtue of necessity; for all shall in the end be to him, whether we will
or no. And so he concludes with a short doxology: To whom be glory for ever,
Amen. God's universal agency as the first cause, the sovereign ruler, and
the last end, ought to be the matter of our adoration. Thus all his works do
praise him objectively; but his saints do bless him actively; they hand that
praise to him which all the creatures do minister matter for, Psa_145:10. Paul had been discoursing at large
of the counsels of God concerning man, sifting the point with a great deal of
accuracy; but, after all, he concludes with the acknowledgment of the divine
sovereignty, as that into which all these things must be ultimately resolved,
and in which alone the mind can safely and sweetly rest. This is, if not the
scholastic way, yet the Christian way, of disputation. Whatever are the
premises, let god's glory be the conclusion; especially when we come to talk of
the divine counsels and actings, it is best for us to turn our arguments into
awful and serious adorations. The glorified saints, that see furthest into
these mysteries, never dispute, but praise to eternity.
Romans
12:1-21
We may observe
here, according to the scheme mentioned in the contents, the apostle's
exhortations,
I. Concerning
our duty to God, We see what is godliness.
1. It is to
surrender ourselves to God, and so to lay a good foundation. We must first give
our own selves unto the Lord, 2Co_8:5.
This is here pressed as the spring of all duty and obedience, Rom_12:1, Rom_12:2.
Man consists of body and soul, Gen_2:7;
Ecc_12:7.
(1.) The body
must be presented to him, Rom_12:1. The
body is for the Lord, and the Lord for the body, 1Co_6:13, 1Co_6:14.
The exhortation is here introduced very pathetically: I beseech you,
brethren. Though he was a great apostle, yet he calls the meanest
Christians brethren, a term of affection and concern. He uses entreaty;
this is the gospel way: As though God did beseech you by us, 2Co_5:20. Though he might with authority
command, yet for love's sake he rather beseeches, Phm_1:8,
Phm_1:9. The poor useth entreaty,
Pro_18:23. This is to insinuate the
exhortation, that it might come with the more pleasing power. Many are sooner
wrought upon if they be accosted kindly, are more easily led than driven. Now
observe,
[1.] The duty
pressed - to present our bodies a living sacrifice, alluding to the
sacrifices under the law, which were presented or set before God at the altar,
ready to be offered to him. Your bodies - your whole selves; so
expressed because under the law the bodies of beasts were offered in sacrifice,
1Co_6:20. Our bodies and spirits are
intended. The offering was sacrificed by the priest, but presented by the offerer,
who transferred to God all his right, title, and interest in it, by laying his
hand on the head of it. Sacrifice is here taken for whatsoever is by God's own
appointment dedicated to himself; see 1Pe_2:5.
We are temple, priest, and sacrifice, as Christ was in his peculiar
sacrificing. There were sacrifices of atonement and sacrifices of
acknowledgment. Christ, who was once offered to bear the sins of many, is the
only sacrifice of atonement; but our persons and performances, tendered to God
through Christ our priest, are as sacrifices of acknowledgment to the honour of
God. Presenting them denotes a voluntary act, done by virtue of that absolute
despotic power which the will has over the body and all the members of it. It
must be a free-will offering. Your bodies; not your beasts. Those legal
offerings, as they had their power from Christ, so they had their period in
Christ. The presenting of the body to God implies not only the avoiding of the
sins that are committed with or against the body, but the using of the body as
a servant of the soul in the service of God. It is to glorify God with our
bodies (1Co_6:20), to engage our
bodies in the duties of immediate worship, and in a diligent attendance to our
particular callings, and be willing to suffer for God with our bodies, when we
are called to it. It is to yield the members of our bodies as instruments of
righteousness, Rom_6:13. Though bodily
exercise alone profits little, yet in its place it is a proof and product of
the dedication of our souls to God. First, Present them a living
sacrifice; not killed, as the sacrifices under the law. A Christian makes his
body a sacrifice to God, though he does not give it to be burned. A body
sincerely devoted to God is a living sacrifice. A living sacrifice, by way of
allusion - that which was dead of itself might not be eaten, much less
sacrificed, Deu_14:21; and by ways of
opposition - “The sacrifice was to be slain, but you may be sacrificed, and yet
live on” - an unbloody sacrifice. The barbarous heathen sacrificed their
children to their idol-gods, not living, but slain sacrifices: but God will
have mercy, and not such sacrifice, though life is forfeited to him. A living
sacrifice, that is, inspired with the spiritual life of the soul. It is Christ
living in the soul by faith that makes the body a living sacrifice, Gal_2:20. Holy love kindles the sacrifices, puts
life into the duties; see Rom_6:13. Alive,
that is, to God, Rom_6:11. Secondly,
They must be holy. There is a relative holiness in every sacrifice, as dedicated
to God. But, besides this, there must be that real holiness which consists in
an entire rectitude of heart and life, by which we are conformed in both to the
nature and will of God: even our bodies must not be made the instruments of sin
and uncleanness, but set apart for God, and put to holy uses, as the vessels of
the tabernacle were holy, being devoted to God's service. It is the soul that
is the proper subject of holiness; but a sanctified soul communicates a
holiness to the body it actuates and animates. That is holy which is according
to the will of God; when the bodily actions are no, the body is holy. They are
the temples of the Holy Ghost, 1Co_6:19.
Possess the body in sanctification, 1Th_4:4,
1Th_4:5.
[2.] The
arguments to enforce this, which are three: - First, Consider the
mercies of God: I beseech you by the mercies of God. An affectionate
obtestation, and which should melt us into a compliance: dia tōn oiktirmōn tou Theou. This is an argument most
sweetly cogent. There is the mercy that is in God and the mercy that is from
God-mercy in the spring and mercy in the streams: both are included here; but
especially gospel-mercies (mentioned ch. 11), the transferring of what the Jews
forfeited and lost by their unbelief unto us Gentiles (Eph_3:4-6): the sure mercies of David, Isa_55:3. God is a merciful God, therefore let
us present our bodies to him; he will be sure to use them kindly, and knows how
to consider the frames of them, for he is of infinite compassion. We receive
from him every day the fruits of his mercy, particularly mercy to our bodies:
he made them, he maintains them, he bought them, he has put a great dignity
upon them. It is of the Lord's mercies that we are not consumed, that our souls
are held in life; and the greatest mercy of all is that Christ hath made not
his body only, but his soul, an offering for sin, that he gave himself for us
and gives himself to us. Now surely we cannot but be studying what we shall
render to the Lord for all this. And what shall we render? Let us render
ourselves as an acknowledgment of all these favours - all we are, all we have,
all we can do; and, after all, it is but very poor returns for very rich
receivings: and yet, because it is what we have, Secondly, It is acceptable
to God. The great end we should all labour after is to be accepted of the
Lord (2Co_5:9), to have him
well-pleased with our persons and performances. Now these living sacrifices are
acceptable to God; while the sacrifices of the wicked, though fat and costly,
are an abomination to the Lord. It is God's great condescension that he will
vouchsafe to accept of any thing in us; and we can desire no more to make us
happy; and, if the presenting of ourselves will but please him, we may easily conclude
that we cannot bestow ourselves better. Thirdly, It is our reasonable
service. There is an act of reason in it; for it is the soul that presents
the body. Blind devotion, that has ignorance for the mother and nurse of it, is
fit to be paid only to those dunghill-gods that have eyes and see not. Our God
must be served in the spirit and with the understanding. There is all the
reason in the world for it, and no good reason can possibly be produced against
it. Come now, and let us reason together, Isa_1:18.
God does not impose upon us any thing hard or unreasonable, but that which is
altogether agreeable to the principles of right reason. Tēn logikēn
latreian humōn - your service according to the word; so it may be
read. The word of God does not leave out the body in holy worship. That service
only is acceptable to God which is according to the written word. It must be
gospel worship, spiritual worship. That is a reasonable service which we are
able and ready to give a reason for, in which we understand ourselves. God
deals with us as with rational creatures, and will have us so to deal with him.
Thus must the body be presented to God.
(2.) The mind must be renewed for him. This is pressed
(Rom_12:2): “Be you transformed by
the renewing of your mind; see to it that there be a saving change wrought
in you, and that it be carried on.” Conversion and sanctification are the
renewing of the mind, a change not of the substance, but of the qualities of
the soul. It is the same with making a new heart and a new spirit - new
dispositions and inclinations, new sympathies and antipathies; the
understanding enlightened, the conscience softened, the thoughts rectified; the
will bowed to the will of God, and the affections made spiritual and heavenly:
so that the man is not what he was - old things are passed away, all things are
become new; he acts from new principles, by new rules, with new designs. The
mind is the acting ruling part of us; so that the renewing of the mind is the
renewing of the whole man, for out of it are the issues of life, Pro_4:23. The progress of sanctification, dying
to sin more and more and living to righteousness more and more, is the carrying
on of this renewing work, till it be perfected in glory. This is called the transforming
of us; it is like putting on a new shape and figure. Mateamorphousthe - Be
you metamorphosed. The transfiguration of Christ is expressed by this word
(Mat_17:2), when he put on a heavenly
glory, which made his face to shine like the sun; and the same word is used 2Co_3:18, where we are said to be changed
into the same image from glory to glory. This transformation is here
pressed as a duty; not that we can work such a change ourselves: we could as
soon make a new world as make a new heart by any power of our own; it is God's
work, Eze_11:19; Eze_36:26, Eze_36:27.
But be you transformed, that is, “use the means which God hath appointed
and ordained for it.” It is God that turns us, and then we are turned; but we
must frame our doings to turn, Hos_5:4.
“Lay your souls under the changing transforming influences of the blessed
Spirit; seek unto God for grace in the use of all the means of grace.” Though
the new man be created of God, yet we must put it on (Eph_4:24), and be pressing forward towards
perfection. Now in this verse we may further observe,
[1.] What is the great enemy to this renewing, which we
must avoid; and that is, conformity to this world: Be not conformed to this
world. All the disciples and followers of the Lord Jesus must be
nonconformists to this world. Mē suschēmatizesthe - Do not fashion
yourselves according to the world. We must not conform to the things of the
world; they are mutable, and the fashion of them is passing away. Do not
conform either to the lusts of the flesh or the lusts of the eye. We must not
conform to the men of the world, of that world which lies in wickedness, not
walk according to the course of this world (Eph_2:2);
that is, we must not follow a multitude to do evil, Exo_23:2.
If sinners entice us, we must not consent to them, but in our places witness
against them. Nay, even in things indifferent, and which are not in themselves
sinful, we must so far not conform to the custom and way of the world as not to
act by the world's dictates as our chief rule, nor to aim at the world's
favours as our highest end. True Christianity consists much in a sober
singularity. Yet we must take heed of the extreme of affected rudeness and
moroseness, which some run into. In civil things, the light of nature and the
custom of nations are intended for our guidance; and the rule of the gospel in
those cases is a rule of direction, not a rule of contrariety.
[2.] What is the great effect of this renewing, which
we must labour after: That you may prove what is that good, and acceptable,
and perfect will of God. by the will of God here we are to understand his
revealed will concerning our duty, what the Lord our God requires of us. This
is the will of God in general, even our sanctification, that will which we pray
may be done by us as it is done by the angels; especially his will as it is
revealed in the New Testament, where he hath in these last days spoken to us by
his Son. First, The will of God is good, and acceptable, and perfect;
three excellent properties of a law. It is good (Mic_6:8);
it is exactly consonant to the eternal reason of good and evil. It is good in
itself. It is good for us. Some think the evangelical law is here called good,
in distinction from the ceremonial law, which consisted of statutes that
were not good, Eze_20:25. It is acceptable,
it is pleasing to God; that and that only is so which is prescribed by him. The
only way to attain his favour as the end is to conform to his will as the rule.
It is perfect, to which nothing can be added. The revealed will of God is a
sufficient rule of faith and practice, containing all things which tend to the
perfection of the man of God, to furnish us thoroughly to every good work, 2Ti_3:16, 2Ti_3:17.
Secondly, That it concerns Christians to prove what is that will of God
which is good, and acceptable, and perfect; that is, to know it with judgment
and approbation, to know it experimentally, to know the excellency of the will
of God by the experience of a conformity to it. It is to approve things that
are excellent (Phi_1:10); it is dokimazein
(the same word that is used here) to try things that differ, in doubtful
cases readily to apprehend what the will of God is and to close in with it. It
is to be of quick understanding in the fear of the Lord, Isa_11:3. Thirdly, That those are best
able to prove what is the good, and acceptable, and perfect will of God, who
are transformed by the renewing of their mind. A living principle of grace is
in the soul, as far as it prevails, an unbiassed unprejudiced judgment
concerning the things of God. It disposes the soul to receive and entertain the
revelations of the divine will. The promise is (Joh_7:17),
If any man will do his will, he shall know of the doctrine. A good wit
can dispute and distinguish about the will of God; while an honest, humble
heart, that has spiritual senses exercised, and is delivered into the mould of
the word, loves it, and practises it, and has the relish and savour of it. Thus
to be godly is to surrender ourselves to God.
2. When this is done, to serve him in all manner of
gospel obedience. Some hints of this we have here (Rom_12:11,
Rom_12:12), Serving the Lord.
Wherefore do we present ourselves to him, but that we may serve him? Act_27:23, Whose I am; and then it
follows, whom I serve. To be religious is to serve God. How? (1.) We
must make a business of it, and not be slothful in that business. Not
slothful in business. There is the business of the world, that of our
particular calling, in which we must not be slothful, 1Th_4:11. But this seems to be meant of the
business of serving the Lord, our Father's business, Luk_2:49. Those that would approve themselves Christians
indeed must make religion their business - must choose it, and learn it, and
give themselves to it; they must love it, and employ themselves in it, and
abide by it, as their great and main business. And, having made it our
business, we must not be slothful in it: not desire our own ease, and consult
that, when it comes in competition with our duty. We must not drive on slowly
in religion. Slothful servants will be reckoned with us wicked servants. (2.)
We must be fervent in spirit, serving the Lord. God must be served with
the spirit (Rom_1:9; Joh_4:24), under the influences of the Holy
Spirit. Whatever we do in religion it is pleasing to God no further than it is
done with our spirits wrought upon by the Spirit of God. And there must be
fervency in the spirit - a holy zeal, and warmth, and ardency of affection in
all we do, as those that love God not only with the heart and soul, but with
all our hearts, and with all our souls. This is the holy fire that kindles the
sacrifice, and carries it up to heaven, an offering of a sweet-smelling savour.
- Serving the Lord. Tō kairō douleuntes (so some copies read
it), serving the time, that is, improving your opportunities and making
the best of them, complying with the present seasons of grace. (3.) Rejoicing
in hope. God is worshipped and honoured by our hope and trust in him,
especially when we rejoice in that hope, take a complacency in that confidence,
which argues a great assurance of the reality and a great esteem of the
excellency of the good hoped for. (4.) Patient in tribulation. Thus also
God is served, not only by working for him when he calls us to work, but by
sitting still quietly when he calls us to suffer. Patience for God's sake, and
with an eye to his will and glory, is true piety. Observe, Those that rejoice
in hope are likely to be patient in tribulation. It is a believing prospect of
the joy set before us that bears up the spirit under all outward pressure. (5.)
Continuing instant in prayer. Prayer is a friend to hope and patience,
and we do in it serve the Lord. Proskarterountes. It signifies both
fervency and perseverance in prayer. We should not be cold in the duty, nor
soon weary of it, Luk_18:1; 1Th_5:17; Eph_6:18;
Col_4:2. This is our duty which
immediately respects God.
II. Concerning our duty which respects ourselves; this
is sobriety.
1. A sober opinion of ourselves, Rom_12:3. It is ushered in with a solemn
preface: I say, through the grace given unto me: the grace f wisdom, by
which he understood the necessity and excellency of this duty; the grace of
apostleship, by which he had authority to press and enjoin it. “I say it, who
am commissioned to say it, in God's name. I say it, and it is not for you to
gainsay it.” It is said to every one of us, one as well as another. Pride is a
sin that is bred in the bone of all of us, and we have therefore each of us
need to be cautioned and armed against it. - Not to think of himself more
highly than he ought to think. We must take heed of having too great an
opinion of ourselves, or putting too high a valuation upon our own judgments,
abilities, persons, performances. We must not be self-conceited, nor esteem too
much our own wisdom and other attainments, not think ourselves to be something,
Gal_6:3. There is a high thought of
ourselves which we may and must have to think ourselves too good to be the
slaves of sin and drudges to this world. But, on the other hand, we should
think soberly, that is, we must have a low and modest opinion of ourselves and
our own abilities, our gifts and graces, according to what we have received
from God, and not otherwise. We must not be confident and hot in matters of
doubtful disputation; not stretch ourselves beyond our line; not judge and
censure those that differ from us; not desire to make a fair show in the flesh.
These and the like are the fruits of a sober opinion of ourselves. The words
will bear yet another sense agreeable enough. Of himself is not in the
original; therefore it may be read, That no man be wise above what he ought
to be wise, but be wise unto sobriety. We must not exercise ourselves in
things too high for us (Psa_131:1, Psa_131:2), not intrude into those things which
we have not seen (Col_2:18), those
secret things which belong not to us (Deu_29:29),
not covet to be wise above what is written. There is a knowledge that puffs up,
which reaches after forbidden fruit. We must take heed of this, and labour
after that knowledge which tends to sobriety, to the rectifying of the heart
and the reforming of the life. Some understand it of the sobriety which keeps
us in our own place and station, from intruding into the gifts and offices of
others. See an instance of this sober modest care in the exercise of the
greatest spiritual gifts, 2Co_10:13-15.
To this head refers also that exhortation (Rom_12:16),
Be not wise in your own conceits. It is good to be wise, but it is bad
to think ourselves so; for there is more hope of a fool than of him that is
wise in his own eyes. It was an excellent thing for Moses to have his face
shine and not know it. Now the reasons why we must have such a sober opinion of
ourselves, our own abilities and attainments, are these: -
(1.) Because whatever we have that is good, God hath
dealt it to us; every good and perfect gift comes from above, Jam_1:17. What have we that we have not
received? And, if we have received it, why then do we boast? 1Co_4:7. The best and most useful man in the
world is no more, no better, than what the free grace of God makes him every
day. When we are thinking of ourselves, we must remember to think not how we
attained, as though our might and the power of our hand had gotten us these
gifts; but think how kind God hath been to us, for it is he that gives us power
to do any thing that is good, and in him is all our sufficiency.
(2.) Because God deals out his gifts in a certain
measure: According to the measure of faith. Observe, The measure of spiritual
gifts he calls the measure of faith, for this is the radical grace. What we
have and do that is good is so far right and acceptable as it is founded in
faith, and flows from faith, and no further. Now faith, and other spiritual
gifts with it, are dealt by measure, according as Infinite Wisdom sees meet for
us. Christ had the Spirit given him without measure, Joh_3:34. But the saints have it by measure; see Eph_4:7. Christ, who had gifts without measure,
was meek and lowly; and shall we, that are stinted, be proud and
self-conceited?
(3.) Because God has dealt out gifts to others as well
as to us: Dealt to every man. Had we the monopoly of the Spirit, or a
patent to be sole proprietors of spiritual gifts, there might be some pretence
for this conceitedness of ourselves; but others have their share as well as we.
God is a common Father, and Christ a common root, to all the saints, who all
drive virtue from him; and therefore it ill becomes us to lift up ourselves,
and to despise others, as if we only were the people in favour with heaven, and
wisdom should die with us. This reasoning he illustrates by a comparison taken
from the members of the natural body (as 1Co_12:12;
Eph_4:16): As we have many members
in one body, etc., Rom_12:4, Rom_12:5. Here observe, [1.] All the saints make
up one body in Christ, who is the head of the body, and the common centre of
their unity. Believers lie not in the world as a confused disorderly heap, but
are organized and knit together, as they are united to one common head, and
actuated and animated by one common Spirit. [2.] Particular believers are
members of this body, constituent parts, which speak them less than the whole,
and in relation to the whole, deriving life and spirits from the head. Some
members in the body are bigger and more useful than others, and each receives
spirits from the head according to its proportion. if the little finger should
receive as much nourishment as the leg, how unseemly and prejudicial would it
be! We must remember that we are not the whole; we think above what is meet if
we think so; we are but parts and members. [3.] All the members have not the
same office (Rom_12:4), but each
hath its respective place and work assigned it. The office of the eye is to
see, the office of the hand is to work, etc. So in the mystical body, some are
qualified for, and called to, one sort of work; others are, in like manner,
fitted for, and called to, another sort of work. Magistrates, ministers,
people, in a Christian commonwealth, have their several offices, and must not
intrude one upon another, nor clash in the discharge of their several offices.
[4.] Each member hath its place and office, for the good and benefit of the
whole, and of every other member. We are not only members of Christ, but we are
members one of another, Rom_12:5.
We stand in relation one to another; we are engaged to do all the good we can
one to another, and to act in conjunction for the common benefit. See this
illustrated at large, 1Co_12:14, etc.
Therefore we must not be puffed up with a conceit of our own attainments,
because, whatever we have, as we received it, so we received it not for
ourselves, but for the good of others.
2. A sober use of the gifts that God hath given us. As
we must not on the one hand be proud of our talents, so on the other hand we
must not bury them. Take heed lest, under a pretence of humility and
self-denial, we be slothful in laying out ourselves for the good of others. We
must not say, “I am nothing, therefore I will sit still, and do nothing;” but,
“I am nothing in myself, and therefore I will lay out myself to the utmost in
the strength of the grace of Christ.” He specifies the ecclesiastical offices
appointed in particular churches, in the discharge of which each must study to
do his own duty, for the preserving of order and the promotion of edification
in the church, each knowing his place and fulfilling it. Having then gifts.
The following induction of particulars supplies the sense of this general. Having
gifts, let us use them. Authority and ability for the ministerial work are
the gift of God. - Gifts differing. The immediate design is different,
though the ultimate tendency of all is the same. According to the grace,
Charismata kata tēn charin. The free grace of God is the spring and
original of all the gifts that are given to men. It is grace that appoints the
office, qualifies and inclines the person, works both to will and to do. There
were in the primitive church extraordinary gifts of tongues, of discerning, of
healing; but he speaks here of those that are ordinary. Compare 1Co_12:4; 1Ti_4:14;
1Pe_4:10. Seven particular gifts he
specifies (Rom_12:6-8), which seem to
be meant of so many distinct offices, used by the prudential constitution of
many of the primitive churches, especially the larger. There are two general
ones here expressed by prophesying and ministering, the former the work of the
bishops, the latter the work of the deacons, which were the only two standing
officers, Phi_1:1. But the particular
work belonging to each of these might be, and it should seem was, divided and
allotted by common consent and agreement, that it might be done the more
effectually, because that which is every body's work is nobody's work, and he
despatches his business best that is vir unius negotii - a man of one
business. Thus David sorted the Levites (1Ch_23:4,
1Ch_23:5), and in this wisdom is
profitable to direct. The five latter will therefore be reduced to the two
former.
(1.) Prophecy. Whether prophecy, let us prophesy
according to the proportion of faith. It is not meant of the extraordinary
gifts of foretelling things to come, but the ordinary office of preaching the
word: so prophesying is taken, 1Co_14:1-3,
etc.; 1Co_11:4; 1Th_5:20. The work of the Old Testament prophets
was not only to foretel future things, but to warn the people concerning sin
and duty, and to be their remembrancers concerning that which they knew before.
And thus gospel preachers are prophets, and do indeed, as far as the revelation
of the word goes, foretel things to come. Preaching refers to the eternal
condition of the children of men, points directly at a future state. Now those
that preach the word must do it according to the proportion of faith - kata
tēn analogian tēs pisteōs, that is, [1.] As to the manner of our
prophesying, it must be according to the proportion of the grace of faith. He
had spoken (Rom_12:3) of the measure of
faith dealt to every man. Let him that preaches set all the faith he hath on
work, to impress the truths he preaches upon his own heart in the first place.
As people cannot hear well, so ministers cannot preach well, without faith.
First believe and then speak, Psa_116:10;
2Co_4:13. And we must remember the
proportion of faith - that, though all men have not faith, yet a great many
have besides ourselves; and therefore we must allow others to have a share of
knowledge and ability to instruct, as well as we, even those that in less
things differ from us. “Hast thou faith? Have it to thyself; and do not
make it a ruling rule to others, remembering that thou hast but thy
proportion.” [2.] As to the matter of our prophesying, it must be according to
the proportion of the doctrine of faith, as it is revealed in the holy
scriptures of the Old and New Testament. By this rule of faith the Bereans
tried Paul's preaching, Act_17:11.
Compare Act_26:22; Gal_1:9. There are some staple-truths, as I may
call them, some prima axiomata - first axioms, plainly and uniformly
taught in the scripture, which are the touchstone of preaching, by which
(though we must not despise prophesying) we must prove all things, and
then hold fast that which is good, 1Th_5:20,
1Th_5:21. Truths that are more dark
must be examined by those that are more clear; and then entertained when they
are found to agree and comport with the analogy of faith; for it is certain one
truth can never contradict another. See here what ought to be the great care of
preachers - to preach sound doctrine, according to the form of wholesome words,
Tit_2:8; 2Ti_1:13.
It is not so necessary that the prophesying be according to the proportion of
art, the rules of logic and rhetoric; but it is necessary that it be according
to the proportion of faith: for it is the word of faith that we preach. Now
there are two particular works which he that prophesieth hath to mind-teaching
and exhorting, proper enough to be done by the same person at the same time,
and when he does the one let him mind that, when he does the other let him do
that too as well as he can. If, by agreement between the ministers of a
congregation, this work be divided, either constantly or interchangeably, so
that one teaches and the other exhorts (that is, in our modern dialect, one
expounds and the other preaches), let each do his work according to the proportion
of faith. First, let him that teacheth wait on teaching. Teaching is the
bare explaining and proving of gospel truths, without practical application, as
in the expounding of the scripture. Pastors and teachers are the same
office (Eph_4:11), but the particular
work is somewhat different. Now he that has a faculty of teaching, and has
undertaken that province, let him stick to it. It is a good gift, let him use
it, and give his mind to it. He that teacheth, let him be in his teaching;
so some supply it, Ho didaskōn, en tē didaskalia. Let him be frequent
and constant, and diligent in it; let him abide in that which is his proper
work, and be in it as his element. See 1Ti_4:15,
1Ti_4:16, where it is explained by two
words, en toutois isthi, and epimene autois, be in these
things and continue in them. Secondly, Let him that exhorteth
wait on exhortation. Let him give himself to that. This is the work of
the pastor, as the former of the teacher; to apply gospel truths and rules more
closely to the case and condition of the people, and to press upon them that
which is more practical. Many that are very accurate in teaching may yet be
very cold and unskilful in exhorting; and on the contrary. The one requires a
clearer head, the other a warmer heart. Now where these gifts are evidently
separated (that the one excels in the one and the other in the other) it
conduces to edification to divide the work accordingly; and, whatsoever the
work is that we undertake, let us mind it. To wait on our work is to bestow the
best of our time and thoughts upon it, to lay hold of all opportunities for it,
and to study not only to do it, but to do it well.
(2.) Ministry. If a man hath diakonian - the
office of a deacon, or assistant to the pastor and teacher, let him use
that office well - a churchwarden (suppose), an elder, or an overseer of the
poor; and perhaps there were more put into these offices, and there was more
solemnity in them, and a greater stress of care and business lay upon them in
the primitive churches, than we are now well aware of. It includes all those
offices which concern the ta exō of the church, the outward business
of the house of God. See Neh_11:16.
Serving tables, Act_6:2. Now let
him on whom this care of ministering is devolved attend to it with faithfulness
and diligence; particularly, [1.] He that giveth, let him do it with
simplicity. Those church-officers that were the stewards of the church's
alms, collected money, and distributed it according as the necessities of the
poor were. Let them do it en aplotēti - liberally and
faithfully; not converting what they receive to their own use, nor distributing
it with any sinister design, or with respect of person: not froward and peevish
with the poor, nor seeking pretences to put them by; but with all sincerity and
integrity, having no other intention in it than to glorify God and do good.
Some understand it in general of all almsgiving: He that hath wherewithal, let
him give, and give plentifully and liberally; so the word is translated, 2Co_8:2; 2Co_9:13.
God loves a cheerful bountiful giver. [2.] He that ruleth with diligence.
It should seem, he means those that were assistants to the pastors in
exercising church-discipline, as their eyes, and hands, and mouth, in the
government of the church, or those ministers that in the congregation did
chiefly undertake and apply themselves to this ruling work; for we find those
ruling that laboured in the word and doctrine, 1Ti_5:17.
Now such must do it with diligence. The word denotes both care and industry to discover
what is amiss, to reduce those that go astray, to reprove and admonish those
that have fallen, to keep the church pure. Those must take a great deal of
pains that will approve themselves faithful in the discharge of this trust, and
not let slip any opportunity that may facilitate and advance that work. [3.] He
that showeth mercy with cheerfulness. Some think it is meant in general of
all that in any thing show mercy: Let them be willing to do it, and take a
pleasure in it; God loves a cheerful giver. But it seems to be meant of some
particular church-officers, whose work it was to take care of the sick and
strangers; and those were generally widows that were in this matter servants to
the church-deaconesses (1Ti_5:9, 1Ti_5:10), though others, it is likely, might be
employed. Now this must be done with cheerfulness. A pleasing countenance in
acts of mercy is a great relief and comfort to the miserable; when they see it
is not done grudgingly and unwillingly, but with pleasant looks and gentle
words, and all possible indications of readiness and alacrity. Those that have
to do with such as are sick and sore, and commonly cross and peevish, have need
to put on not only patience, but cheerfulness, to make the work the more easy
and pleasant to them, and the more acceptable to God.
III. Concerning that part of our duty which respects
our brethren, of which we have many instances, in brief exhortations. Now all
our duty towards one another is summer up in one word, and that a sweet work, love.
In that is laid the foundation of all our mutual duty; and therefore the
apostle mentions this first, which is the livery of Christ's disciples, and the
great law of our religion: Let love be without dissimulation; not in
compliment and pretence, but in reality; not in word and tongue only, 1Jo_3:18. The right love is love unfeigned; not
as the kisses of an enemy, which are deceitful. We should be glad of an
opportunity to prove the sincerity of our love, 2Co_8:8. More particularly, there is a love
owing to our friends, and to our enemies. He specifies both.
1. To our friends. He that hath friends must show
himself friendly. There is a mutual love that Christians owe, and must pay.
(1.) An affectionate love (Rom_12:10):
Be kindly affectioned one to another, with brotherly love, philostorgoi
- it signifies not only love, but a readiness and inclination to love, the most
genuine and free affection, kindness flowing out as from a spring. It properly
denotes the love of parents to their children, which, as it is the most tender,
so it is the most natural, of any, unforced, unconstrained; such must our love
be to one another, and such it will be where there is a new nature and the law
of love is written in the heart. This kind affection puts us on to express
ourselves both in word and action with the greatest courtesy and obligingness
that may be. - One to another. This may recommend the grace of love to
us, that, as it is made our duty to love others, so it is as much their duty to
love us. And what can be sweeter on this side heaven than to love and be
beloved? He that thus watereth shall be watered also himself.
(2.) A respectful love: In honour preferring one
another. Instead of contending for superiority, let us be forward to give
to others the pre-eminence. This is explained, Phi_2:3,
Let each esteem other better than themselves. And there is this good
reason for it, because, if we know our own hearts, we know more evil by
ourselves than we do by any one else in the world. We should be forward to take
notice of the gifts, and graces, and performances of our brethren, and value
them accordingly, be more forward to praise another, and more pleased to hear
another praised, than ourselves; tē timē proēgoumenoi - going
before, or leading one another in honour; so some read it: not in
taking honour, but in giving honour. “Strive which of you shall be most forward
to pay respect to those to whom it is due, and to perform all Christian offices
of love (which are all included in the word honour) to your brethren, as there
is occasion. Let all your contention be which shall be most humble, and useful,
and condescending.” So the sense is the same with Tit_3:14,
Let them learn, proistasthai - to go before in good works.
For though we must prefer others (as our translation reads it), and put on
others, as more capable and deserving than ourselves, yet we must not make that
an excuse for our lying by and doing nothing, nor under a pretence of honouring
others, and their serviceableness and performances, indulge ourselves in ease
and slothfulness. Therefore he immediately adds (Rom_12:11),
Not slothful in business.
(3.) A liberal love (Rom_12:13):
Distributing to the necessities of saints. It is but a mock love which
rests in the verbal expressions of kindness and respect, while the wants of our
brethren call for real supplies, and it is in the power of our hands to furnish
them. [1.] It is no strange thing for saints in this world to want necessaries
for the support of their natural live. In those primitive times prevailing
persecutions must needs reduce many of the suffering saints to great
extremities; and still the poor, even the poor saints, we have always with us.
Surely the things of this world are not the best things; if they were, the
saints, who are the favourites of heaven, would not be put off with so little
of them. [2.] It is the duty of those who have wherewithal to distribute,
or (as it might better be read) to communicate to those necessities. It
is not enough to draw out the soul, but we must draw out the purse, to the
hungry. See Jam_2:15, Jam_2:16; 1Jo_3:17.
Communicating - koinōnountes. It intimates that our poor
brethren have a kind of interest in that which God hath given us; and that our
reliving them should come from a sense and fellow-feeling of their wants, as
though we suffered with them. The charitable benevolence of the Philippians to
Paul is called their communicating with his affliction, Phi_4:14. We must be ready, as we have ability
and opportunity, to relieve any that are in want; but we are in a special
manner bound to communicate to the saints. There is a common love owing to our
fellow-creatures, but a special love owing to our fellow-christians (Gal_6:10), Especially to those who are of the
household of faith. Communicating, tais mneiais - to the memories
of the saints; so some of the ancients read it, instead of tais chreiais.
There is a debt owing to the memory of those who through faith and patience
inherit the promises - to value it, to vindicate it, to embalm it. Let the
memory of the just be blessed; so some read Pro_10:7.
He mentions another branch of this bountiful love: Given to hospitality.
Those who have houses of their own should be ready to entertain those who go
about doing good, or who, for fear of persecution, are forced to wander for
shelter. They had not then so much of the convenience of common inns as we
have; or the wandering Christians durst not frequent them; or they had not
wherewithal to bear the charges, and therefore it was a special kindness to bid
them welcome on free-cost. Nor is it yet an antiquated superseded duty; as
there is occasion, we must welcome strangers, for we know not the heart of a
stranger. I was a stranger, and you took me in, is mentioned as one
instance of the mercifulness of those that shall obtain mercy: tēn
philoxenian diōkontes - following or pursuing hospitality.
It intimates, not only that we must take opportunity, but that we must seek
opportunity, thus to show mercy. As Abraham, who sat at the tent-door (Gen_18:1), and Lot, who sat in the gate of Sodom
(Gen_19:1), expecting travellers, whom
they might meet and prevent with a kind invitation, and so they entertained
angels unawares, Heb_13:2.
(4.) A sympathizing love (Rom_12:15):
Rejoice with those that do rejoice, and weep with those that weep. Where
there is a mutual love between the members of the mystical body, there will be
such a fellow-feeling. See 1Co_12:26.
True love will interest us in the sorrows and joys of one another, and teach us
to make them our own. Observe the common mixture in this world, some rejoicing,
and others weeping (as the people, Ezr_3:12,
Ezr_3:13), for the trial, as of other
graces, so of brotherly love and Christian sympathy. Not that we must
participate in the sinful mirths or mournings of any, but only in just and
reasonable joys and sorrows: not envying those that prosper, but rejoicing with
them; truly glad that others have the success and comfort which we have not;
not despising those that are in trouble, but concerned for them, and ready to
help them, as being ourselves in the body. This is to do as God does, who not
only has pleasure in the prosperity of his servants (Psa_35:27), but is likewise afflicted in all
their afflictions, Isa_63:9.
(5.) A united love: “Be of the same mind one towards
another (Rom_12:16), that is,
labour, as much as you can, to agree in apprehension; and, wherein you come
short of this, yet agree in affection; endeavour to be all one, not affecting
to clash, and contradict, and thwart one another; but keep the unity of the
Spirit in the bond of peace, Phi_2:2; Phi_3:15, Phi_3:16;
1Co_1:10; to auto eis allēlous
phronountes - wishing the same good to others that you do to
yourselves;” so some understand it. This is to love our brethren as ourselves,
desiring their welfare as our own.
(6.) A condescending love: Mind not high things, but
condescend to men of low estate, Rom_12:16.
True love cannot be without lowliness, Eph_4:1,
Eph_4:2; Phi_2:3.
When our Lord Jesus washed his disciples' feet, to teach us brotherly love (Joh_13:5; Joh_13:34),
it was designed especially to intimate to us that to love one another aright is
to be willing to stoop to the meanest offices of kindness for the good of one
another. Love is a condescending grace: Non bene conveniunt - majestas et
amor - Majesty and love do but ill assort with each other. Observe how it
is pressed here. [1.] Mind not high things. We must not be ambitious of
honour and preferment, nor look upon worldly pomp and dignity with any
inordinate value or desire but rather with a holy contempt. When David's
advancements were high, his spirit was humble (Psa_131:1):
I do not exercise myself in great matters. The Romans, living in the
imperial city, which reigned over the kings of the earth (Rev_17:18), and was at that time in the meridian
of its splendour, were perhaps ready to take occasion thence to think the
better of themselves. Even the holy seed were tainted with this leaven. Roman
Christians, as some citizens do upon the country; and therefore the apostle so
often cautions them against high-mindedness; compare Rom_11:20. They lived near the court, and conversed daily
with the gaiety and grandeur of it: “Well,” saith he, “do not mind it, be not
in love with it.” [2.] Condescend to men of low estate - Tois
tapeinois sunapagomenoi. First, It may be meant of mean things,
to which we must condescend. If our condition in the world be poor and low, our
enjoyments coarse and scanty, our employments despicable and contemptible, yet
we must bring our minds to it, and acquiesce in it. So the margin: Be
contented with mean things. Be reconciled to the place which God in his
providence hath put us in, whatever it be. We must account nothing below us but
sin: stoop to mean habitations, mean fare, mean clothing, mean accommodations
when they are our lot, and not grudge. Nay, we must be carried with a kind of
impetus, by the force of the new nature (so the word sunapagomai
properly signifies, and it is very significant), towards mean things, when God
appoints us to them; as the old corrupt nature is carried out towards high
things. We must accommodate ourselves to mean things. We should make a low
condition and mean circumstances more the centre of our desires than a high
condition. Secondly, It may be meant of mean persons; so we read
it (I think both are to be included) Condescend to men of low estate. We
must associate with, and accommodate ourselves to, those that are poor and mean
in the world, if they be such as fear God. David, though a king upon the
throne, was a companion for all such, Psa_119:63.
We need not be ashamed to converse with the lowly, while the great God
overlooks heaven and earth to look at such. True love values grace in rags as
well as in scarlet. A jewel is a jewel, though it lie in the dirt. The contrary
to this condescension is reproved, Jam_2:1-4.
Condescend; that is, suit yourselves to them, stoop to them for their
good; as Paul, 1Co_9:19, etc. Some
think the original word is a metaphor taken from travellers, when those that
are stronger and swifter of foot stay for those that are weak and slow, make a
halt, and take them with them; thus must Christians be tender towards their
fellow travellers. As a means to promote this, he adds, Be not wise in your
own conceits; to the same purport with Rom_12:3.
We shall never find in our hearts to condescend to others while we find there
so great a conceit of ourselves: and therefore this must needs be mortified. Mē
ginesthe phronimoi par' heautois - “Be not wise by yourselves, be
not confident of the sufficiency of your own wisdom, so as to despise others,
or think you have no need of them (Pro_3:7),
nor be shy of communicating what you have to others. We are members one of
another, depend upon one another, are obliged to one another; and therefore, Be
not wise by yourselves, remembering it is the merchandise of wisdom that we
profess; now merchandise consists in commerce, receiving and returning.”
(7.) A love that engages us, as much as lies in us, to
live peaceably with all men, Rom_12:18.
Even those with whom we cannot live intimately and familiarly, by reason of
distance in degree or profession, yet we must with such live peaceably; that
is, we must be harmless and inoffensive, not giving others occasion to quarrel
with us; and we must be gall-less and unrevengeful, not taking occasion to
quarrel with them. Thus must we labour to preserve the peace, that it be not
broken, and to piece it again when it is broken. The wisdom from above is pure
and peaceable. Observe how the exhortation is limited. It is not expressed so
as to oblige us to impossibilities: If it be possible, as much as lies in
you. Thus Heb_12:14, Follow
peace. Eph_4:3, Endeavouring to
keep. Study the things that make for peace. - If it be possible. It
is not possible to preserve the peace when we cannot do it without offending
God and wounding conscience: Id possumus quod jure possumus - That is
possible which is possible without incurring blame. The wisdom that is from
above is first pure and then peaceable, Jam_3:17.
Peace without purity is the peace of the devil's palace. - As much as lieth
in you. There must be two words to the bargain of peace. We can but speak
for ourselves. We may be unavoidably striven with; as Jeremiah, who was a man
of contention (Jer_15:10), and this
we cannot help; our care must be that nothing be wanting on our parts to
preserve the peace, Psa_120:7. I am for
peace, though, when I speak, they are for war.
2. To our enemies. Since men became enemies to God,
they have been found very apt to be enemies one to another. Let but the centre
of love be once forsaken, and the lines will either clash and interfere, or be
at an uncomfortable distance. And, of all men, those that embrace religion have
reason to expect to meet with enemies in a world whose smiles seldom concur
with Christ's. Now Christianity teaches us how to behave towards our enemies;
and in this instruction it quite differs from all other rules and methods,
which generally aim at victory and dominion; but this at inward peace and
satisfaction. Whoever are our enemies, that wish us ill and seek to do us ill,
our rule is to do them no hurt, but all the good we can.
(1.) To do them no hurt (Rom_12:17):
Recompense to no man evil for evil, for that is a brutish recompence,
and befitting only those animals which are not conscious either of any being
above them or of any state before them. Or, if mankind were made (as some
dream) in a state of war, such recompences as these were agreeable enough; but
we have not so learned God, who does so much for his enemies (Mat_5:45), much less have we so learned Christ,
who died for us when we were enemies (Rom_5:8,
Rom_5:10), so loved that world which
hated him without a cause. - “To no man; neither to Jew nor Greek; not
to one that has been thy friend, for by recompensing evil for evil thou wilt
certainly lose him; not to one that has been thine enemy, for by not
recompensing evil for evil thou mayest perhaps gain him.” To the same purport, Rom_12:19, Dearly beloved, avenge not
yourselves. And why must this be ushered in with such an affectionate
compellation, rather than any other of the exhortations of this chapter? Surely
because this is intended for the composing of angry spirits, that are hot in
the resentment of a provocation. He addresses himself to such in this endearing
language, to mollify and qualify them. Any thing that breathes love sweetens
the blood, lays the storm, and cools the intemperate heat. Would you pacify a
brother offended? Call him dearly beloved. Such a soft word, fitly spoken, may
be effectual to turn away wrath. Avenge not yourselves; that is, when
any body has done you any ill turn, do not desire nor endeavour to bring the
like mischief or inconvenience upon him. it is not forbidden to the magistrate
to do justice to those that are wronged, by punishing the wrong-doer; nor to
make and execute just and wholesome laws against malefactors; but it forbids
private revenge, which flows from anger and ill-will; and this is fitly
forbidden, for it is presumed that we are incompetent judges in our own case.
Nay, if persons wronged in seeking the defence of the law, and magistrates in
granting it, act from any particular personal pique or quarrel, and not from a
concern that public peace and order be maintained and right done, even such
proceedings, though seemingly regular, will fall under this prohibited
self-revenging. See how strict the law of Christ is in this matter, Mat_5:38-40. It is forbidden not only to take it
into our own hands to avenge ourselves, but to desire and thirst after event
that judgment in our case which the law affords, for the satisfying of a
revengeful humour. This is a hard lesson to corrupt nature; and therefore he
subjoins, [1.] A remedy against it: Rather give place unto wrath. Not to
our own wrath; to give place to this is to give place to the devil, Eph_4:26, Eph_4:27.
We must resist, and stifle, and smother, and suppress this; but, First,
To the wrath of our enemy. “Give place to it, that is, be of a yielding temper;
do not answer wrath with wrath, but with love rather. Yielding pacifies
great offences, Ecc_10:4. Receive
affronts and injuries, as a stone is received into a heap of wool, which gives
way to it, and so it does not rebound back, nor go any further.” So it explains
that of our Saviour (Mat_5:39), Whosoever
shall smite thee on thy right cheek, turn to him the other also. Instead of
meditating how to revenge one wrong, prepare to receive another. When men's
passions are up, and the stream is strong, let it have its course, lest by an
unseasonable opposition it be made to rage and swell the more. When others are
angry, let us be calm; this is a remedy against revenge, and seems to be the
genuine sense. But, Secondly, Many apply it to the wrath of God: “Give
place to this, make room for him to take the throne of judgment, and let him
alone to deal with thine adversary.” [2.] A reason against it: For it is
written, Vengeance is mine. We find it written, Deu_32:35.
God is the sovereign King, the righteous Judge, and to him it belongs to
administer justice; for, being a God of infinite knowledge, by him actions are
weighed in unerring balances; and, being a God of infinite purity, he hates sin
and cannot endure to look upon iniquity. Some of this power he hath trusted in
the hands of the civil magistrates (Gen_9:6;
Rom_13:4); their legal punishments
therefore are to be looked upon as a branch of God's revengings. This is a good
reason why we should not avenge ourselves; for, if vengeance be God's, then, First,
We may not do it. We step into the throne of God if we do and take his work out
of his hand. Secondly, We need not do it. For God will, if we meekly
leave the matter with him; he will avenge us as far as there is reason or
justice for it, and further we cannot desire it. See Psa_38:14, Psa_38:15,
I heard not, for thou wilt hear; and if God hears what need is there for
me to hear?
(2.) We must not only not to hurt to our enemies, but
our religion goes higher, and teaches us to do them all the good we can. It is
a command peculiar to Christianity, and which does highly commend it: Love
your enemies, Mat_5:44. We are here
taught to show that love to them both in word and deed.
[1.] In word: Bless those who persecute you, Rom_12:14. It has been the common lot of God's
people to be persecuted, either with a powerful hand or with a spiteful tongue.
Now we are here taught to bless those that so persecute us. Bless them;
that is, First, “Speak well of them. If there be any thing in them that
is commendable and praiseworthy, take notice of it, and mention it to their
honour.” Secondly, “Speak respectfully to them, according as their place
is, not rendering railing for railing, and bitterness for bitterness.” And, Thirdly,
We must wish well to them, and desire their good, so far from seeking any
revenge. Nay, Fourthly, We must offer up that desire to God, by prayer
for them. If it be not in the power of our hand to do any thing else for them,
yet we can testify our good-will by praying for them, for which our master hath
given us not only a rule, but an example to back that rule, Luk_23:34 - Bless, and curse not. It
denotes a thorough good-will in all the instances and expressions of it; not,
“bless them when you are at prayer, and curse them at other times;” but, “bless
them always, and curse not at all.” Cursing ill becomes the mouths of those
whose work it is to bless God, and whose happiness it is to be blessed of him.
[2.] In deed (Rom_12:20):
“If thine enemy hunger, as thou hast ability and opportunity, be ready
and forward to show him any kindness, and do him any office of love for his
good; and be never the less forward for his having been thine enemy, but rather
the more, that thous mayest thereby testify the sincerity of thy forgiveness of
him.” It is said of archbishop Cranmer that the way for a man to make him his
friend was to do him an ill turn. The precept is quoted from Pro_25:21, Pro_25:22;
so that, high as it seems to be, the Old Testament was not a stranger to it.
Observe here, First, What we must do. We must do good to our enemies. “If
he hunger, do not insult over him, and say, Now God is avenging me of him,
and pleading my cause; do not make such a construction of his wants. But feed
him.” Then, when he has need of thy help, and thou hast an
opportunity of starving him and trampling upon him, then feed him (psōmize
auton, a significant word) - “feed him abundantly, nay, feed him carefully
and indulgently:” frustulatim pasce - feed him with small pieces,
“feed him, as we do children and sick people, with much tenderness. Contrive to
do it so as to express thy love. If he thirst, give him drink: potize
auton - drink to him, in token of reconciliation and friendship. So
confirm your love to him.” Secondly, Why we must do this. Because in so
doing thou shalt heap coals of fire on his head. Two senses are given of
this, which I think are both to be taken in disjunctively. Thou shalt heap
coals of fire on his head; that is, “Thou shalt either,” 1. “Melt him into
repentance and friendship, and mollify his spirit towards thee” (alluding to
those who melt metals; they not only put fire under them, but heap fire upon
them; thus Saul was melted and conquered with the kindness of David, 1Sa_24:16; 1Sa_26:21)
- “thou wilt win a friend by it, and if thy kindness have not that effect
then,” 2. “It will aggravate his condemnation, and make his malice against thee
the more inexcusable. Thou wilt hereby hasten upon him the tokens of God's
wrath and vengeance.” Not that this must be our intention in showing him
kindness, but, for our encouragement, such will be the effect. To this purpose
is the exhortation in the last vers, which suggests a paradox not easily
understood by the world, that in all matters of strife and contention those
that revenge are the conquered, and those that forgive are the conquerors. (1.)
“Be not overcome of evil. Let not the evil of any provocation that is
given you have such a power over you, or make such an impression upon you, as
to dispossess you of yourselves, to disturb your peace, to destroy your love,
to ruffle and discompose your spirits, to transport you to any indecencies, or
to bring you to study or attempt any revenge.” He that cannot quietly bear an
injury is perfectly conquered by it. (2.) “But overcome evil with good,
with the good of patience and forbearance, nay, and of kindness and beneficence
to those that wrong you. Learn to defeat their ill designs against you, and
either to change them, or at least to preserve your own peace.” He that hath
this rule over his spirit is better than the mighty.
3. To conclude, there remain two exhortations yet
untouched, which are general, and which recommend all the rest as good in
themselves, and of good report.
(1.) As good in themselves (Rom_12:9): Abhor that which is evil, cleave
to that which is good. God hath shown us what is good: these Christian
duties are enjoined; and that is evil which is opposite to them. Now observe,
[1.] We must not only not do evil, but we must abhor that which is evil.
We must hate sin with an utter and irreconcilable hatred, have an antipathy to
it as the worst of evils, contrary to our new nature, and to our true interest
- hating all the appearances of sin, even the garment spotted with the flesh.
[2.] We must not only do that which is good, but we must cleave to it. It
denotes a deliberate choice of, a sincere affection for, and a constant
perseverance in, that which is good. “So cleave to it as not to be allured nor
affrighted from it, cleave to him that is good, even to the Lord (Act_11:23), with a dependence and acquiescence.”
It is subjoined to the precept of brotherly love, as directive of it; we must
love our brethren, but not love them so much as for their sakes to commit any
sin, or omit any duty; not think the better of any sin for the sake of the
person that commits it, but forsake all the friends in the world, to cleave to
God and duty.
Romans
13:1-6
We are here
taught how to conduct ourselves towards magistrates, and those that are in
authority over us, called here the higher powers, intimating their
authority (they are powers), and their dignity (they are higher powers),
including not only the king as supreme, but all inferior magistrates under him:
and yet it is expressed, not by the persons that are in that power, but the
place of power itself, in which they are. However the persons themselves may be
wicked, and of those vile persons whom the citizen of Zion contemneth (Psa_15:4), yet the just power which they have
must be submitted to and obeyed. The apostle had taught us, in the foregoing
chapter, not to avenge ourselves, nor to recompense evil for evil; but, lest it
should seem as if this did cancel the ordinance of a civil magistracy among
Christians, he takes occasion to assert the necessity of it, and of the due
infliction of punishment upon evil doers, however it may look like recompensing
evil for evil. Observe,
I. The duty
enjoined: Let every soul be subject. Every soul - every person, one as
well as another, not excluding the clergy, who call themselves spiritual
persons, however the church of Rome may not only exempt such from subjection to
the civil powers, but place them in authority above them, making the greatest
princes subject to the pope, who thus exalteth himself above all that is called
God. - Every soul. Not that our consciences are to be subjected to the
will of any man. It is God's prerogative to make laws immediately to bind
conscience, and we must render to God the things that are God's. But it
intimates that our subjection must be free and voluntary, sincere and hearty. Curse
not the king, no, not in thy thought, Ecc_10:20.
To compass and imagine are treason begun. The subjection of soul here required
includes inward honour (1Pe_2:17) and
outward reverence and respect, both in speaking to them and in speaking of them
- obedience to their commands in things lawful and honest, and in other things
a patient subjection to the penalty without resistance - a conformity in every
thing to the place and duty of subjects, bringing our minds to the relation and
condition, and the inferiority and subordination of it. “They are higher
powers; be content they should be so, and submit to them accordingly.” Now
there was good reason for the pressing of this duty of subjection to civil
magistrates, 1. Because of the reproach which the Christian religion lay under
in the world, as an enemy to public peace, order, and government, as a sect
that turned the world upside down, and the embracers of it as enemies to
Caesar, and the more because the leaders were Galileans - an old slander.
Jerusalem was represented as a rebellious city, hurtful to kings and
provinces, Ezr_4:15, Ezr_4:16. Our Lord Jesus was so reproached,
though he told them his kingdom was not of this world: no marvel, then, if his
followers have been loaded in all ages with the like calumnies, called factious,
seditious, and turbulent, and looked upon as the troublers of the
land, their enemies having found such representations needful for the
justifying of their barbarous rage against them. The apostle therefore, for the
obviating of this reproach and the clearing of Christianity from it, shows that
obedience to civil magistrates is one of the laws of Christ, whose religion
helps to make people good subjects; and it was very unjust to charge upon
Christianity that faction and rebellion to which its principles and rules are
so directly contrary. 2. Because of the temptation which the Christians lay
under to be otherwise affected to civil magistrates, some of them being
originally Jews, and so leavened with a principle that it was unmeet for any of
the seed of Abraham to be subject to one of another nation - their king must be
of their brethren, Deu_17:15. Besides,
Paul had taught them that they were not under the law, they were made
free by Christ. Lest this liberty should be turned into licentiousness, and
misconstrued to countenance faction and rebellion, the apostle enjoins
obedience to civil government, which was the more necessary to be pressed now
because the magistrates were heathens and unbelievers, which yet did not destroy
their civil power and authority. Besides, the civil powers were persecuting
powers; the body of the law was against them.
II. The reasons
to enforce this duty. Why must we be subject?
1. For wrath's
sake. Because of the danger we run ourselves into by resistance.
Magistrates bear the sword, and to oppose them is to hazard all that is dear to
us in this world; for it is to no purpose to contend with him that bears the
sword. The Christians were then in those persecuting times obnoxious to the
sword of the magistrate for their religion, and they needed not make themselves
more obnoxious by their rebellion. The least show of resistance or sedition in
a Christian would soon be aggravated and improved, and would be very
prejudicial to the whole society; and therefore they had more need than others
to be exact in their subjection, that those who had so much occasion against
them in the matter of their God might have no other occasion. To this head must
that argument be referred (Rom_13:2), Those
that resist shall receive to themselves damnation: krima lēpsontai, they shall be called to an
account for it. God will reckon with them for it, because the resistance
reflects upon him. The magistrates will reckon with them for it. They will come
under the lash of the law, and will find the higher powers too high to be
trampled upon, all civil governments being justly strict and severe against
treason and rebellion; so it follows (Rom_13:3),
Rulers are a terror. This is a good argument, but it is low for a
Christian.
2. We must be subject, not only for wrath, but for
conscience' sake; not so much formidine poenae - from the fear of
punishment, as virtutis amore - from the love of virtue. This makes
common civil offices acceptable to God, when they are done for conscience'
sake, with an eye to God, to his providence putting us into such relations,
and to his precept making subjection the duty of those relations. Thus the same
thing may be done from a very different principle. Now to oblige conscience to
this subjection he argues, Rom_13:1-4, Rom_13:6,
(1.) From the institution of magistracy: There is no
power but of God. God as the ruler and governor of the world hath appointed
the ordinance of magistracy, so that all civil power is derived from him as
from its original, and he hath by his providence put the administration into
those hands, whatever they are that have it. By him kings reign, Pro_8:15. The usurpation of power and the abuse
of power are not of God, for he is not the author of sin; but the power itself
is. As our natural powers, though often abused and made instruments of sin, are
from God's creating power, so civil powers are from God's governing power. The
most unjust and oppressive princes in the world have no power but what is given
them from above (Joh_19:11), the divine
providence being in a special manner conversant about those changes and
revolutions of governments which have such an influence upon states and
kingdoms, and such a multitude of particular persons and smaller communities.
Or, it may be meant of government in general: it is an instance of God's
wisdom, power, and goodness, in the management of mankind, that he has disposed
them into such a state as distinguishes between governors and governed, and has
not left them like the fishes of the sea, where the greater devour the less. He
did herein consult the benefit of his creatures. - The powers that be:
whatever the particular form and method of government are - whether by
monarchy, aristocracy, or democracy - wherever the governing power is lodged,
it is an ordinance of God, and it is to be received and submitted to
accordingly; though immediately an ordinance of man (1Pe_2:13), yet originally an ordinance of God. - Ordained
of God - tetagmenai, a military word, signifying not only the
ordination of magistrates, but the subordination of inferior magistrates to the
supreme, as in an army; for among magistrates there is a diversity of gifts,
and trusts, and services. Hence it follows (Rom_13:2)
that whosoever resisteth the power resisteth the ordinance of God. There
are other things from God that are the greatest calamities; but magistracy is
from God as an ordinance, that is, it is a great law, and it is a great
blessing: so that the children of Belial, that will not endure the yoke of
government, will be found breaking a law and despising a blessing. Magistrates
are therefore called gods (Psa_82:6),
because they bear the image of God's authority. And those who spurn at their
power reflect upon God himself. This is not at all applicable to the particular
rights of kings and kingdoms, and the branches of their constitution; nor can
any certain rule be fetched from this for the modelling of the original
contracts between the governors and governed; but it is intended for direction
to private persons in their private capacity, to behave themselves quietly and
peaceably in the sphere in which God has set them, with a due regard to the
civil powers which God in his providence has set over them, 1Ti_2:1, 1Ti_2:2.
Magistrates are here again and again called God's ministers. he is the minister
of God, Rom_13:4, Rom_13:6. Magistrates are in a more peculiar
manner God's servants; the dignity they have calls for duty. Though they are
lords to us, they are servants to God, have work to do for him, and an account
to render to him. In the administration of public justice, the determining of
quarrels, the protecting of the innocent, the righting of the wronged, the
punishing of offenders, and the preserving of national peace and order, that
every man may not do what is right in his own eyes - in these things it is that
magistrates act as God's ministers. As the killing of an inferior magistrate,
while he is actually doing his duty, is accounted treason against the prince,
so the resisting of any magistrates in the discharge of these duties of their
place is the resisting of an ordinance of God.
(2.) From the intention of magistracy: Rulers are
not a terror to good works, but to the evil, etc. Magistracy was designed
to be,
[1.] A terror to evil works and evil workers. They bear
the sword; not only the sword of war, but the sword of justice. They are heirs
of restraint, to put offenders to shame; Laish wanted such, Jdg_18:7. Such is the power of sin and
corruption that many will not be restrained from the greatest enormities, and
such as are most pernicious to human society, by any regard to the law of God
and nature or the wrath to come; but only by the fear of temporal punishments,
which the wilfulness and perverseness of degenerate mankind have made
necessary. Hence it appears that laws with penalties for the lawless and
disobedient (1Ti_1:9) must be
constituted in Christian nations, and are agreeable with, and not contradictory
to, the gospel. When men are become such beasts, such ravenous beasts, one to
another, they must be dealt with accordingly, taken and destroyed in
terrorem - to deter others. The horse and the mule must thus be held in
with bit and bridle. In this work the magistrate is the minister of God,
Rom_13:4. He acts as God's agent, to
whom vengeance belongs; and therefore must take heed of infusing into his
judgments any private personal resentments of his own. - To execute wrath
upon him that doeth evil. In this the judicial processes of the most
vigilant faithful magistrates, though some faint resemblance and prelude of the
judgments of the great day, yet come far short of the judgment of God: they
reach only to the evil act, can execute wrath only on him that doeth
evil: but God's judgment extends to the evil thought, and is a discerner of the
intents of the heart. - He beareth not the sword in vain. It is not for
nothing that God hath put such a power into the magistrate's hand; but it is
intended for the restraining and suppressing of disorders. And therefore, “If
thou do that which is evil, which falls under the cognizance and censure of
the civil magistrate, be afraid; for civil powers have quick eyes and
long arms.” It is a good thing when the punishment of malefactors is managed as
an ordinance of God, instituted and appointed by him. First, As a holy
God, that hates sin, against which, as it appears and puts up its head, a
public testimony is thus borne. Secondly, As King of nations, and the
God of peace and order, which are hereby preserved. Thirdly, As the
protector of the good, whose persons, families, estates, and names, are by this
means hedged about. Fourthly, As one that desires not the eternal ruin
of sinners, but by the punishment of some would terrify others, and so prevent
the like wickedness, that others may hear and fear, and do no more
presumptuously. Nay, it is intended for a kindness to those that are punished,
that by the destruction of the flesh the spirit may be saved in the day of the
Lord Jesus.
[2.] A praise to those that do well. Those that keep in
the way of their duty shall have the commendation and protection of the civil
powers, to their credit and comfort. “Do that which is good (Rom_13:3), and thou needest not be afraid of
the power, which, though terrible, reaches none but those that by their own
sin make themselves obnoxious to it; the fire burns only that which is
combustible: nay, thou shalt have praise of it.” This is the intention of
magistracy, and therefore we must, for conscience' sake, be subject to it, as a
constitution designed for the public good, to which all private interests must
give way. But pity it is that ever this gracious intention should be perverted,
and that those who bear the sword, while they countenance and connive at sin,
should be a terror to those who do well. But so it is, when the vilest men are
exalted (Psa_12:1, Psa_12:8); and yet even then the blessing and
benefit of a common protection, and a face of government and order, are such
that it is our duty in that case rather to submit to persecution for
well-doing, and to take it patiently, than by any irregular and disorderly
practices to attempt a redress. Never did sovereign prince pervert the ends of
government as Nero did, and yet to him Paul appealed, and under him had the
protection of the law and the inferior magistrates more than once. Better a bad
government than none at all.
(3.) From our interest in it: “He is the minister of
God to thee for good. Thou hast the benefit and advantage of the
government, and therefore must do what thou canst to preserve it, and nothing
to disturb it.” Protection draws allegiance. If we have protection from the
government, we owe subjection to it; by upholding the government, we keep up
our own hedge. This subjection is likewise consented to by the tribute we pay (Rom_13:6): “For this cause pay you tribute,
as a testimony of your submission, and an acknowledgment that in conscience you
think it to be due. You do by paying taxes contribute your share to the support
of the power; if therefore you be not subject, you do but pull down with one
hand what you support with the other; and is that conscience?” “By your paying
tribute you not only own the magistrate's authority, but the blessing of that
authority to yourselves, a sense of which you thereby testify, giving him that
as a recompence for the great pains he takes in the government; for honour is a
burden: and, if he do as he ought, he is attending continually upon this very
thing, for it is enough to take up all a man's thoughts and time, in
consideration of which fatigue, we pay tribute, and must be subject.” - Pay
you tribute, phorous teleite. He does not say, “You give it as an
alms,” but, “You pay it as a just debt, or lend it to be repaid in all the
blessings and advantages of public government, of which you reap the benefit.”
This is the lesson the apostle teaches, and it becomes all Christians to learn
and practise it, that the godly in the land may be found (whatever others are)
the quiet and the peaceable in the land.
Romans
13:7-10
We are here
taught a lesson of justice and charity.
I. Of justice (Rom_13:7): Render therefore to all their
dues, especially to magistrates, for this refers to what goes before; and likewise
to all with whom we have to do. To be just is to give to all their due, to give
every body his own. What we have we have as stewards; others have an interest
in it, and must have their dues. “Render to God his due in the first place, to
yourselves, to you families, your relations, to the commonwealth, to the
church, to the poor, to those that you have dealings with in buying, selling,
exchanging, etc. Render to all their dues; and that readily and cheerfully, not
tarrying till you are by law compelled to it.” He specifies, 1. Due taxes: Tribute
to whom tribute is due, custom to whom custom. Most of the countries where
the gospel was first preached were subject at this time to the Roman yoke, and
were made provinces of the empire. He wrote this to the Romans, who, as they
were rich, so they were drained by taxes and impositions, to the just and
honest payment of which they are here pressed by the apostle. Some distinguish
between tribute and custom, understanding by the former constant standing taxes,
and by the latter those which were occasionally required, both which are to be
faithfully and conscientiously paid as they become legally due. Our Lord was
born when his mother went to be taxed; and he enjoined the payment of tribute
to Caesar. Many, who in other things seem to be just, yet make no conscience of
this, but pass it off with a false ill-favoured maxim, that it is no sin to
cheat the king, directly contrary to Paul's rule, Tribute to whom tribute is
due. 2. Due respect: Fear to whom fear, honour to whom honour. This
sums up the duty which we owe not only to magistrates, but to all superiors,
parents, masters, all that are over us in the Lord, according to the fifth
commandment: Honour thy father and mother. Compare Lev_19:3, You shall fear every man his mother
and his father; not with a fear of amazement, but a loving, reverent,
respectful, obediential fear. Where there is not this respect in the heart to
our superiors, no other duty will be paid aright. 3. Due payment of debts (Rom_13:8): “Owe no man any thing; that
is, do not continue in any one's debt, while you are able to pay it, further
than by, at least, the tacit consent of the person to whom you are indebted.
Give every one his own. Do not spend that upon yourselves, which you owe to others.”
The wicked borroweth, and payeth not again, Psa_37:21.
Many that are very sensible of the trouble think little of the sin of being in
debt.
II. Of charity: Owe
no man any thing; opheilete - you do owe no man any
thing; so some read it: “Whatever you owe to any relation, or to any with whom
you have to do, it is eminently summer up and included in this debt of love.
But to love one another, this is a debt that must be always in the
paying, and yet always owing.” Love is a debt. The law of God and the interest
of mankind make it so. It is not a thing which we are left at liberty about,
but it is enjoined us, as the principle and summary of all duty owing one to
another; for love is the fulfilling of the law; not perfectly, but it is
a good step towards it. It is inclusive of all the duties of the second table,
which he specifies, Rom_13:9, and these
suppose the love of God. See 1Jo_4:20.
If the love be sincere, it is accepted as the fulfilling of the law. Surely
we serve a good master, that has summed up all our duty in one word, and that a
short word and a sweet word - love, the beauty and harmony of the
universe. Loving and being loved is all the pleasure, joy, and happiness, of an
intelligent being. God is love (1Jo_4:16),
and love is his image upon the soul: where it is, the soul is well moulded, and
the heart fitted for every good work. Now, to prove that love is the fulfilling
of the law, he gives us, 1. An induction of particular precepts, Rom_13:9. He specifies the last five of the ten
commandments, which he observes to be all summed up in this royal law, Thou
shalt love thy neighbour as thyself - with an as of quality, not of
equality - “with the same sincerity that thou lovest thyself, though not in the
same measure and degree.” He that loves his neighbour as himself will be
desirous of the welfare of his neighbour's body, goods, and good name, as of
his own. On this is built that golden rule of doing as we would be done by.
Were there no restraints of human laws in these things, no punishments incurred
(which the malignity of human nature hath made necessary), the law of love
would of itself be effectual to prevent all such wrongs and injuries, and to
keep peace and good order among us. In the enumeration of these commandments,
the apostle puts the seventh before the sixth, and mentions this first, Thou
shalt not commit adultery; for though this commonly goes under the name of
love (pity it is that so good a word should be so abused) yet it is really as
great a violation of it as killing and stealing is, which shows that true
brotherly love is love to the souls of our brethren in the first place. He that
tempts others to sin, and defiles their minds and consciences, though he may
pretend the most passionate love (Pro_7:15,
Pro_7:18), does really hate them, just
as the devil does, who wars against the soul. 2. A general rule concerning the
nature of brotherly love: Love worketh no ill (Rom_13:10) - he that walks in love, that is
actuated and governed by a principle of love, worketh no ill; he neither
practises nor contrives any ill to his neighbour, to any one that he has
any thing to do with: ouk ergazetai. The projecting of evil is in effect
the performing of it. Hence devising iniquity is called working evil
upon the bed, Mic_2:1. Love intends and
designs no ill to any body, is utterly against the doing of that which may turn
to the prejudice, offence, or grief of any. It worketh no ill; that is,
it prohibits the working of any ill: more is implied than is expressed; it not
only worketh no ill, but it worketh all the good that may be, deviseth liberal
things. For it is a sin not only to devise evil against thy neighbour, but to
withhold good from those to whom it is due; both are forbidden together, Pro_3:27-29. This proves that love is the
fulfilling of the law, answers all the end of it; for what else is that but to
restrain us from evil-doing, and to constrain us to well-doing? Love is a
living active principle of obedience to the whole law. The whole law is written
in the heart, if the law of love be there.
Romans
13:11-14
We are here
taught a lesson of sobriety and godliness in ourselves. Our main care must be
to look to ourselves. Four things we are here taught, as a Christian's
directory for his day's work: when to awake, how to dress ourselves, how to
walk, and what provision to make.
I. When to
awake: Now it is high time to awake (Rom_13:11),
to awake out of the sleep of sin (for a sinful condition is a sleeping
condition), out of the sleep of carnal security, sloth and negligence, out of
the sleep of spiritual death, and out of the sleep of spiritual deadness; both
the wise and foolish virgins slumbered and slept, Mat_25:5.
We have need to be often excited and stirred up to awake. The word of command
to all Christ's disciples is, Watch. “Awake - be concerned about
your souls and your eternal interest; take heed of sin, be ready to, and serious
in, that which is good, and live in a constant expectation of the coming of our
Lord. Considering,” 1. “The time we are cast into: Knowing the time.
Consider what time of day it is with us, and you will see it is high time to
awake. It is gospel time, it is the accepted time, it is working time; it is a
time when more is expected than was in the times of that ignorance which God
winked at, when people sat in darkness. It is high time to awake; for the sun
has been up a great while, and shines in our faces. Have we this light to sleep
in? See 1Th_5:5, 1Th_5:6. It is high time to awake; for others
are awake and up about us. Know the time to be a busy time; we have a great
deal of work to do, and our Master is calling us to it again and again. Know
the time to be a perilous time. We are in the midst of enemies and snares. It
is high time to awake, for the Philistines are upon us; our neighbour's house
is on fire, and our own in danger. It is time to awake, for we have slept
enough (1Pe_4:3), high time indeed, for
behold the bridegroom cometh.” 2. “The salvation we are upon the brink
of: Now is our salvation nearer than when we believed - than when we
first believed, and so took upon us the profession of Christianity. The eternal
happiness we chose for our portion is now nearer to us than it was when we
became Christians. Let us mind our way and mend our pace, for we are now nearer
our journey's end than we were when we had our first love. The nearer we are to
our centre the quicker should our motion be. Is there but a step between us and
heaven, and shall we be so very slow and dull in our Christian course, and move
so heavily? The more the days are shortened, and the more grace is increased,
the nearer is our salvation, and the more quick and vigorous we should be in
our spiritual motions.”
II. How to dress
ourselves. This is the next care, when we are awake and up: “The night is
far spent, the day is at hand; therefore it is time to dress ourselves.
Clearer discoveries will be quickly made of gospel grace than have been yet
made, as light gets ground. The night of Jewish rage and cruelty is just at an
end; their persecuting power is near a period; the day of our deliverance from
them is at hand, that day of redemption which Christ promised, Luk_21:28. And the day of our complete
salvation, in the heavenly glory, is at hand. Observe then,”
1. “What we must
put off; put off our night-clothes, which it is a shame to appear abroad in: Cast
off the works of darkness.” Sinful works are works of darkness; they come
from the darkness of ignorance and mistake, they covet the darkness of privacy
and concealment, and they end in the darkness of hell and destruction. “Let us
therefore, who are of the day, cast them off; not only cease from the practice
of them, but detest and abhor them, and have no more to do with them. Because
eternity is just at the door, let us take heed lest we be found doing that
which will then make against us,” 2Pe_3:11,
2Pe_3:14.
2. “What we must
put on.” Our care must be wherewithal we shall be clothed, how shall we
dress our souls? (1.) Put on the armour of light. Christians are
soldiers in the midst of enemies, and their life a warfare, therefore their
array must be armour, that they may stand upon their defence - the armour of
God, to which we are directed, Eph_6:13,
etc. A Christian may reckon himself undressed if he be unarmed. The graces of
the Spirit are this armour, to secure the soul from Satan's temptations and the
assaults of this present evil world. This is called the armour of light, some think
alluding to the bright glittering armour which the Roman soldiers used to wear;
or such armour as it becomes us to wear in the day-light. The graces of the
Spirit are suitable splendid ornaments, are in the sight of God of great price.
(2.) Put on the Lord Jesus Christ, Rom_13:14.
This stands in opposition to a great many base lusts, mentioned Rom_13:13. Rioting and drunkenness must
be cast off: one would think it should follows, but, “Put on sobriety,
temperance, chastity,” the opposite virtues: no, “Put on Christ, this
includes all. Put on the righteousness of Christ for justification; be found in
him (Phi_3:9) as a man is found in his
clothes; put on the priestly garments of the elder brother, that in them you
may obtain the blessing. Put on the spirit and grace of Christ for
sanctification; put on the new man (Eph_4:24);
get the habit of grace confirmed, the acts of it quickened.” Jesus Christ is
the best clothing for Christians to adorn themselves with, to arm themselves
with; it is decent, distinguishing, dignifying, and defending. Without Christ,
we are naked, deformed; all other things are filthy rages, fig-leaves, a sorry
shelter. God has provided us coats of skins - large, strong, warm, and durable.
By baptism we have in profession put on Christ, Gal_3:27.
Let us do it in truth and sincerity. The Lord Jesus Christ. “Put him on
as Lord to rule you, as Jesus to save you, and in both as Christ, anointed and
appointed by the Father to this ruling saving work.”
III. How to
walk. When we are up and dressed, we are not to sit still in an affected
closeness and privacy, as monks and hermits. What have we good clothes for, but
to appear abroad in them? - Let us walk. Christianity teaches us how to
walk so as to please God, whose eye is upon us: 1Th_4:1,
Walk honestly as in the day. Compare Eph_5:8,
Walk as children of light. Our conversation must be as becomes the
gospel. Walk honestly; euschēmonōs - decently and becomingly, so as to credit your
profession, and to adorn the doctrine of God our Saviour, and recommend
religion in its beauty to others. Christians should be in a special manner
careful to conduct themselves well in those things wherein men have an eye upon
them, and to study that which is lovely and of good report. Particularly, here
are three pairs of sins we are cautioned against: - 1. We must not walk in rioting
and drunkenness; we must abstain from all excess in eating and drinking. We
must not give the least countenance to revelling, nor indulge our sensual
appetite in any private excesses. Christians must not overcharge their hearts
with surfeiting and drunkenness, Luk_21:34.
This is not walking as in the day; for those that are drunk are drunk in the
night, 1Th_5:7. 2. Not in
chambering and wantonness; not in any of those lusts of the flesh, those
works of darkness, which are forbidden in the seventh commandment. Downright
adultery and fornication are the chambering forbidden. Lascivious thoughts and
affections, lascivious looks, words, books, sons, gestures, dances, dalliances,
which lead to, and are degrees of, that uncleanness, are the wantonness here
forbidden - whatsoever transgresseth the pure and sacred law of chastity and
modesty. 3. Not in strife and envying. These are also works of darkness;
for, though the acts and instances of strife and envy are very common, yet none
are willing to own the principles, or to acknowledge themselves envious and
contentious. it may be the lot of the best saints to be envied and striven
with; but to strive and to envy ill becomes the disciples and followers of the
peaceable and humble Jesus. Where there are riot and drunkenness, there usually
are chambering and wantonness, and strife and envy. Solomon puts them all
together, Pro_23:29, etc. Those that
tarry long at the wine (Pro_23:30) have
contentions and wounds without cause (Pro_23:29)
and their eyes behold strange women, Pro_23:33.
IV. What provision to make (Pro_23:14): “Make not provision for the
flesh. Be not careful about the body.” Our great care must be to provide
for our souls; but must we take no care about our bodies? Must we not provide
for them, when they need it? Yes, but two things are here forbidden: - 1.
Perplexing ourselves with an inordinate care, intimated in these words, pronoian
mē poieisthe. “Be not solicitous in forecasting for the body; do not
stretch your wits, nor set your thoughts upon the tenter-hooks, in making this
provision; be not careful and cumbered about it; do not take thought,” Mat_6:31. It forbids an anxious encumbering care.
2. Indulging ourselves in an irregular desire. We are not forbidden barely to
provide for the body (it is a lamp that must be supplied with oil), but we are
forbidden to fulfil the lusts thereof. The necessities of the body must be
considered, but the lusts of it must not be gratified. Natural desires must be
answered, but wanton appetites must be checked and denied. To ask meat for our
necessities is duty: we are taught to pray for daily bread; but to ask meat for
our lusts is provoking, Psa_78:18.
Those who profess to walk in the spirit must not fulfil the lusts of the flesh,
Gal_5:16.
Romans
14:1-23
We have in this
chapter,
I. An account of
the unhappy contention which had broken out in the Christian church. Our Master
had foretold that offences would come; and, it seems, so they did, for want of
that wisdom and love which would have prevented discord, and kept up union
among them.
1. There was a
difference among them about the distinction of meats and days; these are the
two things specified. There might be other similar occasions of difference,
while these made the most noise, and were most taken notice of. The case was
this: The members of the Christian church at Rome were some of them originally
Gentiles, and others of them Jews. We find Jews at Rome believing, Act_28:24. Now those that had been Jews were
trained up in the observance of the ceremonial appointments touching meats and
days. This, which had been bred in the bone with them, could hardly be got out
of the flesh, even after they turned Christians; especially with some of them,
who were not easily weaned from what they had long been wedded to. They were
not well instructed touching the cancelling of the ceremonial law by the death
of Christ, and therefore retained the ceremonial institutions, and practised
accordingly; while other Christians that understood themselves better, and knew
their Christian liberty, made no such difference. (1.) Concerning meats (Rom_14:2): One believeth that he may eat all
things - he is well satisfied that the ceremonial distinction of meats into
clean and unclean is no longer in force, but that every creature of God is
good, and nothing to be refused; nothing unclean of itself, Rom_14:14. This he was assured of, not only from
the general tenour and scope of the gospel, but particularly from the
revelation which Peter, the apostle of the circumcision (and therefore more
immediately concerned in it), had to this purport, Act_10:15,
Act_10:28. This the strong Christian is
clear in, and practises accordingly, eating what is set before him, and asking
no question for conscience' sake, 1Co_10:27.
On the other hand, another, who is weak, is dissatisfied in this point,
is not clear in his Christian liberty, but rather inclines to think that the
meats forbidden by the law remain still unclean; and therefore, to keep at a
distance from them, he will eat no flesh at all, but eateth herbs,
contenting himself with only the fruits of the earth. See to what degrees of
mortification and self-denial a tender conscience will submit. None know but
those that experience it how great both the restraining and the constraining
power of conscience is. (2.) Concerning days, Rom_14:5.
Those who thought themselves still under some kind of obligation to the
ceremonial law esteemed one day above another - kept up a respect to the
times of the passover, pentecost, new moons, and feasts of tabernacles; thought
those days better than other days, and solemnized them accordingly with
particular observances, binding themselves to some religious rest and exercise
on those days. Those who knew that all these things were abolished and done
away by Christ's coming esteemed every day alike. We must understand it with an
exception of the Lord's day, which all Christians unanimously observed; but
they made no account, took no notice, of those antiquated festivals of the
Jews. Here the apostle speaks of the distinction of meats and days as a thing
indifferent, when it went no further than the opinion and practice of some
particular persons, who had been trained up all their days to such observances,
and therefore were the more excusable if they with difficulty parted with them.
But in the epistle to the Galatians, where he deals with those that were
originally Gentiles, but were influenced by some judaizing teachers, not only
to believe such a distinction and to practise accordingly, but to lay a stress
upon it as necessary to salvation, and to make the observance of the Jewish
festivals public and congregational, here the case was altered, and it is
charged upon them as the frustrating of the design of the gospel, falling from
grace, Gal_4:9-11. The Romans did it
out of weakness, the Galatians did it out of wilfulness and wickedness; and
therefore the apostle handles them thus differently. This epistle is supposed to
have been written some time before that to the Galatians. The apostle seems
willing to let the ceremonial law wither by degrees, and to let it have an
honourable burial; now these weak Romans seem to be only following it weeping
to its grave, but those Galatians were raking it out of its ashes.
2. It was not so
much the difference itself that did the mischief as the mismanagement of the
difference, making it a bone of contention. (1.) Those who were strong, and
knew their Christian liberty, and made use of it, despised the weak, who did
not. Whereas they should have pitied them, and helped them, and afforded them
meek and friendly instruction, they trampled upon them as silly, and
humoursome, and superstitious, for scrupling those things which they knew to be
lawful: so apt are those who have knowledge to be puffed up with it, and to
look disdainfully and scornfully upon their brethren. (2.) Those who were weak,
and durst not use their Christian liberty, judged and censured the strong, who
did, as if they were loose Christians, carnal professors, that cared not what
they did, but walked at all adventures, and stuck at nothing. They judged them
as breakers of the law, contemners of God's ordinance, and the like. Such
censures as these discovered a great deal of rashness and uncharitableness, and
would doubtless tend much to the alienating of affection. Well, this was the
disease, and we see it remaining in the church to this day; the like
differences, in like manner mismanaged, are still the disturbers of the church's
peace. But,
II. We have
proper directions and suggestions laid down for allaying this contention, and
preventing the ill consequences of it. The apostle, as a wise physician,
prescribes proper remedies for the disease, which are made up of rules and
reasons. Such gentle methods does he take, with such cords of a man does he
draw them together; not by excommunicating, suspending, and silencing either
side, but by persuading them both to a mutual forbearance: and as a faithful
daysman he lays his hand upon them both, reasoning the case with the strong
that they should not be so scornful, and with the weak that they should not be
so censorious. If the contending parties will but submit to this fair
arbitration, each abate of his rigour, and sacrifice their differences to their
graces, all will be well quickly. Let us observe the rules he gives, some to
the strong and some to the weak, and some to both, for they are interwoven; and
reduce the reasons to their proper rules.
1. Those who are
weak must be received, but not to doubtful disputations, Rom_14:1. Take this for a general rule; spend
your zeal in those things wherein you and all the people of God are agreed, and
do not dispute about matters that are doubtful. Receive him, proslambanesthe - take him to you, bid
him welcome, receive him with the greatest affection and tenderness; porrigite
manum (so the Syriac): lend him your hand, to help him, to fetch him
to you, to encourage him. Receive him into your company, and converse, and
communion, entertain him with readiness and condescension, and treat him with
all possible endearments. Receive him: not to quarrel with him, and to argue
about uncertain points that are in controversy, which will but confound him,
and fill his head with empty notions, perplex him, and shake his faith. Let not
your Christian friendship and fellowship be disturbed with such vain janglings
and strifes of words. - Not to judge his doubtful thoughts (so the
margin), “not to pump out his weak sentiments concerning those things which he
is in doubt about, that you may censure and condemn him.” Receive him, not to
expose him, but to instruct and strengthen him. See 1Co_1:10;
Phi_3:15, Phi_3:16.
2. Those who are strong must by no means despise the
weak; nor those who are weak judge the strong, Rom_14:3.
This is levelled directly against the fault of each party. It is seldom that
any such contention exists but there is a fault on both sides, and both must
mend. He argues against both these jointly: we must not despise nor judge our
brethren. Why so?
(1.) Because God hath received them; and we reflect
upon him if we reject those whom he hath received. God never cast off any one
that had true grace, though he was but weak in it; never broke the bruised
reed. Strong believers and weak believers, those that eat and those that eat
not, if they be true believers, are accepted of God. It will be good for us to
put this question to ourselves, when we are tempted to behave scornfully
towards our brethren, to disdain and censure them: “Hast not God owned them;
and, if he has, dare I disown them?” “Nay, God doth not only receive him, but hold
him up, Rom_14:4. You think that he
who eateth will fall by his presumption, or that he who eateth not will sink
under the weight of his own fears and scruples; but if they have true faith,
and an eye to God, the one in the intelligent use of his Christian liberty and
the other in the conscientious forbearance of it, they shall be held up - the
one in his integrity, and the other in his comfort. This hope is built upon the
power of God, for God is able to make him stand; and, being able, no
doubt he is willing to exert that power for the preservation of those that are
his own.” In reference to spiritual difficulties and dangers (our own and
others), much of our hope and comfort are grounded upon the divine power, 1Pe_1:5; Jud_1:24.
(2.) Because they are servants to their own master (Rom_14:4): Who art thou that judgest another
man's servant? We reckon it a piece of ill manners to meddle with other
people's servants, and to find fault with them and censure them. Weak and
strong Christians are indeed our brethren, but they are not our servants. This
rash judging is reproved, Jam_3:1,
under the notion of being many masters. We make ourselves our brethren's
masters, and do in effect usurp the throne of God, when we take upon us thus to
judge them, especially to judge their thoughts and intentions, which are out of
our view, to judge their persons and state, concerning which it is hard to
conclude by those few indications which fall within our cognizance. God sees
not as man sees; and he is their master, and not we. In judging and censuring
our brethren, we meddle with that which does not belong to us: we have work
enough to do at home; and, if we must needs be judging, let us exercise our
faculty upon our own hearts and ways. - To his own master he stands or
falls; that is, his doom will be according to his master's sentence, and
not according to ours. How well for us is it that we are not to stand nor fall
by the judgment one of another, but by the righteous and unerring judgment of
God, which is according to truth! “While thy brother's cause is before thy
judgment, it is coram non judice - before one who is not the judge; the
court of heaven is the proper court for trial, where, and where only, the
sentence is definitive and conclusive; and to this, if his heart be upright, he
may comfortably appeal from thy rash censure.”
(3.) Because both the one and the other, if they be
true believers, and are right in the main, have an eye to God, and do approve
themselves to God in what they do, Rom_14:6.
He that regards the day - that makes conscience of the observance of the
Jewish fasts and festivals, not imposing it upon others, nor laying a stress
upon it, but willing to be as he thinks on the surer side, as thinking there is
no harm in resting from worldly labours, and worshipping God on those days - it
is well. We have reason to think, because in other things he conducts himself
like a good Christian, that in this also his eye is single, and that he
regardeth it unto the Lord; and God will accept of his honest intention,
though he be under a mistake about the observance of days; for the sincerity
and uprightness of the heart were never rejected for the weakness and infirmity
of the head: so good a master do we serve. On the other hand, he that
regards not the day - that does not make a difference between one day and
another, does not call one day holy and another profane, one day lucky and
another unlucky, but esteems every day alike - he does not do it out of a
spirit of opposition, contradiction, or contempt of his brother. If he be a
good Christian, he does not, he dares not, do it from such a principle; and
therefore we charitably conclude that to the Lord he does not regard it.
he makes no such difference of days only because he knows God hath made none;
and therefore intends his honour in endeavouring to dedicate ever day to him.
So for the other instance: He that eateth whatever is set before him,
though it be blood, though it be swine's flesh, if it be food convenient for
him, he eateth to the Lord. He understands the liberty that God has
granted him, and uses it to the glory of God, with an eye to his wisdom and
goodness in enlarging our allowance now under the gospel, and taking off the
yoke of legal restraints; and he giveth God thanks for the variety of
food he has, and the liberty he has to eat it, and that in those things his
conscience is not fettered. On the other hand, he that eatest not those
meats which were forbidden by the ceremonial law, to the Lord he eateth not.
It is for God's sake, because he is afraid of offending God by eating that
which he is sure was once prohibited; and he giveth God thanks too that
there is enough besides. If he conscientiously deny himself that which he takes
to be forbidden fruit, yet he blesses God that of other trees in the garden he
may freely eat. Thus, while both have an eye to God in what they do, and
approve themselves to him in their integrity, why should either of them be
judged or despised? Observe, Whether we eat flesh, or eat herbs, it is a
thankful regard to God, the author and giver of all our mercies, that
sanctifies and sweetens it. Bishop Sanderson, in his 34th sermon, upon 1Ti_4:4, justly makes this observation: It
appears by this that saying grace (as we commonly call it, perhaps from 1Co_10:30) before and after meat was the common
known practice of the church, among Christians of all sorts, weak and strong:
an ancient, commendable, apostolical, Christian practice, derived down from
Christ's example through all the ages of the church, Mat_14:19; Mat_15:36;
Luk_9:16; Joh_6:11;
Mat_26:26, Mat_26:27;
Act_27:35. Blessing the creatures in
the name of God before we use them, and blessing the name of God for them
after, are both included; for eulogein and eucharistein are used
promiscuously. To clear this argument against rash judging and despising, he
shows how essential it is to true Christianity to have a regard to God and not
to ourselves, which therefore, unless the contrary do manifestly appear, we
must presume concerning those that in minor things differ from us. Observe his
description of true Christians, taken from their end and aim (Rom_14:7, Rom_14:8),
and the ground of it, Rom_14:9.
[1.] Our end and aim: not self, but the Lord. As the
particular end specifies the action, so the general scope and tendency specify
the state. if we would know what way we walk in, we must enquire what end we
walk towards. First, Not to self. We have learned to deny ourselves;
this was our first lesson: None of us liveth to himself. This is a thing
in which all the people of God are one, however they differ in other things;
though some are weak and others are strong, yet both agree in this, not to live
to themselves. Not one that hath given up his name to Christ is allowedly a
self-seeker; it is contrary to the foundation of true Christianity. We neither live
to ourselves nor die to ourselves. We are not our own masters, nor our own
proprietors - we are not at our own disposal. The business of our lives is not
to please ourselves, but to please God. The business of our deaths, to which we
are every day exposed and delivered, is not to make ourselves talked of; we run
not such hazards out of vain-glory, while we are dying daily. When we come to
die actually, neither is that to ourselves; it is not barely that we would be
unclothed, and eased of the burden of the flesh, but it is to the Lord, that we
may depart and be with Christ, may be present with the Lord. Secondly,
But to the Lord (Rom_14:8), to
the Lord Christ, to whom all power and judgment are committed, and in whose
name we are taught, as Christians, to do every thing we do (Col_3:17), with an eye to the will of Christ as
our rule, to the glory of Christ as our end, Phi_1:21.
Christ is the gain we aim at, living and dying. We live to glorify him in all
the actions and affairs of life; we die, whether a natural or a violent death,
to glorify him, and to go to be glorified with him. Christ is the centre, in
which all the lines of life and death do meet. This is true Christianity, which
makes Christ all in all. So that, whether we live or die, we are the Lord's,
devoted to him, depending on him, designed and designing for him. Though some
Christians are weak and others strong, - though of different sizes, capacities,
apprehensions, and practices, in minor things, yet they are all the Lord's -
all eying, and serving, and approving themselves to Christ, and are accordingly
owned and accepted of him. Is it for us then to judge or despise them, as if we
were their masters, and they were to make it their business to please us, and
to stand or fall by our dooms?
[2.] The ground of this, Rom_14:9.
It is grounded upon Christ's absolute sovereignty and dominion, which were the
fruit and end of his death and resurrection. To this end he both died, and
rose, and revived (he, having risen, entered upon a heavenly life, the
glory which he had before) that he might be Lord both of dead and living
- that he might be universal monarch, Lord of all (Act_10:36),
all the animate and inanimate creatures; for he is head over all things to the
church. He is Lord of those that are living to rule them, of those that are
dead to receive them and raise them up. This was that name above every name
which God gave him as the reward of his humiliation, Phi_2:8, Phi_2:9. It
was after he had died and risen that he said, All power is given unto me
(Mat_28:18), and presently he exerts
that power in issuing out commissions, Rom_14:19,
Rom_14:20. Now if Christ paid so dearly
for his dominion over souls and consciences, and has such a just and undisputed
right to exercise that dominion, we must not so much as seem to invade it, nor
intrench upon it, by judging the consciences of our brethren, and arraigning
them at our bar. When we are ready to reproach and reflect upon the name and
memory of those that are dead and gone, and to pass a censure upon them (which
some the rather do, because such judgments of the dead are more likely to pass
uncontrolled and uncontradicted), we must consider that Christ is Lord of the
dead, as well as of the living. If they are dead, they have already given up their
account, and let that suffice. And this leads to another reason against judging
and despising,
(4.) Because both the one and the other must shortly
give an account, Rom_14:10-12. A
believing regard to the judgment of the great day would silence all these rash
judgings: Why dost thou that art weak judge thy brother that is
strong? And why dost thou that art strong set at nought thy brother
that is weak? Why is all this clashing, and contradicting, and censuring, among
Christians? We shall all stand before the judgment-seat of Christ, 2Co_5:10. Christ will be the judge, and he has
both authority and ability to determine men's eternal state according to their
works, and before him we shall stand as persons to be tried, and to give up an
account, expecting our final doom from him, which will be eternally conclusive.
To illustrate this (Rom_14:11), he
quotes a passage out of the Old Testament, which speaks of Christ's universal
sovereignty and dominion, and that established with an oath: As I live
(saith the Lord), every knee shall bow to me. It is quoted from Isa_45:23. There it is, I have sworn by
myself; here it is, As I live. So that whenever God saith As I
live, it is to be interpreted as swearing by himself; for it is God's
prerogative to have life in himself: there is a further ratification of it
there, The word is gone out of my mouth. It is a prophecy, in general,
of Christ's dominion; and here very fully applied to the judgment of the great
day, which will be the highest and most illustrious exercise of that dominion.
Here is a proof of Christ's Godhead: he is the Lord and he is God, equal with
the Father. Divine honour is due to him, and must be paid. It is paid to God
through him as Mediator. God will judge the world by him, Act_17:31. The bowing of the knee to him, and
the confession made with the tongue, are but outward expressions of inward
adoration and praise. Every knee and every tongue, either freely
or by force.
[1.] All his friends do it freely, are made willing in
the day of his power. Grace is the soul's cheerful, entire, and avowed
subjection to Jesus Christ. First, Bowing to him - the understanding
bowed to his truths, the will to his laws, the whole man to his authority; and
this expressed by the bowing of the knee, the posture of adoration and prayer.
It is proclaimed before our Joseph, Bow the knee, Gen_41:43. Though bodily exercise alone profits
little, yet, as it is guided by inward fear and reverence, it is accepted. Secondly,
Confessing to him - acknowledging his glory, grace, and greatness -
acknowledging our own meanness and vileness, confessing our sins to him; so
some understand it.
[2.] All his foes shall be constrained to do it,
whether they will or no. When he shall come in the clouds, and every eye shall
see him, then, and not till then, will all those promises which speak of his
victories over his enemies and their subjection to him have their full and
complete accomplishment; then his foes shall be his footstool, and all his
enemies shall lick the dust. hence he concludes (Rom_14:12),
Every one of us shall give account of himself to God. We must not give
account for others, nor they for us; but every one for himself. We must give
account how we have spent our time, how we have improved our opportunities,
what we have done and how we have done it. And therefore, First, We have
little to do to judge others, for they are not accountable to us, nor are we
accountable for them (Gal_2:6): Whatsoever
they were, it maketh no matter to me, God accepteth no man's person.
Whatever they are, and whatever they do, they must give account to their own
master, and not to us; if we can in any thing be helpers of their joy, it is
well; but we have not dominion over their faith. And, Secondly, We have
the more to do to judge ourselves. We have an account of our own to make up,
and that is enough for us; let every man prove his own work (Gal_6:4), state his own accounts, search his own
heart and life; let this take up his thoughts, and he that is strict in judging
himself and abasing himself will not be apt to judge and despise his brother.
let all these differences be referred to the arbitration of Christ at the great
day.
(5.) Because the stress of Christianity is not to be
laid upon these things, nor are they at all essential to religion, either on
the one side or on the other. This is his reason (Rom_14:17,
Rom_14:18), which is reducible to this
branch of exhortation. Why should you spend your zeal either for or against
those things which are so minute and inconsiderable in religion? Some make it a
reason why, in case of offence likely to be taken, we should refrain the use of
our Christian liberty; but it seems directed in general against that heat about
those things which he observed on both sides. The kingdom of God is not
meat, etc. Observe here,
[1.] The nature of true Christianity, what it is: it is
here called, The kingdom of God; it is a religion intended to rule us, a
kingdom: it stands in a true and hearty subjection to God's power and dominion.
The gospel dispensation is in a special manner called the kingdom of God,
in distinction from the legal dispensation, Mat_3:2;
Mat_4:17. First, It is not
meat and drink: it does not consist either in using or in abstaining from
such and such meats and drinks. Christianity gives no rule in that case, either
in one way or another. The Jewish religion consisted much in meats and drinks (Heb_9:10), abstaining from some meats
religiously (Lev_11:2), eating other
meats religiously, as in several of the sacrifices, part of which were to be
eaten before the Lord: but all those appointments are now abolished and are no
more, Col_2:21, Col_2:22. The matter is left at large. Every creature
of God is good, 1Ti_4:4. So, as to
other things, it is neither circumcision nor uncircumcision (Gal_5:6; Gal_6:15;
1Co_7:19), it is not being of this
party and persuasion, of this or the other opinion in minor things, that will
recommend us to God. It will not be asked at the great day, “Who ate flesh, and
who ate herbs?” “Who kept holy days, and who did not?” Nor will it be asked,
“Who was conformist and who was non-conformist?” But it will be asked, “Who
feared God and worked righteousness, and who did not?” Nothing more destructive
to true Christianity than placing it in modes, and forms, and circumstantials,
which eat out the essentials. Secondly, It is righteousness, and peace, and
joy in the Holy Ghost. These are some of the essentials of Christianity,
things in which all the people of God are agreed, in the pursuit of which we
must spend our zeal, and which we must mind with an excelling care.
Righteousness, peace, and joy, are very comprehensive words; and each of them
includes much, both of the foundation and the superstructure of religion. Might
I limit the sense of them, it should be thus: - As to God, our great concern is
righteousness - to appear before him justified by the merit of Christ's
death, sanctified by the Spirit of his grace; for the righteous Lord loveth
righteousness. As to our brethren, it is peace - to live in peace and
love, and charity with them, following peace with all men: Christ came into the
world to be the great peace-maker. As to ourselves, it is joy in the Holy
Ghost - that spiritual joy which is wrought by the blessed Spirit in the
hearts of believers, which respects God as their reconciled Father and heaven
as their expected home. Next to our compliance with God, the life of religion
consists in our complacency in him; to delight ourselves always in the Lord. Surely
we serve a good Master, who makes peace and joy so essential to our religion.
Then and then only we may expect peace and joy in the Holy Ghost when the
foundation is laid in righteousness, Isa_32:17.
Thirdly, It is in these things to serve Christ (Rom_14:18), to do all this out of respect to
Christ himself as our Master, to his will as our rule and to his glory as our
end. That which puts an acceptableness upon all our good duties is a regard to
Christ in the doing of them. We are to serve his interests and designs in the
world, which are in the first place to reconcile us one to another. What is
Christianity but the serving of Christ? And we may well afford to serve him who
for us and for our salvation took upon him the form of a servant.
[2.] The advantages of it. He that duly observeth these
things, First, Is acceptable to God. God is well pleased with such a
one, though he be not in every thing just of our length. He has the love and
favour of God; his person, his performances, are accepted of God, and we need
no more to make us happy. If God now accepts thy works, thou mayest eat thy
bread with joy. Those are most pleasing to God that are best pleased with him;
and they are those that abound most in peace and joy in the Holy Ghost. Secondly,
He is approved of men - of all wise and good men, and the opinion of others is
not to be regarded. The persons and things which are acceptable to God should
be approved of us. Should not we be pleased with that which God is pleased
with? What is it to be sanctified, but to be of God's mind? Observe, The
approbation of men is not to be slighted; for we must provide things honest in
the sight of all men, and study those things that are lovely and of good
report: but the acceptance of God is to be desired and aimed at in the first
place, because, sooner or later, God will bring all the world to be of his
mind.
3. Another rule here given is this, that in these
doubtful things every one not only may, but must, walk according to the light
that God hath given him. This is laid down Rom_14:5,
Let every man be fully persuaded in his own mind; that is, “Practise
according to your own judgment in these things, and leave others to do so too.
Do not censure the practice of others; let them enjoy their own opinion; if
they be persuaded in their own mind that they ought to do so and so, do not
condemn them, but, if your sober sentiments be otherwise, do not make their
practice a rule to you, any more than you must prescribe yours as a rule to
them. Take heed of acting contrary to the dictates of a doubting conscience.
First be persuaded that what you do is lawful, before you venture to do it.” In
doubtful things, it is good keeping on the sure side of the hedge. If a weak
Christian doubts whether it be lawful to eat flesh, while he remains under that
doubt he had best forbear, till he be fully persuaded in his own mind. We must
not pin our faith upon any one's sleeve, nor make the practice of others our
rule; but follow the dictates of our own understanding. To this purport he argues,
Rom_14:14 and Rom_14:23, which two verses explain this, and
give us a rule not to act against the dictates,
(1.) Of a mistaken conscience, Rom_14:14. If a thing be indifferent, so that it
is not in itself a sin not to do it, if we really think it a sin to do it it is
to us a sin, though not to others, because we act against our consciences,
though mistaken and misinformed. He specifies the case in hand, concerning the
difference of meats. Observe,
[1.] His own clearness in this matter. “I know and
am persuaded - I am fully persuaded, I am acquainted with my Christian
liberty, and am satisfied in it, without any doubt or scruple, that there is
nothing unclean of itself, that is, no kind of meat that lies under any
ceremonial uncleanness, nor is forbidden to be eaten, if it be food proper for
human bodies.” Several kinds of meat were forbidden to the Jews, that in that,
as in other things, they might be a peculiar and separate people, Lev_11:44; Deu_14:2,
Deu_14:3. Sin had brought a curse upon
the whole creation: Cursed is the ground for thy sake; the use of the
creatures and dominion over them were forfeited, so that to man they were all
unclean (Tit_1:15), in token of which
God in the ceremonial law prohibited the use of some, to show what he might
have done concerning all; but now that Christ has removed the curse the matter
is set at large again, and that prohibition is taken away. Therefore Paul says
that he was persuaded by the Lord Jesus, not only as the author of that
persuasion, but as the ground of it; it was built upon the efficacy of Christ's
death, which removed the curse, took off the forfeiture, and restored our right
to the creature in general, and consequently put a period to that particular
distinguishing prohibition. So that now there is nothing unclean of itself,
every creature of God is good; nothing common: so the margin, ouden
koinon; nothing which is common to others to eat, from the use of which the
professors of religion are restrained: nothing profane; in this sense the Jews
used the word common. It is explained by the word akatharton, Act_10:14, nothing common or unclean.
It was not only from the revelation made to Peter in this matter, but from the
tenour and tendency of the whole gospel, and from the manifest design of
Christ's death in general, that Paul learned to count nothing common or
unclean. This was Paul's own clearness, and he practised accordingly.
[2.] But here is a caution he gives to those who had
not that clearness in this matter which he had: To him that esteemeth any thing
to be unclean, though it be his error, yet to him it is unclean.
This particular case, thus determined, gives a general rule, That he who does a
thing which he verily believes to be unlawful, however the thing be in itself,
to him it is a sin. This arises from that unchangeable law of our creation,
which is, that our wills, in all their choices, motions, and directions, should
follow the dictates of our understandings. This is the order of nature, which
order is broken if the understanding (though misguided) tell us that such a
thing is a sin, and yet we will do it. This is a will to do evil; for,
if it appears to us to be sin, there is the same pravity and corruption of the
will in the doing of it as if really it were a sin; and therefore we ought not
to do it. Not that it is in the power of any man's conscience to alter the
nature of the action in itself, but only as to himself. It must be understood
likewise with this proviso, though men's judgments and opinions may make that
which is good in itself to become evil to them, yet they cannot make that which
is evil in itself to become good, either in itself or to them. If a man were
verily persuaded (it is Dr. Sanderson's instance, sermon on Rom_14:23) that it were evil to ask his father's
blessing, that mispersuasion would make it become evil to him: but, if he
should be as verily persuaded that it were good to curse his father, this would
not make it become good. The Pharisees taught people to plead conscience, when
they made corban an excuse for denying relief to their parents, Mat_15:5, Mat_15:6.
But this would not serve any more than Paul's erroneous conscience would
justify his rage against Christianity (Act_26:9),
or theirs, Joh_16:2.
(2.) Nor must we act against the dictates of a doubting
conscience. In those indifferent things which we are sure it is no sin not to
do, and yet are not clear that it is lawful to do them, we must not do them
while we continue under those doubts; for he that doubteth is damned if he
eat (Rom_14:23), that is, it turns
into sin to him; he is damned, katakekritai - he is condemned
of his own conscience, because he eateth not of faith, because he does
that which he is not fully persuaded he may lawfully do. He is not clear that
it is lawful for him to eat swine's flesh (suppose), and yet is drawn,
notwithstanding his doubts, to eat it, because he sees others do it, because he
would gratify his appetite with it, or because he would not be reproached for
his singularity. Here his own heart cannot but condemn him as a transgressor.
our rule is, to walk as far as we have attained, not further, Phi_3:15, Phi_3:16.
- For whatsoever is not of faith is sin. Taking it in general, it is the
same with that of the apostle (Heb_11:6),
Without faith it is impossible to please God. Whatever we do in
religion, it will not turn to any good account, except we do it from a
principle of faith, with a believing regard to the will of Christ as our rule,
to the glory of Christ as our end, and to the righteousness of Christ as our
plea. Here it seems to be taken more strictly; whatever is not of faith (that
is, whatever is done while we are not clearly persuaded of the lawfulness of
it), is a sin against conscience. He that will venture to do that which his own
conscience suggests to him to be unlawful, when it is not so in itself, will by
a like temptation be brought to do that which his conscience tells him is unlawful
when it is really so. The spirit of a man is the candle of the Lord, and it is
a dangerous thing to debauch and put a force upon conscience, though it be
under a mistake. This seems to be the meaning of that aphorism, which sounds
somewhat darkly (Rom_14:22), Happy
is he that condemns not himself in that thing which he allows. Many a one
allows himself in practice to do that which yet in his judgment and conscience
he condemns himself for - allows it for the sake of the pleasure, profit, or
credit of it - allows it in conformity to the custom; and yet whilst he does
it, and pleas for it, his own heart gives him the lie, and his conscience
condemns him for it. Now, happy is the man who so orders his conversation as
not in any action to expose himself to the challenges and reproaches of his own
conscience - that does not make his own heart his adversary, as he must needs
do who does that which he is not clear he may lawfully do. He is happy that has
peace and quietness within, for the testimony of conscience will be a special
cordial in troublesome times. Though men condemn us, it is well enough if our
own hearts condemn us not, 1Jo_3:21.
4. Another rule here prescribed is to those who are
clear in these matters, and know their Christian liberty, yet to take heed of
using it so as to give offence to a weak brother. This is laid down Rom_14:13, Let us not judge one another any
more. “Let it suffice that you have hitherto continued in this uncharitable
practice, and do so no more.” The better to insinuate the exhortation, he puts
himself in; Let us not; as if he had said, “It is what I have resolved against,
therefore do you leave it: but judge this rather, instead of censuring
the practice of others, let us look to our own, that no man put a
stumbling-block, or an occasion to fall, in his brother's way,” - proskomma
ē skandalon. We must take heed of saying or doing any thing which may
occasion our brother to stumble or fall; the one signifies a less, the other a
greater degree of mischief and offence - that which may be an occasion,
(1.) Of grief to our brother, “One that is weak, and
thinks it unlawful to eat such and such meats, will be greatly troubled to see
thee eat them, out of a concern for the honour of the law which he thinks
forbids them, and for the good of thy soul which he thinks is wronged by them,
especially when thou dost it wilfully and with a seeming presumption, and not
with that tenderness and that care to give satisfaction to thy weak brother
which would become thee.” Christians should take heed of grieving one another,
and of saddening the hearts of Christ's little ones. See Mat_18:6, Mat_18:10.
(2.) Of guilt to our brother. The former is a stumbling-block,
that gives our brother a great shake, and is a hindrance and discouragement to
him; but this is an occasion to fall. “If thy weak brother, purely by
thy example and influence, without any satisfaction received concerning his
Christian liberty, be drawn to act against his conscience and to walk contrary
to the light he has, and so to contract guilt upon his soul, though the thing
were lawful to thee, yet not being so to him (he having not yet thereto
attained), thou art to be blamed for giving the occasion.” See this case
explained, 1Co_8:9-11. To the same
purport (Rom_14:21) he recommends it to
our care not to give offence to any one by the use of lawful things: It is
good neither to eat flesh nor to drink wine; these are things lawful indeed
and comfortable, but not necessary to the support of human life, and therefore
we may, and must, deny ourselves in them, rather than give offence. It is
good - pleasing to God, profitable to our brother, and no harm to
ourselves. Daniel and his fellows were in better liking with pulse and water
than those were who ate the portion of the king's meat. It is a generous piece
of self-denial, for which we have Paul's example (1Co_8:13),
If meat make my brother to offend; he does not say, I will eat no
meat, that is to destroy himself; but I will eat no flesh, that is
to deny himself, while the world stands. This is to be extended to all
such indifferent things whereby thy brother stumbleth, or is offended, is
involved either in sin or in trouble: or is made weak - his graces
weakened, his comforts weakened, his resolutions weakened. Is made weak,
that is, takes occasion to show his weakness by his censures and scruples. We
must not weaken those that are weak; that is to quench the smoking flax and to
break the bruised reed. Observe the motives to enforce this caution.
[1.] Consider the royal law of Christian love and
charity, which is hereby broken (v. 15): If thy brother be grieved with thy
meat - be troubled to see thee eat those things which the law of Moses did
forbid, which yet thou mayest lawfully do; possibly thou art ready to say, “Now
he talks foolishly and weakly, and it is no great matter what he says.” We are
apt, in such a case, to lay all the blame on that side. But the reproof is here
given to the stronger and more knowing Christian: Now walkest thou not
charitably. Thus the apostle takes part with the weakest, and condemns the
defect in love on the one side more than the defect in knowledge on the other
side; agreeably to his principles elsewhere, that the way of love is the more
excellent way, 1Co_12:31. Knowledge
puffeth up, but charity edifieth, 1Co_8:1-3.
Now walkest thou not charitably. Charity to the souls of our brethren is
the best charity. True love would make us tender of their peace and purity, and
beget a regard to their consciences as well as to our own. Christ deals gently
with those that have true grace, though they are weak in it.
[2.] Consider the design of Christ's death: Destroy
not him with thy meat for whom Christ died, Rom_14:15.
First, Drawing a soul to sin threatens the destruction of that soul. By
shaking his faith, provoking his passion, and tempting him to act against the
light of his own conscience, thou dost, as much as in thee lies, destroy him,
giving him an occasion to return to Judaism. Mē apollue. It denotes an
utter destruction. The beginning of sin is as the letting forth of water; we
are not sure that it will stop any where on this side of eternal destruction. Secondly,
The consideration of the love of Christ in dying for souls should make us very
tender of the happiness and salvation of souls, and careful not to do any thing
which may obstruct and hinder them. Did Christ quit a life for souls, such a
life, and shall not we quit a morsel of meat for them? Shall we despise those
whom Christ valued at so high a rate? Did he think it worth while to deny
himself so much for them as to die for them, and shall not we think it worth
while to deny ourselves so little for them as abstaining from flesh comes to? -
with thy meat. Thou pleadest that it is thy own meat, and thou mayest do
what thou wilt with it; but remember that, though the meat is thine, the
brother offended by it is Christ's, and a part of his purchase. While thou
destroyest thy brother thou art helping forward the devil's design, for he is
the great destroyer; and, as much as in thee lies, thou art crossing the design
of Christ, for he is the great Saviour, and dost not only offend thy brother,
but offend Christ; for the work of salvation is that which his heart is upon.
But are any destroyed for whom Christ died? If we understand it of the
sufficiency and general intendment of Christ's death, which was to save all
upon gospel terms, no doubt but multitudes are. If of the particular
determination of the efficacy of his death to the elect, then, though none that
were given to Christ shall perish (Joh_6:39),
yet thou mayest, as much as is in thy power, destroy such. No thanks to thee if
they be not destroyed; by doing that which has a tendency to it, thou dost
manifest a great opposition to Christ. Nay, and thou mayest utterly destroy
some whose profession may be so justifiable that thou art bound to believe, in
a judgment of charity, that Christ died for them. Compare this with 1Co_8:10, 1Co_8:11.
[3.] Consider the work of God (Rom_14:20): “For meat destroy not the work of
God - the work of grace, particularly the work of faith in thy brother's
soul.” The works of peace and comfort are destroyed by such an offence given;
take heed of it therefore; do not undo that which God hath done. You should
work together with God, do not countermine his work. First, The work of
grace and peace is the work of God; it is wrought by him, it is wrought for
him; it is a good work of his beginning, Phi_1:6.
Observe, The same for whom Christ died (Rom_14:15)
are here called the work of God; besides the work that is wrought for us there
is a work to be wrought in us, in order to our salvation. Every saint is God's
workmanship, his husbandry, his building, Eph_2:10;
1Co_3:9. Secondly, We must be very
careful to do nothing which tends to the destruction of this work, either in
ourselves or others. We must deny ourselves in our appetites, inclinations, and
in the use of Christian liberty, rather than obstruct and prejudice our own or
others' grace and peace. Many do for meat and drink destroy the work of God in
themselves (nothing more destructive to eh soul than pampering and pleasing the
flesh, and fulfilling the lusts of it), so likewise in others, by wilful
offence given. Think what thou destroyest - the work of God, whose work
is honourable and glorious; think for what thou destroyest it - for meat,
which was but for the belly, and the belly for it.
[4.] Consider the evil of
giving offence, and what an abuse it is of our Christian liberty. He grants
that all things indeed are pure. We may lawfully eat flesh, even those
meats which were prohibited by the ceremonial law; but, if we abuse this
liberty, it turns into sin to us: It is evil to him that eats with offence.
Lawful things may be done unlawfully. - Eats with offence, either
carelessly or designedly giving offence to his brethren. It is observable that
the apostle directs his reproof most against those who gave the offence; not as
if those were not to be blamed who causelessly and weakly took the offence from
their ignorance of Christian liberty, and the want of that charity which is not
easily provoked and which thinketh no evil (he several times tacitly reflects
upon them), but he directs his speech to the strong, because they were better able
to bear the reproof, and to begin the reformation. For the further pressing of
this rule, we may here observe two directions which have relation to it: - First,
Let not then your good be evil spoken of (Rom_14:16)
- take heed of doing any thing which may give occasion to others to speak evil,
either of the Christian religion in general, or of your Christian liberty in
particular. The gospel is your good; the liberties and franchises, the
privileges and immunities, granted by it, are your good; your knowledge and
strength of grace to discern and use your liberty in things disputed are your
good, a good which the weak brother hath not. Now let not this be evil spoken
of. It is true we cannot hinder loose and ungoverned tongues from speaking evil
of us, and of the best things we have; but we must not (if we can help it) give
them any occasion to do it. Let not the reproach arise from any default of
ours; as 1Ti_4:12, Let no man
despise thee, that is, do not make thyself despicable. So here, Do not use
your knowledge and strength in such a manner as to give occasion to people to
call it presumption and loose walking, and disobedience to God's law. We must
deny ourselves in many cases for the preservation of our credit and reputation,
forbearing to do that which we rightly know we may lawfully do, when our doing
it may be a prejudice to our good name; as, when it is suspicious and has the
appearance of evil, or when it becomes scandalous among good people, or has any
way a brand upon it. In such a case we must rather cross ourselves than shame
ourselves. Though it be but a little folly, it may be like a dead fly, very
prejudicial to one that is in reputation for wisdom and honour, Ecc_10:1. We may apply it more generally. We
should manage all our good duties in such a manner that they may not be evil
spoken of. That which for the matter of it is good and unexceptionable may
sometimes, by mismanagement, be rendered liable to a great deal of censure and
reproach. Good praying, preaching, and discourse, may often, for want of
prudence in ordering the time, the expression, and other circumstances to
edification, be evil spoken of. It is indeed their sin who do speak evil of
that which is good for the sake of any such circumstantial errors, but it is
our folly if we give any occasion to do so. As we tender the reputation of the
good we profess and practise, let us so order it that it may not be evil spoken
of. Secondly, Hast thou faith? Have it to thyself before God, Rom_14:22. It is not meant of justifying faith
(that must not be hid, but manifested by our works), but of a knowledge and
persuasion of our Christian liberty in things disputed. “Hast thou clearness in
such a particular? Art thou satisfied that thou mayest eat all meats, and
observe all days (except the Lord's day) alike? Have it to thyself, that
is, enjoy the comfort of it in thy own bosom, and do not trouble others by the
imprudent use of it, when it might give offence, and cause thy weak brother to
stumble and fall.” In these indifferent things, though we must never contradict
our persuasion, yet we may sometimes conceal it, when the avowing of it will do
more hurt than good. Have it to thyself - a rule to thyself (not to be
imposed upon others, or made a rule to them), or a rejoicing to thyself.
Clearness in doubtful matters contributes very much to our comfortable walking,
as it frees us from those scruples, jealousies, and suspicions, which those who
have not such clearness are entangled in endlessly. Compare Gal_6:4, Let every man prove his own work,
that is, bring it to the touchstone of the word and try it by that so exactly
as to be well satisfied in what he does; and then he shall have rejoicing in
himself alone, and not in another. Paul had faith in these things: I am
persuaded that there is nothing unclean of itself; but he had it to
himself, so as not to use his liberty to the offence of others. How happy were
it for the church if those that have a clearness in disputable things would be
satisfied to have it to themselves before God, and not impose those things upon
others, and make them terms of communions, than which nothing is more opposite
to Christian liberty, nor more destructive both to the peace of churches and
the peace of consciences. That healing method is not the less excellent for
being common: in things necessary let there be unity, things unnecessary let
there be liberty, and in both let there be charity, then all will be well
quickly. - Have it to thyself before God. The end of such knowledge is
that, being satisfied in our liberty, we may have a conscience void of offence
towards God, and let that content us. That is the true comfort which we have
before God. Those are right indeed that are so in God's sight.
Romans
15:1-4
The apostle here
lays down two precepts, with reasons to enforce them, showing the duty of the
strong Christian to consider and condescend to the weakest.
I. We must bear
the infirmities of the weak, Rom_15:1.
We all have our infirmities; but the weak are more subject to them than others
- the weak in knowledge or grace, the bruised reed and the smoking flax. We
must consider these; not trample upon them, but encourage them, and bear with
their infirmities. If through weakness they judge and censure us, and speak
evil of us, we must bear with them, pity them, and not have our affections
alienated from them. Alas! it is their weakness, they cannot help it. Thus
Christ bore with his weak disciples, and apologised for them. But there is more
in it; we must also bear their infirmities by sympathizing with them,
concerning ourselves for them, ministering strength to them, as there is
occasion. This is bearing one another's burdens.
II. We must not
please ourselves, but our neighbour, Rom_15:1,
Rom_15:2. We must deny our own humour,
in consideration of our brethren's weakness and infirmity.
1. Christians
must not please themselves. We must not make it our business to gratify all the
little appetites and desires of our own heart; it is good for us to cross
ourselves sometimes, and then we shall the better bear others crossing of us.
We shall be spoiled (as Adonijah was) if we be always humoured. The first
lesson we have to learn is to deny ourselves, Mat_16:24.
2. Christians
must please their brethren. The design of Christianity is to soften and meeken
the spirit, to teach us the art of obliging and true complaisance; not to be
servants to the lust of any, but to the necessities and infirmities of our
brethren - to comply with all that we have to do with as fare as we can with a
good conscience. Christians should study to be pleasing. As we must not please
ourselves in the use of our Christian liberty (which was allowed us, not for
our own pleasure, but for the glory of God and the profit and edification of
others), so we must please our neighbour. How amiable and comfortable a society
would the church of Christ be if Christians would study to please one another,
as now we see them commonly industrious to cross, and thwart, and contradict
one another! - Please his neighbour, not in every thing, it is not an
unlimited rule; but for his good, especially for the good of his soul:
not please him by serving his wicked wills, and humouring him in a sinful way,
or consenting to his enticements, or suffering sin upon him; this is a base way
of pleasing our neighbour to the ruin of his soul: if we thus please men, we
are not the servants of Christ; but please him for his good; not for our own
secular good, or to make a prey of him, but for his spiritual good. - To
edification, that is, not only for his profit, but for the profit of
others, to edify the body of Christ, by studying to oblige one another. The
closer the stones lie, and the better they are squared to fit one another, the
stronger is the building. Now observe the reason why Christians must please one
another: For even Christ pleased not himself. The self-denial of our
Lord Jesus is the best argument against the selfishness of Christians. Observe,
(1.) That Christ
pleased not himself. He did not consult his own worldly credit, ease, safety,
nor pleasure; he had not where to lay his head, lived upon alms, would not be
made a king, detested no proposal with greater abhorrence than that, Master,
spare thyself, did not seek his own will (Joh_5:30), washed his disciples' feet, endured the
contradiction of sinners against himself, troubled himself (Joh_11:33), did not consult his own honour, and,
in a word, emptied himself, and made himself of no reputation: and all this for
our sakes, to bring in a righteousness for us, and to set us an example. His
whole life was a self-denying self-displeasing life. He bore the infirmities
of the weak, Heb_4:15.
(2.) That herein
the scripture was fulfilled: As it is written, The reproaches of those that
reproached thee fell on me. This is quoted out of Psa_69:9, the former part of which verse is
applied to Christ (Joh_2:17), The
zeal of thine house hath eaten me up; and the latter part here; for David
was a type of Christ, and his sufferings of Christ's sufferings. It is quoted
to show that Christ was so far from pleasing himself that he did in the highest
degree displease himself. Not as if his undertaking, considered on the whole,
were a task and grievance to him, for he was very willing to it and very
cheerful in it; but in his humiliation the content and satisfaction of natural
inclination were altogether crossed and denied. He preferred our benefit before
his own ease and pleasure. This the apostle chooses to express in scripture
language; for how can the things of the Spirit of God be better spoken of than
in the Spirit's own words? And this scripture he alleges, The reproaches of
those that reproached thee fell on me. [1.] The shame of those reproaches,
which Christ underwent. Whatever dishonour was done to God was a trouble to the
Lord Jesus. He was grieved for the hardness of people's hearts, beheld a sinful
place with sorrow and tears. When the saints were persecuted, Christ so far
displeased himself as to take what was done to them as done against himself: Saul,
Saul, why persecutest thou me? Christ also did himself endure the greatest
indignities; there was much of reproach in his sufferings. [2.] The sin of
those reproaches, for which Christ undertook to satisfy; so many understand it.
Every sin is a kind of reproach to God, especially presumptuous sins; now the
guilt of these fell upon Christ, when he was made sin, that is, a sacrifice, a
sin-offering for us. When the Lord laid upon him the iniquities of us all, and
he bore our sins in his own body upon the tree, they fell upon him as upon our
surety. Upon me be the curse. This was the greatest piece of
self-displacency that could be: considering his infinite spotless purity and
holiness, the infinite love of the Father to him, and his eternal concern for
his Father's glory, nothing could be more contrary to him, nor more against
him, than to be made sin and a curse for us, and to have the reproaches of God
fall upon him, especially considering for whom he thus displeased himself, for
strangers, enemies, and traitors, the just for the unjust, 1Pe_3:18. This seems to come in as a reason why
we should bear the infirmities of the weak. We must not please ourselves, for
Christ pleased not himself; we must bear the infirmities of the weak, for
Christ bore the reproaches of those that reproached God. He bore the guilt of
sin and the curse for it; we are only called to bear a little of the trouble of
it. he bore the presumptuous sins of the wicked; we are called only to bear the
infirmities of the weak. - Even Christ; kai gar ho Christos. Even he who was infinitely
happy in the enjoyment of himself, who needed not us nor our services, - even
he who thought it no robbery to be equal with God, who had reason enough to
pleas himself, and no reason to be concerned, much less to be crossed, for us,
- even he pleased not himself, even he bore our sins. And should not we be
humble, and self-denying, and ready to consider one another, who are members
one of another?
(3.) That therefore we must go and do likewise: For
whatsoever things were written aforetime were written for our learning.
[1.] That which is written of Christ, concerning his self-denial and
sufferings, is written for our learning; he hath left us an example. If
Christ denied himself, surely we should deny ourselves, from a principle of
ingenuousness and of gratitude, and especially of conformity to his image. The
example of Christ, in what he did and said, is recorded for our imitation. [2.]
That which is written in the scriptures of the Old Testament in the general is
written for our learning. What David had said in his own person Paul had just
now applied to Christ. Now lest this should look like a straining of the
scripture, he gives us this excellent rule in general, that all the scriptures
of the Old Testament (much more those of the New) were written for our
learning, and are not to be looked upon as of private interpretation. What
happened to the Old Testament saint happened to them for ensample; and the
scriptures of the Old Testament have many fulfillings. The scriptures are left
for a standing rule to us: they are written, that they might remain for
our use and benefit. First, For our learning. There are many things to
be learned out of the scriptures; and that is the best learning which is drawn
from these fountains. Those are the most learned that are most mighty in the
scriptures. We must therefore labour, not only to understand the literal
meaning of the scripture, but to learn out of it that which will do us good;
and we have need of help therefore not only to roll away the stone, but to draw
out the water, for in many places the well is deep. Practical observations are
more necessary than critical expositions. Secondly, That we through patience
and comfort of the scriptures might have hope. That hope which hath eternal
life for its object is here proposed as the end of scripture-learning. The
scripture was written that we might know what to hope for from God, and upon
what grounds, and in what way. This should recommend the scripture to us that
it is a special friend to Christian hope. Now the way of attaining this hope is
through patience and comfort of the scripture. Patience and comfort
suppose trouble and sorrow; such is the lot of the saints in this world; and,
were it not so, we should have no occasion for patience and comfort. But both
these befriend that hope which is the life of our souls. Patience works
experience, and experience hope, which maketh not ashamed, Rom_5:3-5. The more patience we exercise under
troubles the more hopefully we may look through our troubles; nothing more
destructive to hope than impatience. And the comfort of the scriptures,
that comfort which springs from the word of God (that is the surest and
sweetest comfort) is likewise a great stay to hope, as it is an earnest in hand
of the good hoped for. The Spirit, as a comforter, is the earnest of our
inheritance.
Romans
15:5-6
The apostle,
having delivered two exhortations, before he proceeds to more, intermixes here
a prayer for the success of what he had said. Faithful ministers water their preaching
with their prayers, because, whoever sows the seed, it is God that gives the
increase. We can but speak to the ear; it is God's prerogative to speak to the
heart. Observe,
I. The title he
gives to God: The God of patience and consolation, who is both the
author and the foundation of all the patience and consolation of the saints,
from whom it springs and on whom it is built. He gives the grace of patience;
he confirms and keeps it up as the God of consolation; for the comforts of the
Holy Ghost help to support believers, and to bear them up with courage and
cheerfulness under all their afflictions. When he comes to beg the pouring out
of the spirit of love and unity he addresses himself to God as the God of
patience and consolation; that is, 1. As a God that bears with us and comforts
us, is not extreme to mark what we do amiss, but is ready to comfort those that
are cast down - to teach us so to testify our love to our brethren, and by
these means to preserve and maintain unity, by being patient one with another
and comfortable one to another. Or, 2. As a God that gives us patience and
comfort. He had spoken (Rom_15:4) of
patience and comfort of the scriptures; but here he looks up to God as the God
of patience and consolation: it comes through the scripture as the
conduit-pipe, but from God as the fountain-head. The more patience and comfort
we receive from God, the better disposed we are to love one another. Nothing
breaks the peace more than an impatient, and peevish, and fretful melancholy
temper.
II. The mercy he
begs of God: Grant you to be like-minded one towards another, according to
Christ Jesus. 1. The foundation of Christian love and peace is laid in
like-mindedness, a consent in judgment as far as you have attained, or at least
a concord and agreement in affection. To auto phronein - to mind the same thing, all occasions of
difference removed, and all quarrels laid aside. 2. This like-mindedness must
be according to Christ Jesus, according to the precept of Christ, the
royal law of love, according to the pattern and example of Christ, which he had
propounded to them for their imitation, Rom_15:3.
Or, “Let Christ Jesus be the centre of your unity. Agree in the truth, not in
any error.” It was a cursed concord and harmony of those who were of one mind
to give their power and strength to the beast (Rev_17:13);
this was not a like-mindedness according to Christ, but against Christ; like
the Babel-builders, who were one in their rebellion, Gen_11:6. The method of our prayer must be first for truth, and
then for peace; for such is the method of the wisdom that is from above: it
is first pure, then peaceable. This is to be like-minded according to
Christ Jesus. 3. Like-mindedness among Christians, according to Christ Jesus,
is the gift of God; and a precious gift it is, for which we must earnestly seek
unto him. He is the Father of spirits, and fashions the hearts of men
alike (Psa_33:15), opens the
understanding, softens the heart, sweetens the affections, and gives the grace
of love, and the Spirit as a Spirit of love, to those that ask him. We are
taught to pray that the will of God may be done on earth as it is done in
heaven - now there it is done unanimously, among the angels, who are one in
their praises and services; and our desire must be that the saints on earth may
be so too.
III. The end of his desire: that God may be glorified, Rom_15:6. This is his plea with God in prayer,
and is likewise an argument with them to seek it. We should have the glory of
God in our eye in every prayer; therefore our first petition, as the foundation
of all the rest, must be, Hallowed be thy name. Like-mindedness among
Christians is in order to our glorifying God, 1. With one mind and one
mouth. It is desirable that Christians should agree in every thing, that so
they may agree in this, to praise God together. It tends very much to the glory
of God, who is one, and his name one, when it is so. It will not suffice that
there be one mouth, but there must be one mind, for God looks at the heart;
nay, there will hardly be one mouth where there is not one mind, and God will
scarcely be glorified where there is not a sweet conjunction of both. One mouth
in confessing the truths of God, in praising the name of God - one mouth in
common converse, not jarring, biting, and devouring one another - one mouth in
the solemn assembly, one speaking, but all joining. 2. As the Father of our
Lord Jesus Christ. This is his New Testament style. God must be glorified
as he has now revealed himself in the face of Jesus Christ, according to the
rules of the gospel, and with an eye to Christ, in whom he is our Father. The
unity of Christians glorifies God as the Father of our Lord Jesus Christ,
because it is a kind of counter-part or representation of the oneness that is
between the Father and the Son. We are warranted so to speak of it, and, with
that in our eye, to desire it, and pray for it, from Joh_17:21, That they all may be one, as thou, Father, art
in me, and I in thee: a high expression of the honour and sweetness of the
saints' unity. And it follows, The the world may believe that thou hast sent
me; and so God may be glorified as the Father of our Lord Jesus Christ.
Romans
15:7-12
The apostle here
returns to his exhortation to Christians. What he says here (Rom_15:7) is to the same purport with the
former; but the repetition shows how much the apostle's heart was upon it.
“Receive one another into your affection, into your communion, and into your
common conversation, as there is occasion.” He had exhorted the strong to
receive the weak (Rom_14:1), here, Receive
one another; for sometimes the prejudices of the weak Christian make him
shy of the strong, as much as the pride of the strong Christian makes him shy
of the weak, neither of which ought to be. Let there be a mutual embracing among
Christians. Those that have received Christ by faith must receive all
Christians by brotherly love; though poor in the world, though persecuted and
despised, though it may be matter of reproach and danger to you to receive
them, though in the less weighty matters of the law they are of different
apprehensions, though there may have been occasion for private piques, yet,
laying aside these and the like considerations, receive you one another.
Now the reason why Christians must receive one another is taken, as before,
from the condescending love of Christ to us: As Christ also received us, to
the glory of God. Can there be a more cogent argument? Has Christ been so
kind to us, and shall we be so unkind to those that are his? Was he so forward
to entertain us, and shall we be backward to entertain our brethren? Christ has
received us into the nearest and dearest relations to himself: has received us
into his fold, into his family, into the adoption of sons, into a covenant of
friendship, yea, into a marriage-covenant with himself; he has received us
(though we were strangers and enemies, and had played the prodigal) into
fellowship and communion with himself. Those words, to the glory of God,
may refer both to Christ's receiving us, which is our pattern, and to our
receiving one another, which is our practice according to that pattern.
I. Christ hath
received us to the glory of God. The end of our reception by Christ is that we
might glorify God in this world, and be glorified with him in that to come. It
was the glory of God, and our glory in the enjoyment of God, that Christ had in
his eye when he condescended to receive us. We are called to an eternal glory
by Christ Jesus, Joh_17:24. See to what
he received us - to a happiness transcending all comprehension; see for what he
received us - for his Father's glory; he had this in his eye in all the
instances of his favour to us.
II. We must
receive one another to the glory of God. This must be our great end in all our
actions, that God may be glorified; and nothing more conduces to this than the
mutual love and kindness of those that profess religion; compare Rom_15:6, That you may with one mind and one
mouth glorify God. That which was a bone of contention among them was a
different apprehension about meats and drinks, which took rise in distinction
between Jews and Gentiles. Now, to prevent and make up this different, he shows
how Jesus Christ has received both Jews and Gentiles; in him they are both one,
one new man, Eph_2:14-16. Now it
is a rule, Quae conveniunt in aliquo tertio, inter se conveniunt - Things
which agree with a third thing agree with each other. Those that agree in
Christ, who is the Alpha and the Omega, the first and the last, and the great
centre of unity, may well afford to agree among themselves. This coalescence of
the Jews and Gentiles in Christ and Christianity was a thing that filled and
affected Paul so much that he could not mention it without some enlargement and
illustration.
1. He received
the Jews, Rom_15:8. Let not any think
hardly or scornfully therefore of those that were originally Jews, and still,
through weakness, retain some savour of their old Judaism; for, (1.) Jesus
Christ was a minister of the circumcision. That he was a minister,
diakonos - a servant, bespeaks
his great and exemplary condescension, and puts an honour upon the ministry:
but that he was a minister of the circumcision, was himself circumcised and
made under the law, and did in his own person preach the gospel to the Jews,
who were of the circumcision - this makes the nation of the Jews more
considerable than otherwise they appear to be. Christ conversed with the Jews,
blessed them, looked upon himself as primarily sent to the lost sheep of the
house of Israel, laid hold of the seed of Abraham (Heb_2:16, margin), and by them, as it
were, caught at the whole body of mankind. Christ's personal ministry was
appropriated to them, though the apostles had their commission enlarged. (2.)
He was so for the truth of God. That which he preached to them was the truth;
for he came into the world to bear witness to the truth, Joh_18:37. And he is himself the truth, Joh_14:6. Or, for the truth of God, that is, to
make good the promises given to the patriarchs concerning the special mercy God
had in store for their seed. It was not for the merit of the Jews, but for the
truth of God, that they were thus distinguished - that God might approve
himself true to this word which he had spoken. - To confirm the promises
made unto the fathers. The best confirmation of promises is the performance
of them. It was promised that in the seed of Abraham all the nations of the
earth should be blessed, that Shiloh should come from between the feet of
Judah, that out of Israel should he proceed that should have the dominion, that
out of Zion should go forth the law, and many the like. There were many
intermediate providences which seemed to weaken those promises, providences
which threatened the fatal decay of that people; but when Messiah the Prince
appeared in the fulness of time, as a minister of the circumcision, all these
promises were confirmed, and the truth of them was made to appear; for in
Christ all the promises of God, both those of the Old Testament and those of
the New, are Yea, and in him Amen. Understanding by the promises made to the
fathers the whole covenant of grace, darkly administered under the Old
Testament, and brought to a clearer light now under the gospel, it was Christ's
great errand to confirm that covenant, Dan_9:27.
He confirmed it by shedding the blood of the covenant.
2. He received the Gentiles likewise. This he shows, Rom_15:9-12.
(1.) Observe Christ's favour to the Gentiles, in taking
them in to praise God - the work of the church on earth and the wages of that
in heaven. One design of Christ was that the Gentiles likewise might be
converted that they might be one with the Jews in Christ's mystical body. A
good reason why they should not think the worse of any Christian for his having
been formerly a Gentile; for Christ has received him. He invites the Gentiles,
and welcomes them. Now observe how their conversion is here expressed: That
the Gentiles might glorify God for his mercy. A periphrasis of conversion.
[1.] They shall have matter for praise, even the mercy of God. Considering the
miserable and deplorable condition that the Gentile world was in, the receiving
of them appears more as an act of mercy than the receiving of the Jews. Those
that were Lo-ammi - not a people, were Lo-ruhama - not obtaining
mercy, Hos_1:6, Hos_1:9; Hos_2:23.
The greatest mercy of God to any people is the receiving of them into covenant
with himself: and it is good to take notice of God's mercy in receiving us.
[2.] They shall have a heart for praise. They shall glorify God for his mercy.
Unconverted sinners do nothing to glorify God; but converting grace works in
the soul a disposition to speak and do all to the glory of God; God intended to
reap a harvest of glory from the Gentiles, who had been so long turning his
glory into shame.
(2.) The fulfilling of the scriptures in this. The
favour of God to the Gentiles was not only mercy, but truth. Though there were
not promises directly given to them, as to the fathers of the Jews, yet there
were many prophesies concerning them, which related to the calling of them, and
the embodying of them in the church, some of which he mentions because it was a
thing that the Jews were hardly persuaded to believe. Thus, by referring them
to the Old Testament, he labours to qualify their dislike of the Gentiles, and
so to reconcile the parties at variance. [1.] It was foretold that the Gentiles
should have the gospel preached to them: “I will confess to thee among the
Gentiles (Rom_15:9), that is, thy
name shall be known and owned in the Gentile world, there shall gospel grace
and love be celebrated.” This is quoted from Psa_18:49,
I will give thanks unto thee, O Lord, among the heathen. A thankful
explication and commemoration of the name of God are an excellent means of
drawing others to know and praise God. Christ, in and by his apostles and
ministers, whom he sent to disciple all nations, did confess to God among the
Gentiles. The exaltation of Christ, as well as the conversion of sinners, is
set forth by the praising of God. Christ's declaring God's name to his brethren
is called his praising God in the midst of the congregation, Psa_22:22. Taking these words as spoken by
David, they were spoken when he was old and dying, and he was not likely to
confess to God among the Gentiles; but when David's psalms are read and sung
among the Gentiles, to the praise and glory of God, it may be said that David
is confessing to God among the Gentiles, and singing to his name. He
that was the sweet psalmist of the Gentiles. Converting grace makes people
greatly in love with David's psalms. Taking them as spoken by Christ, the Son
of David, it may be understood of his spiritual indwelling by faith in the
hearts of all the praising saints. If any confess to God among the Gentiles,
and sing to his name, it is not they, but Christ and his grace in them. I
live, yet not I, but Christ liveth in me; so, I praise, yet not I, but
Christ in me. [2.] That the Gentiles should rejoice with his people, Rom_15:10. This is quoted from that song of
Moses, Deu_32:43. Observe, Those who
were incorporated among his people are said to rejoice with his people. No
greater joy can come to any people than the coming of the gospel among them in
power. Those Jews that retain a prejudice against the Gentiles will by no means
admit them to any of their joyful festivities; for (say they) a stranger
intermeddleth not with the joy, Pro_14:10.
But, the partition-wall being taken down, the Gentiles are welcome to rejoice
with his people. Being brought into the church, they share in its sufferings,
are companions in patience and tribulation, to recompense which they share in
the joy. [3.] That they should praise God (Rom_15:11):
Praise the Lord, all ye Gentiles. This is quoted out of that short
psalm, Psa_117:1. Converting grace sets
people a praising God, furnishes with the richest matter for praise, and gives
a heart to it. The Gentiles had been, for many ages, praising their idols of
wood and stone, but now they are brought to praise the Lord; and this David in
spirit speaks of. In calling upon all the nations to praise the Lord, it is
intimated that they shall have the knowledge of him. [4.] That they should
believe in Christ (v. 12), quoted from Isa_11:10,
where observe, First, The revelation of Christ, as the Gentiles' king.
He is here called the root of Jesse, that is, such a branch from the
family of David as is the very life and strength of the family: compare Isa_11:1. Christ was David's Lord, and yet
withal he was the Son of David (Mat_22:45),
for he was the root and offspring of David, Rev_22:16.
Christ, as God, was David's root; Christ, as man, was David's offspring. - And
he that shall rise to reign over the Gentiles. This explains the figurative
expression of the prophet, he shall stand for an ensign of the people.
When Christ rose from the dead, when he ascended on high, it was to reign over
the Gentiles. Secondly, The recourse of the Gentiles to him: In him
shall the Gentiles trust. Faith is the soul's confidence in Christ and
dependence on him. The prophet has it, to him shall the Gentiles seek.
The method of faith is first to seek unto Christ, as to one proposed to us for
a Saviour; and, finding him able and willing to save, then to trust in him.
Those that know him will trust in him. Or, this seeking to him is the effect of
a trust in him; seeking him by prayer, and pursuant endeavours. We shall never
seek to Christ till we trust in him. Trust is the mother; diligence in the use
of means the daughter. Jews and Gentiles being thus united in Christ's love,
why should they not be united in one another's love?
Romans
15:13
Here is another
prayer directed to God, as the God of hope; and it is, as the former (Rom_15:5, Rom_15:6),
for spiritual blessings: these are the blest blessings, and to be first and
chiefly prayed for.
I. Observe how
he addresses himself to God, as the God of hope. It is good in prayer to
fasten upon those names, titles, and attributes of God, which are most suitable
to the errand we come upon, and will best serve to encourage our faith
concerning it. Every word in the prayer should be a plea. Thus should the cause
be skilfully ordered, and the mouth filled with arguments. God is the God of
hope. He is the foundation on which our hope is built, and he is the builder
that doth himself raise it: he is both the object of our hope, and the author
of it. That hope is but fancy, and will deceive us, which is not fastened upon
God (as the goodness hoped for, and the truth hoped in), and which is not of
his working in us. We have both together, Psa_119:49.
Thy word - there is God the object; on which thou hast caused me to
hope - there is God the author of our hope, 1Pe_1:3.
II. What he asks
of God, not for himself, but for them.
1. That they
might be filled with all joy and peace in believing. Joy and peace are two
of those things in which the kingdom of God consists, Rom_14:17. Joy in God, peace of conscience, both
arising from a sense of our justification; see Rom_5:1,
Rom_5:2. Joy and peace in our own
bosoms would promote a cheerful unity and unanimity with our brethren. Observe,
(1.) How desirable this joy and peace are: they are filling. Carnal joy puffs
up the soul, but cannot fill it; therefore in laughter the heart is sad. True,
heavenly, spiritual joy is filling to the soul; it has a satisfaction in it,
answerable to the soul's vast and just desires. Thus does God satiate and
replenish the weary soul. Nothing more than this joy, only more of it, even the
perfection of it in glory, is the desire of the soul that hath it, Psa_4:6, Psa_4:7;
Psa_36:8; Psa_63:5;
Psa_65:4. (2.) How it is attainable.
[1.] By prayer. We must go to God for it; he will for this be enquired of.
Prayer fetches in spiritual joy and peace. [2.] By believing; that is the means
to be used. It is vain, and flashy, and transient joy, that is the product of
fancy; true substantial joy is the fruit of faith. Believing, you rejoice
with joy unspeakable, 1Pe_1:8. It
is owing to the weakness of our faith that we are so much wanting in joy and
peace. Only believe; believe the goodness of Christ, the love of Christ, the
promises of the covenant, and the joys and glories of heaven; let faith be the
substance and evidence of these things, and the result must needs be joy and
peace. Observe, It is all joy and peace - all sorts of true joy and
peace. When we come to God by prayer we must enlarge our desires; we are not
straitened in him, why should we be straitened in ourselves? Ask for all joy;
open thy mouth wide, and he will fill it.
2. That they
might abound in hope through the power of the Holy Ghost. The joy and
peace of believers arise chiefly from their hopes. What is laid out upon them
is but little, compared with what is laid up for them; therefore the more hope
they have the more joy and peace they have. We do then abound in hope when we
hope for great things from God, and are greatly established and confirmed in
these hopes. Christians should desire and labour after an abundance of hope, such
hope as will not make ashamed. This is through the power of the Holy Ghost. The
same almighty power that works grace begets and strengthens this hope. Our own
power will never reach it; and therefore where this hope is, and is abounding,
the blessed Spirit must have all the glory.
Romans
15:14-16
Here, I. He
commends these Christians with the highest characters that could be. He began
his epistle with their praises (Rom_1:8),
Your faith is spoken of throughout the world, thereby to make way for
his discourse: and, because sometimes he had reproved them sharply, he now
concludes with the like commendation, to qualify them, and to part friends.
This he does like an orator. It was not a piece of idle flattery and
compliment, but a due acknowledgment of their worth, and of the grace of God in
them. We must be forward to observe and commend in others that which is
excellent and praise-worthy; it is part of the present recompence of virtue and
usefulness, and will be of use to quicken others to a holy emulation. It was a
great credit to the Romans to be commended by Paul, a man of such great
judgment and integrity, too skilful to be deceived and too honest to flatter.
Paul had no personal acquaintance with these Christians, and yet he says he was
persuaded of their excellencies, though he knew them only be hearsay. As we
must not, on the one hand, be so simple as to believe every word; so, on the
other hand, we must not be so skeptical as to believe nothing; but especially
we must be forward to believe good concerning others: in this case charity
hopeth all things, and believeth all things, and (if the probabilities be any
way strong, as here they were) is persuaded. It is safer to err on this side.
Now observe what it was that he commended them for. 1. That they were full
of goodness; therefore the more likely to take in good part what he had
written, and to account it a kindness; and not only so, but to comply with it,
and to put it in practice, especially that which relates to their union and to
the healing of their differences. A good understanding of one another, and a
good will to one another, would soon put an end to strife. 2. Filled with
all knowledge. Goodness and knowledge together! A very rare and an
excellent conjunction; the head and the heart of the new man. All knowledge,
all necessary knowledge, all the knowledge of those things which belong to
their everlasting peace. 3. Able to admonish one another. To this there
is a further gift requisite, even the gift of utterance. Those that have
goodness and knowledge should communicate what they have for the use and
benefit of others. “You that excel so much in good gifts may think you have no
need of any instructions of mine.” It is a comfort to faithful ministers to see
their work superseded by the gifts and graces of their people. How gladly would
ministers leave off their admonishing work, if people were able and willing to
admonish one another! Would to God that all the Lord's people were prophets.
But that which is every body's work is nobody's work; and therefore,
II. He clears
himself from the suspicion of intermeddling needlessly with that which did not
belong to him, Rom_15:15. Observe how
affectionately he speaks to them: My brethren (Rom_15:14), and again, brethren, Rom_15:15. He had himself, and taught others,
the art of obliging. He calls them all his brethren, to teach them brotherly
love one to another. Probably he wrote the more courteously to them because,
being Roman citizens living near the court, they were more genteel, and made a
better figure; and therefore Paul, who became all things to all men, was
willing, by the respectfulness of his style, to please them for their good. He
acknowledges he had written boldly in some sort - tolmēroteron apo merous, in a manner that looked like
boldness and presumption, and for which some might perhaps charge him with
taking too much upon him. But then consider,
1. He did it only as their remembrancer: As putting
you in mind. such humble thoughts had Paul of himself, though he excelled
in knowledge, that he would not pretend to tell them that which they did not
know before, but only to remind them of that in which they had formerly been by
others instructed. So Peter, 2Pe_1:12; 2Pe_3:1. People commonly excuse themselves from
hearing the word with this, that the minister can tell them nothing but what
they knew before. If it be so, yet have they not need to know it better, and to
be put in mind of it?
2. He did it as the apostle of the Gentiles. It was in
pursuance of his office: Because of the grace (that is, the apostleship,
Rom_1:5) given to me of God, to
be the minister of Jesus Christ to the Gentiles, Rom_15:16. Paul reckoned it a great favour, and
an honour that God had put upon him, in putting him into that office, Rom_1:13. Now, because of this grace given to
him, he thus laid out himself among the Gentiles, that he might not receive
that grace of God in vain. Christ received that he might give; so did Paul; so
have we talents which must not be buried. Places and offices must be filled up
with duty. It is good for ministers to be often remembering the grace that is
given unto them of God. Minister verbi es, hoc age - You are a minister of
the word; give yourself wholly to it, was Mr. Perkins's motto. Paul was a
minister. Observe here, (1.) Whose minister he was: the minister of Jesus
Christ, 1Co_4:1. He is our Master;
his we are, and him we serve. (2.) To whom: to the Gentiles. So God had
appointed him, Act_22:21. So Peter and
he had agreed, Gal_2:7-9. These Romans
were Gentiles: “Now,” says he, “I do not thrust myself upon you, nor seek any
lordship over you; I am appointed to it: if you think I am rude and bold, my
commission is my warrant, and must bear me out.” (3.) What he ministered: the gospel
of God; hierourgounta to euangelion - ministering as about holy
things (so the word signifies), executing the office of a Christian priest,
more spiritual, and therefore more excellent, than the Levitical priesthood.
(4.) For what end: that the offering up (or sacrificing) of the
Gentiles might be acceptable - that god might have the glory which would
redound to his name by the conversion of the Gentiles. Paul laid out himself
thus to bring about something that might be acceptable to God. Observe how the
conversion of the Gentiles is expressed: it is the offering up of the
Gentiles; it is prosphora tōn ethnōn - the oblation of the
Gentiles, in which the Gentiles are looked upon either, [1.] As the
priests, offering the oblation of prayer and praise and other acts of religion.
Long had the Jews been the holy nation, the kingdom of priests, but now the
Gentiles are made priests unto God (Rev_5:10),
by their conversion to the Christian faith consecrated to the service of God,
that the scripture may be fulfilled, In ever place incense shall be offered,
and a pure offering, Mal_1:11. The
converted Gentiles are said to be made nigh (Eph_2:13)
- the periphrasis of priests. Or, [2.] The Gentiles are themselves the
sacrifice offered up to God by Paul, in the name of Christ, a living sacrifice,
holy, acceptable to God, Rom_12:1. A
sanctified soul is offered up to God in the flames of love, upon Christ the
altar. Paul gathered in souls by his preaching, not to keep them to himself,
but to offer them up to God: Behold, I, and the children that God hath given
me. And it is an acceptable offering, being sanctified by the Holy
Ghost. Paul preached to them, and dealt with them; but that which made them
sacrifices to God was their sanctification; and this was not his work, but the
work of the Holy Ghost. None are acceptably offered to God but those that are
sanctified: unholy things can never be pleasing to the holy God.
Romans
15:17-21
The apostle here
gives some account of himself and of his own affairs. Having mentioned his
ministry and apostleship, he goes on further to magnify his office in the
efficacy of it, and to mention to the glory of God the great success of his
ministry and the wonderful things that God had done by him, for encouragement
to the Christian church at Rome, that they were not alone in the profession of
Christianity, but though, compared with the multitude of their idolatrous
neighbours, they were but a little flock, yet, up and down the country, there
were many that were their companions in the kingdom and patience of Jesus
Christ. It was likewise a great confirmation of the truth of the Christian
doctrine that it had such strange success, and was so far propagated by such
weak and unlikely means, such multitudes captivated to the obedience of Christ
by the foolishness of preaching. Therefore Paul gives them this account, which
he makes the matter of his glorying; not vain glory, but holy gracious
glorying, which appears by the limitations; it is through Jesus Christ.
Thus does he centre all his glorying in Christ; he teaches us so to do, 1Co_1:31. Not unto us, Psa_115:1. And it is in those things which
pertain to God. The conversion of souls is one of those things that pertain
to God, and therefore is the matter of Paul's glorying; not the things of the
flesh. Whereof I may glory, echō oun kauchēsin en Christō lēsou ta pros Theon. I would rather read it thus: Therefore
I have a rejoicing in Christ Jesus (it is the same word that is used, 2Co_1:12, and Phi_3:3,
where it is the character of the circumcision that they rejoice - kauchōmenoi,
in Christ Jesus) concerning the things of God; or those things that are
offered to God - the living sacrifices of the Gentiles, Rom_15:16. Paul would have them to rejoice with
him in the extent and efficacy of his ministry, of which he speaks not only
with the greatest deference possible to the power of Christ, and the effectual
working of the Spirit as all in all; but with a protestation of the truth of
what he said (Rom_15:18): I will not
dare to speak of any of those things which Christ hath not wrought by me.
He would not boast of things without his line, nor take the praise of another
man's work, as he might have done when he was writing to distant strangers, who
perhaps could not contradict him; but (says he) I dare not do it: a faithful man
dares not lie, however he be tempted, dares be true, however he be terrified.
now, in this account of himself, we may observe,
I. His unwearied diligence and industry in his work. He
was one that laboured more abundantly than they all.
1. He preached in many places: From Jerusalem,
whence the law went forth as a lamp that shineth, and round about unto
Illyricum, many hundred miles distant from Jerusalem. We have in the book
of the Acts an account of Paul's travels. There we find him, after he was sent
forth to preach to the Gentiles (Acts 13), labouring in that blessed work in
Seleucia, Cyprus, Pamphylia, Pisidia, and Lycaonia (Acts 13 and 14), afterwards
travelling through Syria and Cilicia, Phrygia, Galatia, Mysia, Troas, and
thence called over to Macedonia, and so into Europe, Acts 15 and 16. Then we
find him very busy at Thessalonica, Berea, Athens, Corinth, Ephesus, and the
parts adjacent. Those that know the extent and distance of these countries will
conclude Paul an active man, rejoicing as a strong man to run a race. Illyricum
is the country now called Sclavonia, bordering upon Hungary. Some take it for
the same with Bulgaria; others for the lower Pannonia: however, it was a great
way from Jerusalem. Now it might be suspected that if Paul undertook so much
work, surely he did it by the halves. “No,” says he, “I have fully preached
the Gospel of Christ - have given them a full account of the truth and
terms of the gospel, have not shunned to declare the whole counsel of God (Act_20:27), have kept back nothing that was
necessary for them to know.” Filled the gospel, so the word is; peplērōkenai
to euangelion, filled it as the net is filled with fishes in a large
draught; or filled the gospel, that is, filled them with the gospel. Such a
change does the gospel make that, when it comes in power to any place, it fills
the place. Other knowledge is airy, and leaves souls empty, but he knowledge of
the gospel is filling.
2. He preached in places that had not heard the gospel
before, Rom_15:20, Rom_15:21. He broke up the fallow ground, laid
the first stone in many places, and introduced Christianity where nothing had
reigned for many ages but idolatry and witchcraft, and all sorts of diabolism.
Paul broke the ice, and therefore must needs meet with the more difficulties
and discouragements in his work. Those who preached in Judea had upon this
account a much easier task than Paul, who was the apostle of the Gentiles; for
they entered into the labours of others, Joh_4:38.
Paul, being a hardy man, was called out to the hardest work; there were many
instructors, but Paul was the great father - many that watered, but Paul was
the great planter. Well, he was a bold man that made the first attack upon the
palace of the strong man armed in the Gentile world, that first assaulted
Satan's interest there, and Paul was that man who ventured the first onset in
many places, and suffered greatly for it. He mentions this as a proof of his
apostleship; for the office of the apostles was especially to bring in those
that were without, and to lay the foundations of the new Jerusalem; see Rev_21:14. Not but that Paul preached in many
places where others had been at work before him; but he principally and mainly
laid himself out for the good of those that sat in darkness. He was in care not
to build upon another man's foundation, lest he should thereby disprove
his apostleship, and give occasion to those who sought occasion to reflect upon
him. He quotes a scripture for this out of Isa_52:15,
To whom he was not spoken of, they shall see. That which had not been told
them, shall they see; so the prophet has it, much to the same purport. This
made the success of Paul's preaching the more remarkable. The transition from
darkness to light is more sensible than the after-growth and increase of that
light. And commonly the greatest success of the gospel is at its first coming
to a place; afterwards people become sermon-proof.
II. The great and wonderful success that he had in his
work: It was effectual to make the Gentiles obedient. The design of the
gospel is to bring people to be obedient; it is not only a truth to be
believed, but a law to be obeyed. This Paul aimed at in all his travels; not
his own wealth and honour (if he had, he had sadly missed his aim), but the
conversion and salvation of souls: this his heart was upon, and for this he
travailed in birth again. Now how was this great work wrought? 1. Christ was
the principal agent. He does not say, “which I worked,” but “which Christ
wrought by me,” Rom_15:18. Whatever
good we do, it is not we, but Christ by us, that does it; the work is his, the
strength his; he is all in all, he works all our works, Phi_2:13; Isa_26:12.
Paul takes all occasions to own this, that the whole praise might be
transmitted to Christ. 2. Paul was a very active instrument: By word and
deed, that is, by his preaching, and by the miracles he wrought to confirm
his doctrine; or his preaching and his living. Those ministers are likely to
win souls that preach both by word and deed, by their conversation showing
forth the power of the truths they preach. This is according to Christ's
example, who began both to do and teach, Act_1:1.
- Through mighty signs and wonders: en dunamei sēmeiōn - by
the power, or in the strength, of signs and wonders. These made the preaching
of the word so effectual, being the appointed means of conviction, and the
divine seal affixed to the gospel-charter, Mar_16:17,
Mar_16:18. 3. The power of the
Spirit of God made this effectual, and crowned all with the desired
success, Rom_15:19. (1.) The power of
the Spirit in Paul, as in the other apostles, for the working of those
miracles. Miracles were wrought by the power of the Holy Ghost (Act_1:8), therefore reproaching the miracles is
called the blasphemy against the Holy Ghost. Or, (2.) The power of the Spirit
in the hearts of those to whom the word was preached, and who saw the miracles,
making these means effectual to some and not to others. It is the Spirit's
operation that makes the difference. Paul himself, as great a preacher as he was,
with all his might signs and wonders, could not make one soul obedient further
than the power of the Spirit of God accompanied his labours. It was the Spirit
of the Lord of hosts that made those great mountains plain before this
Zerubbabel. This is an encouragement to faithful ministers, who labour under
the sense of great weakness and infirmity, that it is all one to the blessed
Spirit to work by many, or by those that have on power. The same almighty
Spirit that wrought with Paul often perfects strength in weakness, and ordains
praise out of the mouths of babes and sucklings. This success which he had in
preaching is that which he here rejoices in; for the converted nations were his
joy and crown of rejoicing: and he tells them of it, not only that they might
rejoice with him, but that they might be the more ready to receive the truths
which he had written to them, and to own him whom Christ had thus signally
owned.
Romans
15:22-29
St. Paul here
declares his purpose to come and see the Christians at Rome. Upon this head his
matter is but common and ordinary, appointing a visit to his friends; but the
manner of his expression is gracious and savoury, very instructive, and for our
imitation. We should learn by it to speak of our common affairs in the language
of Canaan. Even our common discourse should have an air of grace; by this it
will appear what country we belong to. it should seem that Paul's company was
very much desired at Rome. He was a man that had as many friends and as many
enemies as most men ever had: he passed through evil report and good report. No
doubt they had heard much of him at Rome, and longed to see him. Should the
apostle of the Gentiles be a stranger at Rome, the metropolis of the Gentile
world? Why as to this he excuses it that he had not come yet, he promises to
come shortly, and gives a good reason why he could not come now.
I. He excuses it
that he never came yet. Observe how careful Paul was to keep in with his
friends, and to prevent or anticipate any exceptions against him; not as one
that lorded it over God's heritage. 1. He assures them that he had a great
desire to see them; not to see Rome, though it was now in its greatest pomp and
splendour, nor to see the emperor's court, nor to converse with the
philosophers and learned men that were then at Rome, though such conversation
must needs be very desirable to so great a scholar as Paul was, but to come
unto you (Rom_15:3), a company of
poor despised saints in Rome, hated of the world, but loving God, and beloved
of him. These were the men that Paul was ambitious of an acquaintance with at
Rome; they were the excellent ones in whom he delighted, Psa_16:3. And he had a special desire to see
them, because of the great character they had in all the churches for faith and
holiness; they were men that excelled in virtue, and therefore Paul was so
desirous to come to them. This desire Paul had had for many years, and yet
could never compass it. The providence of God wisely overrules the purposes and
desires of men. God's dearest servants are not always gratified in every thing
that they have a mind to. Yet all that delight in God have the desire of their
heart fulfilled (Psa_37:4), though all
the desires in their heart be not humoured. 2. He tells them that the reason
why he could not come to them was because he had so much work cut out for him
elsewhere. For which cause, that is, because of his labours in other
countries, he was so much hindered. God had opened a wide door for him
in other places, and so turned him aside. Observe in this, (1.) The gracious
providence of God conversant in a special manner about his ministers, casting
their lot, not according to their contrivance, but according to his own
purpose. Paul was several times crossed in his intentions; sometimes hindered by
Satan (as 1Th_2:18), sometimes
forbidden by the Spirit (Act_16:7), and
here diverted by other work. Man purposes but God disposes, Pro_16:9; Pro_19:21;
Jer_10:23. Ministers purpose, and their
friends purpose concerning them, but God overrules both, and orders the
journeys, removals, and settlements, of his faithful ministers as he pleases.
The stars are in the right hand of Christ, to shine where he sets them. The
gospel does not come by chance to any place, but by the will and counsel of
God. (2.) The gracious prudence of Paul, in bestowing his time and pains where
there was most need. Had Paul consulted his own ease, wealth, and honour, the
greatness of the word would never have hindered him from seeing Rome, but would
rather have driven him thither, where he might have had more preferment and
taken less pains. But Paul sought the things of Christ more than his own
things, and therefore would not leave his work of planting churches, no, not
for a time, to go and see Rome. The Romans were whole, and needed not the
physician as other poor places that were sick and dying. While men and women
were every day dropping into eternity, and their precious souls perishing for
lack of vision, it was no time for Paul to trifle. There was now a gale of
opportunity, the fields were white unto the harvest; such a season slipped
might never be retrieved; the necessities of poor souls were pressing, and
called aloud, and therefore Paul must be busy. It concerns us all to do that
first which is most needful. True grace teaches us to prefer that which is
necessary before that which is unnecessary, Luk_10:41,
Luk_10:42. And Christian prudence
teaches us to prefer that which is more necessary before that which is less so.
This Paul mentions as a sufficient satisfying reason. We must not take it ill
of our friends if they prefer necessary work, which is pleasing to God, before
unnecessary visits and compliments, which may be pleasing to us. In this, as in
other things, we must deny ourselves.
II. He promised
to come and see them shortly, Rom_15:23,
Rom_15:24, Rom_15:29.
Having no more place in these parts, namely, in Greece, where he then
was. The whole of that country being more or less leavened with the savour of
the gospel, churches being planted in the most considerable towns and pastors
settled to carry on the work which Paul had begun, he had little more to do
there. He had driven the chariot of the gospel to the sea-coast, and having
thus conquered Greece he is ready to wish there were another Greece to conquer.
Paul was one that went through with his work, and yet then did not think of
taking his ease, but set himself to contrive more work, to devise liberal
things. Here was a workman that needed not to be ashamed. Observe,
1. How he
forecasted his intended visit. His project was to see them in his way to Spain.
It appears by this that Paul intended a journey into Spain, to plant
Christianity there. The difficulty and peril of the work, the distance of the
place, the danger of the voyage, the other good works (though less needful, he
thinks) which Paul might find to do in other places, did not quench the flame
of his holy zeal for the propagating of the gospel, which did even eat him up,
and make him forget himself. But it is not certain whether ever he fulfilled
his purpose, and went to Spain. Many of the best expositors think he did not,
but was hindered in this as he was in others of his purposes. He did indeed
come to Rome, but he was brought thither a prisoner, and there was detained two
years; and whither he went after is uncertain: but several of his epistles
which he wrote in prison intimate his purpose to go eastward, and not towards
Spain. However, Paul, forasmuch as it was in thine heart to bring the light of
the gospel into Spain, thou didst well, in that it was in thine heart; as God
said to David, 2Ch_6:8. The grace of
God often with favour accepts the sincere intention, when the providence of God
in wisdom prohibits the execution. And do not we serve a good Master then? 2Co_8:12. Now, in his way to Spain he proposed
to come to them. Observe his prudence. It is wisdom for every one of us to
order our affairs so that we may do the most work in the least time. Observe
how doubtfully he speaks: I trust to see you: not, “I am resolved I
will,” but, “I hope I shall.” We must purpose all our purposes and make all our
promises in like manner with a submission to the divine providence; not
boasting ourselves of tomorrow, because we know not what a day may bring forth,
Pro_27:1; Jam_4:13-15.
2. What he
expected in his intended visit. (1.) What he expected from them. He expected
they would bring him on his way towards Spain. It was not a stately attendance,
such as princes have but a loving attendance, such as friends give, that Paul
expected. Spain was then a province of the empire, well known to the Romans,
who had a great correspondence with it, and therefore they might be helpful to
Paul in his voyage thither; and it was not barely their accompanying him part
of the way, but their furthering him in his expedition, that he counted upon:
not only out of their respect to Paul, but out of respect to the souls of those
poor Spaniards that Paul was going to preach to. It is justly expected from all
Christians that they should lay out themselves for the promoting and furthering
of every good work, especially that blessed work of the conversion of souls,
which they should contrive to make as easy as may be to their ministers, and as
successful as may be to poor souls. (2.) What he expected in them: to be
somewhat filled with their company. That which Paul desired was their
company and conversation. The good company of the saints is very desirable and
delightful. Paul was himself a man of great attainments in knowledge and grace,
taller by head and shoulders than other Christians in these things, and yet see
how he pleased himself with the thoughts of good company; for as iron sharpens
iron so does a man the countenance of his friend. He intimates that he intended
to make some stay with them, for he would be filled with their company; not just
look at them, and away: and yet he thinks their converse so pleasant that he
should never have enough of it; it is but somewhat filled, he thought he should
leave them with a desire of more of their company. Christian society, rightly
managed and improved, is a heaven upon earth, a comfortable earnest of our
gathering together unto Christ at the great day. Yet observe, It is but
somewhat filled, apo
merous - in
part. The satisfaction we have in communion with the saints in this world
is but partial; we are but somewhat filled. It is partial compared with our
communion with Christ; that, and that only, will completely satisfy, that will
fill the soul. It is partial compared with the communion we hope to have with
the saints in the other world. When we shall sit down with Abraham, and Isaac,
and Jacob, with all the saints, and none but saints, and saints made perfect,
we shall have enough of that society, and be quite filled with that company.
(3.) What he expected from God with them, Rom_15:29.
He expected to come in the fulness of the blessing of the gospel of Christ.
Observe, Concerning what he expected from them he speaks
doubtfully: I trust to be brought on my way, and to be filled with your
company. Paul had learnt not to be too confident of the best. These very
men slipped from him afterwards, when he had occasion to use them (2Ti_4:16), At my first answer, no man stood
by me; none of the Christians at Rome. The Lord teach us to cease from man.
But concerning what he expected from God he speaks confidently. It was
uncertain whether he should come or no, but I am sure when I do come I shall
come in the fulness, etc. We cannot expect too little from man, nor too
much from God. Now Paul expected that God would bring him to them, loaded with
blessings, so that he should be an instrument of doing a great deal of good
among them, and fill them with the blessings of the gospel. Compare Rom_1:11, That I may impart unto you some
spiritual gift. The blessing of the gospel of Christ is the best and most
desirable blessing. When Paul would raise their expectation of something great
and good in his coming, he directs them to hope for the blessings of the
gospel, spiritual blessings, knowledge, and grace, and comfort. There is then a
happy meeting between people and ministers, when they are both under the
fulness of the blessing. The blessing of the gospel is the treasure which we
have in earthen vessels. When ministers are fully prepared to give out, and
people fully prepared to receive, this blessing, both are happy. Many have the
gospel who have not the blessing of the gospel, and so they have it in vain.
The gospel will not profit, unless God bless it to us; and it is our duty to
wait upon him for that blessing, and for the fulness of it.
III. He gives them a good reason why he could not come
and see them now, because he had other business upon his hands, which required
his attendance, upon which he must first make a journey to Jerusalem, Rom_15:25-28. He gives a particular account of
it, to show that the excuse was real. He was going to Jerusalem, as the
messenger of the church's charity to the poor saints there. Observe what he
says,
1. Concerning this charity itself. And he speaks of
that upon this occasion probably to excite the Roman Christians to do the like,
according to their ability. Examples are moving, and Paul was very ingenious at
begging, not for himself, but for others. Observe, (1.) For whom it was
intended: For the poor saints which are at Jerusalem, Rom_15:26. It is no strange thing for saints to
be poor. Those whom God favours the world often frowns upon; therefore riches
are not the best things, nor is poverty a curse. It seems, the saints at
Jerusalem were poorer than other saints, either because the wealth of that
people in general was now declining, as their utter ruin was hastening on (and,
to be sure, if any must be kept poor, the saints must), or because the famine
that was over all the world in the days of Claudius Caesar did in a special
manner prevail in Judea, a dry country; and, God having called the poor of this
world, the Christians smarted most by it. This was the occasion of that
contribution mentioned Act_11:28-30.
Or, because the saints at Jerusalem suffered most by persecution; for of all
people the unbelieving Jews were most inveterate in their rage and malice
against the Christians, wrath having come upon them to the uttermost, 1Th_2:16. The Christian Hebrews are particularly
noted too as having had their good spoiled (Heb_10:34),
in consideration of which this contribution was made for them. Though the
saints at Jerusalem were at a great distance form them, yet they thus extended
their bounty and liberality to them, to teach us as we have ability, and as
there is occasion, to stretch out the hand of our charity to all that are of
the household of faith, though in places distant from us. Though in personal
instances of poverty every church should take care to maintain their own poor
(for such poor we have always with us), yet sometimes, when more public
instances of poverty are presented as objects of our charity, though a great
way off from us, we must extend our bounty, as the sun his beams; and, with the
virtuous woman, stretch out our hands to the poor, and reach forth our hands
to the needy, Pro_31:20. (2.) By
whom it was collected: By those of Macedonia (the chief of whom were the
Philippians) and Achaia (the chief of whom were the Corinthians), two
flourishing churches, though yet in their infancy, newly converted to
Christianity. And I wish the observation did not hold that people are commonly
more liberal at their first acquaintance with the gospel than they are
afterwards, that, as well as other instances of the first love and the love of
the espousals, being apt to cool and decay after a while. It seems those of
Macedonia and Achaia were rich and wealthy, while those at Jerusalem were poor
and needy, Infinite Wisdom ordering it so that some should have what others
want, and so this mutual dependence of Christians one upon another might be
maintained. - It pleased them. This intimates how ready they were to it
- they were not pressed nor constrained to it, but they did it of their own
accord; and how cheerful they were in it - they took a pleasure in doing good;
and God loves a cheerful giver. - To make a certain contribution; koinōnian
tina - a communication, in token of the communion of saints, and
their fellow-membership, as in the natural body one member communicates to the
relief, and succour, and preservation of another, as there is occasion. Every
thing that passes between Christians should be a proof and instance of that
common union which they have one with another in Jesus Christ. Time was when
the saints at Jerusalem were on the giving hand, and very liberal they were,
when they laid their estates at the apostles' feet for charitable uses, and
took special care that the Grecian widows should not be neglected in the daily
ministration, Act_6:1, etc. And now
that the providence of God had turned the scale, and made them necessitous,
they found the Grecians kind to them; for the merciful shall obtain mercy. We
should give a portion to seven, and also to eight, because we know not what
evil may be on the earth, which may make us glad to be beholden to others. (3.)
What reason there was for it (Rom_15:27):
And their debtors they are. Alms are called righteousness, Psa_112:9. Being but stewards of what we have,
we owe it where our great Master (by the calls of providence, concurring with
the precepts of the word) orders us to dispose of it: but here there was a
special debt owing; the Gentiles were greatly beholden to the Jews, and were
bound in gratitude to be very kind to them. From the stock of Israel came
Christ himself, according to the flesh, who is the light to enlighten the
Gentiles; out of the same stock came the prophets, and apostles, and first
preachers of the gospel. The Jews, having had the lively oracles committed to
them, were the Christians' library-keepers - out of Zion went forth the law,
and the word of the Lord from Jerusalem; their political church-state was dissolved,
and they were cut off, that the Gentiles might be admitted in. Thus did the
Gentiles partake of their spiritual things, and receive the gospel of salvation
as it were at second-hand from the Jews; and therefore their duty is,
they are bound in gratitude to minister unto them in carnal things: it
is the least they can do: leitourgēsai - to minister as unto God in
holy tings; so the word signifies. A conscientious regard to God in works
of charity and almsgiving makes them an acceptable service and sacrifice to
God, and fruit abounding to a good account. Paul mentions this, probably, as
the argument he had used with them to persuade them to it, and it is an
argument of equal cogency to other Gentile churches.
2. Concerning Paul's agency in this business. He could
himself contribute nothing; silver and gold he had none, but lived upon the
kindness of his friends; yet he ministered unto the saints (Rom_15:25) by stirring up others, receiving what
was gathered, and transmitting it to Jerusalem. Many good works of that kind
stand at a stay for want of some one active person to lead in them, and to set
the wheels a going. Paul's labour in this work is not to be interpreted as any
neglect of his preaching-work, nor did Paul leave the word of God, to serve tables;
for, besides this, Paul had other business in this journey, to visit and
confirm the churches, and took this by the bye; this was indeed a part of the
trust committed to him, in which he was concerned to approve himself faithful (Gal_2:10): They would that we should remember
the poor. Paul was one that laid out himself to do good every way, like his
Master, to the bodies as well as to the souls of people. Ministering to the
saints is good work, and is not below the greatest apostles. This Paul had undertaken,
and therefore he resolves to go through with it, before he fell upon other work
(Rom_15:28): When I have sealed to
them this fruit. He calls the alms fruit, for it is one of the
fruits of righteousness; it sprang from a root of grace in the givers, and
redounded to the benefit and comfort of the receivers. And his sealing it
intimates his great care about it, that what was given might be kept entire,
and not embezzled, but disposed of according to the design of the givers. Paul
was very solicitous to approve himself faithful in the management of this
matter: an excellent pattern for ministers to write after, that the ministry
may in nothing be blamed.
Romans
15:30-33
Here we have, I.
St. Paul's desire of a share in the prayers of the Romans for him, expressed
very earnestly, Rom_15:30-32. Though
Paul was a great apostle, yet he begged the prayers of the meanest Christians,
not here only, but in several other of the epistles. He had prayed much for
them, and this he desires as the return of his kindness. Interchanging prayers
is an excellent token of the interchanging of loves. Paul speaks like one that
knew himself, and would hereby teach us how to value the effectual fervent
prayer of the righteous. How careful should we be lest we do any thing to
forfeit our interest in the love and prayers of god's praying people!
1. Observe why
they must pray for him. He begs it with the greatest importunity. He might suspect
they would forget him in their prayers, because they had no personal
acquaintance with him, and therefore he urges it so closely, and begs it with
the most affectionate obtestations, by all that is sacred and valuable: I
beseech you, (1.) “For the Lord Jesus Christ's sake. He is my
Master, I am going about his work, and his glory is interested in the success
of it: if you have any regard to Jesus Christ, and to his cause and kingdom,
pray for me. You love Christ, and own Christ; for his sake then do me this
kindness.” (2.) “For the love of the Spirit. As a proof and instance of
that love which the Spirit works in the hearts of believers one to another,
pray for me; as a fruit of that communion which we have one with another by the
Spirit though we never saw one another. If ever you experienced the Spirit's
love to you, and would be found returning your love to the Spirit, be not
wanting in this office of kindness.”
2. How they must
pray for him: That you strive together. (1.) That you strive in
prayer. We must put forth all that is within us in that duty; pray with
fixedness, faith, and fervency; wrestle with God, as Jacob did; pray in
praying, as Elias did (Jam_5:17), and
stir up ourselves to take hold on God (Isa_64:7);
and this is not only when we are praying for ourselves, but when we are praying
for our friends. True love to our brethren should make us as earnest for them
as sense of our own need makes us for ourselves. (2.) That you strive together
with me. When he begged their prayers for him, he did not intend thereby to
excuse his praying for himself; no, “Strive together with me, who am
wrestling with God daily, upon my own and my friends' account.” He would have
them to ply the same oar. Paul and these Romans were distant in place, and
likely to be so, and yet they might join together in prayer; those who are put
far asunder by the disposal of God's providence may yet meet together at the
throne of his grace. Those who beg the prayers of others must not neglect to
pray for themselves.
3. What they must
beg of God for him. He mentions particulars; for, in praying both for ourselves
and for our friends, it is good to be particular. What wilt thou that I
shall do for thee? So says Christ, when he holds out the golden sceptre.
Though he knows our state and wants perfectly, he will know them from us. He
recommends himself to their prayers, with reference to three things: - (1.) The
dangers which he was exposed to: That I may be delivered from those that do
not believe in Judea. The unbelieving Jews were the most violent enemies
Paul had and most enraged against him, and some prospect he had of trouble from
them in this journey; and therefore they must pray that God would deliver him.
We may, and must, pray against persecution. This prayer was answered in several
remarkable deliverances of Paul, recorded Acts 21, 22, 23, and 24. (2.) His
services: Pray that my service which I have for Jerusalem may be accepted of
the saints. Why, was there any danger that it would not be accepted? Can
money be otherwise than acceptable to the poor? Yes, there was some ground of
suspicion in this case; for Paul was the apostle of the Gentiles, and as the
unbelieving Jews looked spitefully at him, which was their wickedness, so those
that believed were shy of him upon that account, which was their weakness. He
does not say, “Let them choose whether they will accept it or no; if they will
not, it shall be better bestowed;” but, “Pray that it may be accepted.” As God
must be sought unto for the restraining of the ill will of our enemies, so also
for the preserving and increasing of the good will of our friends; for God has
the hearts both of the one and of the other in his hands. (3.) His journey to
them. To engage their prayers for him, he interests them in his concerns (Rom_15:32): That I may come unto you with
joy. If his present journey to Jerusalem proved unsuccessful, his intended
journey to Rome would be uncomfortable. If he should not do good, and prosper,
in one visit, he thought he should have small joy of the next: may come with
joy, by the will of God. All our joy depends upon the will of God. The
comfort of the creature is in every thing according to the disposal of the
Creator.
II.
Here is another prayer of the apostle for them (Rom_15:33):
Now the God of peace be with you all, Amen. The Lord of hosts, the God
of battle, is the God of peace, the author and lover of peace. He describes God
under this title here, because of the divisions among them, to recommend peace
to them; if God be the God of peace, let us be men of peace. The Old Testament
blessing was, Peace be with you; now, The god of peace be with you.
Those who have the fountain cannot want any of the streams. With you all;
both weak and strong. To dispose them to a nearer union, he puts them
altogether in this prayer. Those who are united in the blessing of God should
be united in affection one to another.
Romans
16:1-16
Such
remembrances as these are usual in letters between friends; and yet Paul, by
the savouriness of his expressions, sanctifies these common compliments.
I. Here is the
recommendation of a friend, by whom (as some think) this epistle was sent - one
Phebe, Rom_16:1, Rom_16:2. It should seem that she was a person
of quality and estate, who had business which called her to Rome, where she was
a stranger; and therefore Paul recommends her to the acquaintance of the
Christians there: an expression of his true friendship to her. Paul was as well
skilled in the art of obliging as most men. True religion, rightly received,
never made any man uncivil. Courtesy and Christianity agree well together. It
is not in compliment to her, but in sincerity, that,
1. He gives a
very good character of her. (1.) As a sister to Paul: Phebe our sister;
not in nature, but in grace; not in affinity or consanguinity, but in pure
Christianity: his own sister in the faith of Christ, loving Paul, and beloved
of him, with a pure and chaste and spiritual love, as a sister; for there is
neither male nor female, but all are one in Christ Jesus, Gal_3:28. Both Christ and his apostles had some
of their best friends among the devout (and upon that account honourable)
women. (2.) As a servant to the church at Cenchrea: diakonon, a servant by office, a stated
servant, not to preach the word (that was forbidden to women), but in acts of
charity and hospitality. Some think she was one of the widows that ministered
to the sick and were taken into the church's number, 1Ti_5:9. But those were old and poor, whereas Phebe seems to
have been a person of some account; and yet it was no disparagement to her to
be a servant to the church. Probably they used to meet at her house, and she
undertook the care of entertaining the ministers, especially strangers. Every
one in his place should strive to serve the church, for therein he serves
Christ, and it will turn to a good account another day. Cenchrea was a small
sea-port town adjoining to Corinth, about twelve furlongs distant. Some think
there was a church there, distinct from that at Corinth, though, being so near,
it is very probable that the church of Corinth is called the church of
Cenchrea, because their place of meeting might be there, on account of the
great opposition to them in the city (Act_18:12),
as at Philippi they met out of the city by the water-side, Act_16:13. So the reformed church of Paris might
be called the church at Charenton, where they formerly met, out of the
city. (3.) As a succourer of many, and particularly of Paul, Rom_16:2. She relieved many that were in want
and distress - a good copy for women to write after that have ability. she was
kind to those that needed kindness, intimated in her succouring them; and her
bounty was extensive, she was a succourer of many. Observe the gratitude of
Paul in mentioning her particular kindness to him: And to myself also.
Acknowledgment of favours is the least return we can make. It was much to her
honour that Paul left this upon record; for wherever this epistle is read her
kindness to Paul is told for a memorial of her.
2. He recommends her to their care and kindness, as one
worthy to be taken notice of with peculiar respect. (1.) “Receive her in the
Lord. Entertain her; bid her welcome.” This pass, under Paul's hand, could
not but recommend her to any Christian church. “Receive her in the Lord,”
that is, “for the Lord's sake; receive her as a servant and friend of Christ.” As
it becometh saints to receive, who love Christ, and therefore love all that
are his for his sake; or, as becometh saints to be received, with love
and honour and the tenderest affection. There may be occasion sometimes to
improve our interest in our friends, not only for ourselves, but for others
also, interest being a price in the hand for doing good. (2.) Assist
her in whatsoever business she has need of you. Whether she had business of
trade, or law-business at the court, is not material; however being a woman, a
stranger, a Christian, she had need of help: and Paul engaged them to be
assistant to her. It becomes Christians to be helpful one to another in their
affairs, especially to be helpful to strangers; for we are members one of
another and we know not what need of help we may have ourselves. Observe, Paul
bespeaks help for one that had been so helpful to many; he that watereth shall
be watered also himself.
II. Here are commendations to some particular friends
among those to whom he wrote, more than in any other of the epistles. Though
the care of all the churches came upon Paul daily, enough to distract an
ordinary head, yet he could retain the remembrance of so many; and his heart
was so full of love and affection as to send salutations to each of them with
particular characters of them, and expressions of love to them and concern for
them. Greet them, salute them; it is the same word, aspasasthe.
“Let them know that I remember them, and love them, and wish them well.” There
is something observable in several of these salutations.
1. Concerning Aquila and Priscilla, a famous couple,
that Paul had a special kindness for. They were originally of Rome, but were
banished thence by the edict of Claudius, Act_18:2.
At Corinth, Paul became acquainted with them, wrought with them at the trade of
tent-making; after some time, when the edge of that edict was rebated, they
returned to Rome, and thither he now sends commendations to them. He calls them
his helpers in Christ Jesus, by private instructions and converse
furthering the success of Paul's public preaching, one instance of which we
have in their instructing Apollos, Act_18:26.
Those are helpers to faithful ministers that lay out themselves in their
families and among their neighbours to do good to souls. Nay, they did not only
do much, but they ventured much, for Paul: They have for my life laid down
their own necks. They exposed themselves to secure Paul, hazarded their own
lives for the preservation of his, considering how much better they might be
spared than he. Paul was in a great deal of danger at Corinth, while he
sojourned with them; but they sheltered him, though they thereby made
themselves obnoxious to the enraged multitudes, Act_18:12,
Act_18:17. It was a good while ago that
they had done Paul this kindness; and yet he speaks as feelingly of it as if it
had been but yesterday. To whom (says he) not only I give thanks, but
also all the churches of the Gentiles; who were all beholden to these good
people for helping to save the life of him that was the apostle of the
Gentiles. Paul mentions this, to engage the Christians at Rome to be the more
kind to Aquila and Priscilla. He sends likewise greeting to the church in
their house, Rom_16:5. It seems
then, a church in a house is no such absurd thing as some make it to be.
Perhaps there was a congregation of Christians that used to meet at their house
at stated times; and then, no doubt, it was, like the house of Obed-Edom,
blessed for the ark's sake. Others think that the church was no more than a
religious, pious, well-governed family, that kept up the worship of God.
Religion, in the power of it, reigning in a family, will turn a house into a
church. And doubtless it had a good influence upon this that Priscilla the good
wife of the family was so very eminent and forward in religion, so eminent that
she is often named first. A virtuous woman, that looks well to the ways of her
household, may do much towards the advancement of religion in a family. When
Priscilla and Aquila were at Ephesus, though but sojourners there, yet there
also they had a church in their house, 1Co_16:19.
A truly godly man will be careful to take religion along with him wherever he
goes. When Abraham removed his tent, he renewed his altar, Gen_13:18.
2. Concerning Epenetus, Rom_16:5.
He calls him his well-beloved. Where the law of love is in the heart the
law of kindness will be in the tongue. Endearing language should pass among
Christians to express love, and to engage love. So he calls Amplias, beloved
in the Lord, with true Christian love for Christ's sake; and Stachys, his beloved:
a sign that Paul had been in the third heaven, he was so much made up of love.
Of Epenetus it is further said that he was the first-fruit of Achaia unto
Christ; not only one of the most eminent believers in that country, but one
of the first that was converted to the faith of Christ: one that was offered up
to God by Paul, as the first-fruits of his ministry there; an earnest of a
great harvest; for in Corinth, the chief city of Achaia, God had much people, Act_18:10. Special respect is to be paid to
those that set out early, and come to work in the vineyard at the first hour,
at the first call. The household of Stephanas is likewise said to be the
first-fruits of Achaia, 1Co_16:15.
Perhaps Epenetus was one of that household; or, at least, he was one of the first
three; not the first alone, but one of the first fleece of Christians, that
the region of Achaia afforded.
3. Concerning Mary, and some others who were laborious
in that which is good, industrious Christians: Mary, who bestowed
much labour on us. True love never sticks at labour, but rather takes a
pleasure in it; where there is much love there will be much labour. Some think
this Mary had been at some of those places where Paul was, though now removed
to Rome, and had personally ministered to him; others think Paul speaks of her
labour as bestowed upon him because it was bestowed upon his friends and
fellow-labourers, and he took what was done to them as done to himself. He says
of Tryphena and Tryphosa, two useful women in their places, that they laboured
in the Lord (Rom_16:12), and of the
beloved Persis, another good woman, that she laboured much in the Lord, more
than others, abounding more in the work of the Lord.
4. Concerning Andronicus and Junia, Rom_16:7. Some take them for a man and his wife,
and the original will well enough bear it; and, considering the name of the
latter, this is more probable than that they should be two men, as others
think, and brethren. Observe, (1.) They were Paul's cousins, akin to
him; so was Herodion, Rom_16:11.
Religion does not take away, but rectifies, sanctifies, and improves, our
respect to our kindred, engaging us to lay out ourselves most for their good,
and to rejoice in them the more, when we find them related to Christ by faith.
(2.) They were his fellow-prisoners. Partnership in suffering sometimes does
much towards the union of souls and the knitting of affections. We do not find
in the story of the Acts any imprisonment of Paul before the writing of this
epistle, but that at Philippi, Act_16:23.
But Paul was in prisons more frequent (2Co_11:23),
in some of which, it seems, he met with his friends Andronicus and Junia,
yoke-fellows, as in other things, so in suffering for Christ and bearing his
yoke. (3.) They were of note among the apostles, not so much perhaps
because they were persons of estate and quality in the world as because they
were eminent for knowledge, and gifts, and graces, which made them famous among
the apostles, who were competent judges of those things, and were endued with a
spirit of discerning not only the sincerity, but the eminency, of Christians.
(4.) Who also were in Christ before me, that is, were converted to the
Christian faith. In time they had the start of Paul, though he was converted
the next year after Christ's ascension. How ready was Paul to acknowledge in
others any kind of precedency!
5. Concerning Apelles, who is here said to be approved
in Christ (Rom_16:10), a high
character! He was one of known integrity and sincerity in his religion, one
that had been tried; his friends and enemies had tried him, and he was as gold.
he was of approved knowledge and judgment, approved courage and constancy; a
man that one might trust and repose a confidence in.
6. Concerning Aristobulus and Narcissus; notice is taken
of their household, Rom_16:10, Rom_16:11. Those of their household who are
in the Lord (as it is limited, Rom_16:11),
that were Christians. How studious was Paul to leave none out of his
salutations that he had any knowledge of or acquaintance with! Aristobulus and
Narcissus themselves, some think, were absent, or lately dead; others think
they were unbelievers, and such as did not themselves embrace Christianity; so
Pareus: and some think this Narcissus was the same with one of that name who is
frequently mentioned in the life of Claudius, as a very rich man that had a
great family, but was very wicked and mischievous. It seems, then, there were
some good servants, or other retainers, even in the family of a wicked man, a
common case, 1Ti_6:1. Compare 1Ti_6:2. The poor servant is called, and chosen,
and faithful, while the rich master is passed by, and left to perish in
unbelief. Even so, Father, because it seemed good unto thee.
7. Concerning Rufus (Rom_16:13),
chosen in the Lord. He was a choice Christian, whose gifts and graces
evinced that he was eternally chosen in Christ Jesus. He was one of a thousand
for integrity and holiness. - And his mother and mine, his mother by
nature and mine by Christian love and spiritual affection; as he calls Phebe
his sister, and teaches Timothy to treat the elder women as mothers, 1Ti_5:2. This good woman, upon some occasion or
other, had been as a mother to Paul, in caring for him, and comforting him; and
Paul here gratefully owns it, and calls her mother.
8. Concerning the rest this is observable, that he
salutes the brethren who are with them (Rom_16:14),
and the saints who are with them (Rom_16:15),
with them in family-relations, with them in the bond of Christian communion. It
is the good property of saints to delight in being together; and Paul thus
joins them together in his salutations to endear them one to another. Lest any
should find themselves aggrieved, as if Paul had forgotten them, he concludes
with the remembrance of the rest, as brethren and saints, though not named. In
Christian congregations there should be smaller societies linked together in
love and converse, and taking opportunities of being often together. Among all
those to whom Paul sends greeting here is not a word of Peter, which gives occasion
to suspect that he was not bishop of Rome, as the Papists say he was; for, if
he was, we cannot but suppose him resident, or at least how could Paul write so
long an epistle to the Christians there, and take no notice of him?
Lastly, He concludes with the recommendation of them to the
love and embraces one of another: Salute one another with a holy kiss.
Mutual salutations, as they express love, so they increase and strengthen love,
and endear Christians one to another: therefore Paul here encourages the use of
them, and only directs that they may be holy - a chaste kiss, in opposition to
that which is wanton and lascivious; a sincere kiss, in opposition to that
which is treacherous and dissembling, as Judas's, when he betrayed Christ with
a kiss. He adds, in the close, a general salutation to them all, in the name of
the churches of Christ (Rom_16:16): “The
churches of Christ salute you; that is, the churches which I am with, and
which I am accustomed to visit personally, as knit together in the bonds of the
common Christianity, desire me to testify their affection to you and good
wishes for you.” This is one way of maintaining the communion of saints.
Romans
16:17-20
The apostle
having endeavoured by his endearing salutations to unite them together, it was
not improper to subjoin a caution to take heed of those whose principles and
practices were destructive to Christian love. And we may observe,
I. The caution
itself, which is given in the most obliging manner that could be: I beseech
you, brethren. He does not will and command, as one that lorded it over
God's heritage, but for love's sake beseeches. How earnest, how endearing, are
Paul's exhortations! He teaches them, 1. To see their danger: Mark those who
cause divisions and offences. Our Master had himself foretold that
divisions and offences would come, but had entailed a woe on those by whom they
come (Mat_18:7), and against such we
are here cautioned. Those who burden the church with dividing and offending
impositions, who uphold and enforce those impositions, who introduce and
propagate dividing and offending notions, which are erroneous or justly
suspected, who out of pride, ambition, affectation of novelty, or the like,
causelessly separate from their brethren, and by perverse disputes, censures,
and evil surmisings, alienate the affections of Christians one from another -
these cause divisions and offences, contrary to, or different from (for that
also is implied, it is para
tēn didachēn),
the doctrine which we have learned. Whatever varies from the form of
sound doctrine which we have in the scriptures opens a door to divisions and
offences. If truth be once deserted, unity and peace will not last long. Now, mark
those that thus cause divisions, skopein. Observe them, the method they
take, the end they drive at. There is need of a piercing watchful eye to
discern the danger we are in from such people; for commonly the pretences are
plausible, when the projects are very pernicious. Do not look only at the
divisions and offences, but run up those streams to the fountain, and mark
those that cause them, and especially that in them which causes these divisions
and offences, those lusts on each side whence come these wars and fightings. A
danger discovered is half prevented. 2. To shun it: “Avoid them. Shun
all necessary communion and communication with them, lest you be leavened and
infected by them. Do not strike in with any dividing interests, nor embrace any
of those principles or practices which are destructive to Christian love and
charity, or to the truth which is according to godliness. - Their word will
eat as doth a canker.” Some think he especially warns them to take heed of
the judaizing teachers, who, under convert of the Christian name, kept up the
Mosaical ceremonies, and preached the necessity of them, who were industrious
in all places to draw disciples after them, and whom Paul in most of his
epistles cautions the churches to take heed of.
II. The reasons to enforce this caution.
1. Because of the pernicious policy of these seducers, Rom_16:18. The worse they are, the more need we
have to watch against them. Now observe his description of them, in two things:
- (1.) The master they serve: not our Lord Jesus Christ. Though they
call themselves Christians, they do not serve Christ; do not aim at his glory,
promote his interest, nor do his will, whatever they pretend. How many are
there who call Christ Master and Lord, that are far from serving him! But they serve
their own belly - their carnal, sensual, secular interests. It is some base
lust or other that they are pleasing; pride, ambition, covetousness, luxury,
lasciviousness, these are the designs which they are really carrying on. Their God
is their belly, Phi_3:19. What a
base master do they serve, and how unworthy to come in competition with Christ,
that serve their own bellies, that make gain their godliness, and the
gratifying of a sensual appetite the very scope and business of their lives, to
which all other purposes and designs must truckle and be made subservient. (2.)
The method they take to compass their design: By good words and fair
speeches they deceive the hearts of the simple. Their words and speeches
have a show of holiness and zeal for God (it is an easy thing to be godly from
the teeth outward), and show of kindness and love to those into whom they
instil their corrupt doctrines, accosting them courteously when they intend them
the greatest mischief. Thus by good words and fair speeches the serpent
beguiled Eve. Observe, They corrupt their heads by deceiving their hearts,
pervert their judgments by slyly insinuating themselves into their affections.
We have a great need therefore to keep our hearts with all diligence,
especially when seducing spirits are abroad.
2. Because of the peril we are in, through our
proneness and aptness to be inveigled and ensnared by them: “For your
obedience has come abroad unto all men - you are noted in all the churches
for a willing, tractable, complying people.” And, (1.) Therefore, because it
was so, these seducing teachers would be the more apt to assault them. The
devil and his agents have a particular spite against flourishing churches and flourishing
souls. The ship that is known to be richly laden is most exposed to privateers.
The adversary and enemy covets such a prey, therefore look to yourselves, 2Jo_1:8. “The false teachers hear that you are
an obedient people, and therefore they will be likely to come among you, to see
if you will be obedient to them.” It has been the common policy of seducers to
set upon those who are softened by convictions, and begin to enquire what they
shall do, because such do most easily receive the impressions of their
opinions. Sad experience witnesses how many who have begun to ask the way to
Zion, with their faces thitherward, have fatally split upon this rock, which
proves it to be much the duty of ministers, with a double care, to feed the
lambs of the flock, to lay a good foundation, and gently to lead those that are
with young. (2.) Though it were so, yet they were in danger from these
seducers. This Paul suggests with a great deal of modesty and tenderness; not
as one suspicious of them, but as one solicitous for them: “You obedience
has come abroad unto all men; we grant this and rejoice in it: I am glad
therefore on your behalf.” Thus does he insinuate their commendation, the
better to make way for the caution. A holy jealousy of our friends may very well
comport with a holy joy in them. “You think yourselves a very happy people, and
so do I too: but for all that you must not be secure: I would have you wise
unto that which is good, and simple concerning evil. You are a willing
good-natured people, but you had best take heed of being imposed upon by those
seducers.” A pliable temper is good when it is under good government; but
otherwise it may be very ensnaring; and therefore he gives two general rules: -
[1.] To be wise unto that which is good, that is, to be skilful and
intelligent in the truths and ways of God. “Be wise to try the spirits, to
prove all things, and then to hold fast that only which is good.” There is need
of a great deal of wisdom in our adherence to good truths, and good duties, and
good people, lest in any of these we be imposed upon and deluded. Be ye
therefore wise as serpents (Mat_10:16),
wise to discern that which is really good and that which is counterfeit; wise
to distinguish things that differ, to improve opportunities. While we are in
the midst of so many deceivers, we have great need of that wisdom of the
prudent which is to understand his way, Pro_14:8.
[2.] To be simple concerning evil - so wise as not to be deceived,
and yet so simple as not to be deceivers. It is a holy simplicity, not to be
able to contrive, nor palliate, nor carry on, any evil design; akeraious
- harmless, unmixed, inoffensive. In malice be you children, 1Co_14:20. The wisdom of the serpent becomes
Christians, but not the subtlety of the old serpent. We must withal be
harmless as doves. That is a wisely simple man that knows not how to do any
thing against the truth. Now Paul was the more solicitous for the Roman church,
that it might preserve its integrity, because it was so famous; it was a city
upon a hill, and many eyes were upon the Christians there, so that an error
prevailing there would be a bad precedent, and have an ill influence upon other
churches: as indeed it has since proved in fact, the great apostasy of the
latter days taking its rise from that capital city. The errors of leading
churches are leading errors. When the bishop of Rome fell as a great star
from heaven (Rev_8:10), his tail
drew a third part of the stars after him, Rev_12:4.
3. Because of the promise of God, that we shall have
victory at last, which is given to quicken and encourage, not to supersede, our
watchful cares and vigorous endeavours. It is a very sweet promise (Rom_16:20): The God of peace shall bruise
Satan under your feet.
(1.) The titles he gives to God: The God of peace,
the author and giver of all good. When we come to God for spiritual victories,
we must not only eye him as the Lord of hosts, whose all power is, but as the
God of peace, a God at peace with us, speaking peace to us, working peace in
us, creating peace for us. Victory comes from God more as the God of peace than
as the God of war; for, in all our conflicts, peace is the thing we must
contend for. God, as the God of peace, will restrain and vanquish all those
that cause divisions and offences, and so break and disturb the peace of the
church.
(2.) The blessing he expects from God - a victory over
Satan. If he mean primarily those false doctrines and seducing spirits spoken
of before, of which Satan was the prime founder and author, yet doubtless, it
comprehends all the other designs and devices of Satan against souls, to
defile, disturb, and destroy them, all his attempts to keep us from the purity
of heaven, the peace of heaven here, and the possession of heaven hereafter.
Satan tempting and troubling, acting as a deceiver and as a destroyer, the God
of peace will bruise under our feet. He had cautioned them before
against simplicity: now they, being conscious of their own great weakness and
folly, might think, “How shall we evade and escape these snares that are laid
for us? Will not these adversaries of our souls be at length too hard for us?”
“No,” says he, “fear not; though you cannot overcome in your own strength and
wisdom, yet the God of peace will do it for you; and through him that loved us
we shall be more than conquerors.” [1.] The victory shall be complete: He
shall bruise Satan under your feet, plainly alluding to the first promise
the Messiah made in paradise (Gen_3:15),
that the seed of the woman should break the serpent's head, which is in the
fulfilling every day, while the saints are enabled to resist and overcome the
temptations of Satan, and will be perfectly fulfilled when, in spite of all the
powers of darkness, all that belong to the election of grace shall be brought
triumphantly to glory. When Joshua had conquered the kings of Canaan, he called
the captains of Israel to set their feet upon the necks of those kings (Jos_10:24), so will Christ, our Joshua, enable
all his faithful servants and soldiers to set their feet upon Satan's neck, to
trample upon, and triumph over, their spiritual enemies. Christ hath overcome
for us; disarmed the strong man armed, broken his power, and we have nothing to
do but to pursue the victory and divide the spoil. Let this quicken us to our
spiritual conflict, to fight the good fight of faith - we have to do with a
conquered enemy, and the victory will be perfect shortly. [2.] The victory
shall be speedy: He shall do it shortly. Yet a little while, and he that
shall come will come. He hath said it, Behold, I come quickly. When
Satan seems to have prevailed, and we are ready to give up all for lost, then
will the God of peace cut the work short in righteousness. It will encourage
soldiers when they know the war will be at an end quickly, in such a victory.
Some refer it to the happy period of their contentions in true love and unity;
others to the period of the church's persecutions in the conversion of the
powers of the empire to Christianity, when the bloody enemies of the church
were subdued and trampled on by Constantine, and the church under his
government. It is rather to be applied to the victory which all the saints
shall have over Satan when they come to heaven, and shall be for ever out of
his reach, together with the present victories which through grace they obtain
in earnest of that. Hold out therefore, faith and patience, yet a little while;
when we have once got through the Red Sea, we shall see our spiritual enemies
dead on the shore, and triumphantly sing the song of Moses and the song of the
Lamb. To this therefore he subjoins the benediction, The grace of our Lord
Jesus Christ be with you - the good-will of Christ towards you, the good
work of Christ in you. This will be the best preservative against the snares of
heretics, and schismatics, and false teachers. If the grace of Christ be with
us, who can be against us so as to prevail? Be strong therefore in the grace
which is in Christ Jesus. Paul, not only as a friend, but as a minister and
an apostle, who had received grace for grace, thus with authority blesses them
with this blessing, and repeats it, Rom_16:24.
Romans
16:21-24
As the Apostle
had before sent his own salutations to many of this church, and that of the
churches round him to them all, he here adds an affectionate remembrance of
them from some particular persons who were now with him, the better to promote
acquaintance and fellowship among distant saints, and that the subscribing of
these worthy names, known to them, might the more recommend this epistle. He
mentions, 1. Some that were his particular friends, and probably known to the
Roman Christians: Timotheus my work-fellow. Paul sometimes calls Timothy
his son, as an inferior; but here he styles him his work-fellow, as one equal
with him, such a respect does he put upon him: and Lucius, probably
Lucius of Cyrene, a noted man in the church of Antioch (Act_13:1), as Jason was at Thessalonica, where
he suffered for entertaining Paul (Act_17:5,
Act_17:6): and Sosipater,
supposed to be the same with Sopater of Berea, mentioned Act_20:4. These Paul calls his kinsmen; not only
more largely, as they were Jews, but as they were in blood or affinity nearly
allied to him. It seems, Paul was of a good family, that he met with so many of
his kindred in several places. It is a very great comfort to see the holiness
and usefulness of our kindred. 2. One that was Paul's amanuensis (Rom_16:22): I Tertius, who wrote this
epistle. Paul made use of a scribe, not out of state nor idleness, but
because he wrote a bad hand, which was not very legible, which he excuses, when
he writes to the Galatians with his own hand (Gal_6:11):
pēlikois grammasi - with what kind of
letters. Perhaps this Tertius was the same with Silas; for Silas (as some
think) signifies the third in Hebrew, as Tertius in Latin.
Tertius either wrote as Paul dictated, or transcribed it fairly over out of
Paul's foul copy. The least piece of service done to the church, and the
ministers of the church, shall not pass without a remembrance and a recompence.
It was an honour to Tertius that he had a hand, though but as a scribe, in
writing this epistle. 3. Some others that were of note among the Christians (Rom_16:23): Gaius my host. It is
uncertain whether this was Gaius of Derbe (Act_20:4),
or Gaius of Macedonia (Act_19:29), or
rather Gaius of Corinth (1Co_1:14), and
whether any of these was he to whom John wrote his third epistle. However, Paul
commends him for his great hospitality; not only my host, but of the whole
church - one that entertained them all as there was occasion, opened his
doors to their church-meetings, and eased the rest of the church by his
readiness to treat all Christian stranger that came to them. Erastus, the
chamberlain of the city is another; he means the city of Corinth, whence
this epistle was dated. It seems he was a person of honour and account, one in
public place, steward or treasurer. Not many mighty, not many noble, are
called, but some are. His estate, and honour, and employment, did not take him
off from attending on Paul and laying out himself for the good of the church,
it should seem, in the work of the ministry; for he is joined with Timothy (Act_19:22), and is mentioned 2Ti_4:20. It was no disparagement to the
chamberlain of the city to be a preacher of the gospel of Christ. Quartus
is likewise mentioned, and called a brother; for as one is our Father, even
Christ, so all we are brethren.
Romans
16:25-27
Here the apostle
solemnly closes his epistle with a magnificent ascription of glory to the
blessed God, as one that terminated all in the praise and glory of God, and
studied to return all to him, seeing all is of him and from him. He does, as it
were, breathe out his soul to these Romans in the praise of God, choosing to
make that the end of his epistle which he made the end of his life. Observe
here,
I. A description
of the gospel of God, which comes in in a parenthesis; having occasion to speak
of it as the means by which the power of God establishes souls, and the rule of
that establishment: To establish you according to my gospel. Paul calls
it his gospel, because he was the preacher of it and because he did so much
glory in it. Some think he means especially that declaration, explication, and
application, of the doctrine of the gospel, which he had now made in this
epistle; but it rather takes in all the preaching and writing of the apostles,
among whom Paul was a principal labourer. Through their word (Joh_17:20), the word committed to them.
Ministers are the ambassadors, and the gospel is their embassy. Paul had his
head and heart so full of the gospel that he could scarcely mention it without
a digression to set forth the nature and excellency of it.
1. It is the preaching
of Jesus Christ. Christ was the preacher of it himself; it began to be
spoken by the Lord, Heb_2:3. So pleased
was Christ with his undertaking for our salvation that he would himself be the
publisher of it. Or, Christ is the subject-matter of it; the sum and substance
of the whole gospel is Jesus Christ and him crucified. We preach not ourselves,
says Paul, but Christ Jesus the Lord. That which establishes souls is the plain
preaching of Jesus Christ.
2. It is the
revelation of the mystery which was kept secret since the world began, and by
the scriptures of the prophets made known. The subject-matter of the gospel
is a mystery. Our redemption and salvation by Jesus Christ, in the foundation,
method, and fruits of it, are, without controversy, a great mystery of
godliness, 1Ti_3:16. This bespeaks the
honour of the gospel; it is no vulgar common thing, hammered out by any human
wit, but it is the admirable product of the eternal wisdom and counsel of God,
and has in it such an inconceivable height, such an unfathomable depth, as
surpass knowledge. It is a mystery which the angels desire to look into, and
cannot find the bottom of. And yet, blessed be God, there is as much of this
mystery made plain as will suffice to bring us to heaven, if we do not wilfully
neglect so great salvation. Now,
(1.) This
mystery was kept secret since the world began: chronois aiōniois sisigēmenou. It was wrapped up in
silence from eternity; so some - a temporibus aeternis; it is no new
and upstart notion, no late invention, but took rise from the days of eternity
and the purposes of God's everlasting love. Before the foundation of the world
was laid, the mystery was hid in God, Eph_3:9.
Or, since the world began, so we translate it. During all the times of
the Old Testament this mystery was comparatively kept secret in the types and
shadows of the ceremonial law, and the dark predictions of the prophets, which
pointed at it, but so that they could not stedfastly look to the end of those
things, 2Co_3:13. Thus it was hid from
ages and generations, even among the Jews, much more among the Gentiles that
sat in darkness and had no notices at all of it. Even the disciples of Christ themselves,
before his resurrection and ascension, were very much in the dark about the
mystery of redemption, and their notion of it was very much clouded and
confused; such a secret was it for many ages. But,
(2.) It is now made manifest. The veil is rent, the
shadows of the evening are done away, and life and immortality are brought to
light by the gospel, and the Sun of righteousness has risen upon the world.
Paul does not pretend to have the monopoly of this discovery, as if he alone
knew it; no, it is made manifest to many others. But how is it made manifest by
the scriptures of the prophets? Surely, because now the event has given the
best exposition to the prophecies of the Old Testament. Being accomplished,
they are explained. The preaching of the prophets, as far as it related to this
mystery, was in a great measure dark and unintelligible in the ages wherein
they lived; but the scriptures of the prophets, the things which they left in
writing, are now not only made plain in themselves, but by them this mystery is
made known to all nations. The Old Testament does not only borrow light fRom.
but return light to, the revelation of the New Testament. If the New Testament
explains the Old, the Old Testament, by way of requital, very much illustrates
the New. Thus the Old Testament prophets prophesy again, now their prophecies
are fulfilled, before many people, and nations, and tongues. I refer to Rev_10:11, which this explains. Now Christ
appears to have been the treasure hid in the field of the Old Testament. To him
bear all the prophets witness. See Luk_24:27.
(3.) It is manifested according to the commandment
of the everlasting God - the purpose, counsel, and decree of God from
eternity, and the commission and appointment given first to Christ and then to
the apostles, in the fulness of time. They received commandment from the Father
to do what they did in preaching the gospel. Lest any should object, “Why was
this mystery kept secret so long, and why made manifest now?” - he resolves it
into the will of God, who is an absolute sovereign, and gives not an account of
any of his matters. The commandment of the everlasting God was enough to bear
out the apostles and ministers of the gospel in their preaching. The
everlasting God. This attribute of eternity is here given up to God very
emphatically. [1.] He is from everlasting, which intimates that though he had
kept this mystery secret since the world began, and had but lately revealed it,
yet he had framed and contrived it from everlasting, before the worlds were.
The oaths and covenants in the written word are but the copy of the oath and
covenant which were between the Father and the Son from eternity: those the
extracts, these the original. And, [2.] He is to everlasting, intimating the
eternal continuance to us. We must never look for any new revelation, but abide
by this, for this is according to the commandment of the everlasting God.
Christ, in the gospel, is the same yesterday, today, and for ever.
(4.) It is made known to all nations for the
obedience of faith. The extent of this revelation he often takes notice of;
that whereas hitherto in Judah only God was known, now Christ is salvation to
the ends of the earth, to all nations. And the design of it is very observable;
it is for the obedience of faith - that they may believe and obey it, receive
it and be rules by it. The gospel is revealed, not to be talked of and disputed
about, but to be submitted to. The obedience of faith is that obedience which
is paid to the word of faith (see that phrase, Act_6:7),
and which is produced by the grace of faith. See here what is the right faith -
even that which works in obedience; and what is the right obedience - even that
which springs from faith; and what is the design of the gospel - to bring us to
both.
II. A doxology to that God whose gospel it is,
ascribing glory to him for ever (Rom_16:27),
acknowledging that he is a glorious God, and adoring him accordingly, with the
most awful affections, desiring and longing to be at this work with the holy
angels, where we shall be doing it to eternity. This is praising God, ascribing
glory to him for ever. Observe,
1. The matter of this praise. In thanking God, we
fasten upon his favours to us; in praising and adoring God, we fasten upon his
perfections in himself. Two of his principal attributes are here taken notice
of: - (1.) His power (Rom_16:25): To
him that is of power to establish you. It is no less than a divine power
that establishes the saints. Considering the disposition there is in them to
fall, the industry of their spiritual enemies that seek to overthrow them, and
the shaking times into which their lot is cast, no less than an almighty power
will establish them. That power of God which is put forth for the establishment
of the saints is and ought to be the matter of our praise, as Jud_1:24, To him that is able to keep you
from falling. In giving God the glory of this power we may, and must, take
to ourselves the comfort of it - that whatever our doubts, and difficulties,
and fears, may be, our God, whom we serve, is of power to establish us. See 1Pe_1:5; Joh_10:29.
(2.) His wisdom (Rom_16:27): To God
only wise. Power to effect without wisdom to contrive, and wisdom to
contrive without power to effect, are alike vain and fruitless; but both
together, and both infinite, make a perfect being. He is only wise; not the
Father only wise, exclusive of the Son, but Father, Son, and Holy Ghost, three
persons and one God, only wise, compared with the creatures. Man; the wisest of
all the creatures in the lower world, is born like a wild ass's colt; nay, the
angels themselves are charged with folly, in comparison with God. He only is
perfectly and infallibly wise; he only is originally wise, in and of himself;
for he is the spring and fountain of all the wisdom of the creatures, the
Father of all the lights of wisdom that any creature can pretend to (Jam_1:17): with him are strength and wisdom, the
deceived and deceiver are his.
2. The Mediator of this praise: Through Jesus
Christ. To God only wise through Jesus Christ; so some. It is in and
through Christ that God is manifested to the world as the only wise God; for he
is the wisdom of God, and the power of God. Or rather, as we read it, glory
through Jesus Christ. All the glory that passes from fallen man to God, so
as to be accepted of him, must go through the hands of the Lord Jesus, in whom
alone it is that our persons and performances are, or can be, pleasing to God.
Of his righteousness therefore we must make mention, even of his only, who, as
he is the Mediator of all our prayers, so he is, and I believe will be to
eternity, the Mediator of all our praises.
No comments:
Post a Comment